> The Heart of Worlds > by Alchemystudent > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- > A is for Ambivance > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- What does it mean to be separated? What does it mean to be lost? I believe that separation is an illusion, like loneliness. As long as the bonds we share are there, we will never be alone. We are bonded together by the harmony of our world, by the heart of those who have touched us, and by the hearts of good friends. -Queen Elyon the 1st from the legend of the 5 Twilight found herself stuck in an empty void of blackness, surrounded by four lights each one a different color; red, green,blue, and white. “Protect!” Called a voice. “Protect,” the alicorn asked, looking left and right, “Protect who? What?” “Protect,” the voice said, becoming a bright light in the distance, while the four lights began to dissipate, “Please princess protect...” “Protect who?” Twilight asked, running towards the bright pink light. “Protect the heart, please Princess Twilight, protect the heart!” Pleaded the voice. “The heart?” Asked Twilight, arching an eyebrow, “What heart? Do you mean the crystal heart? A heart of the pony? How do you know who I am?” “Protect her, she can’t save them, without you,” the voice faded. “Who? What are you? How do you know who I am?”Asked Twilight, as a pair of dark yellow eyes appeared. “Do not worry, Princess,” the voice behind the eyes chuckled, the yellow eyes becoming slitted and dragon like. “I’ll keep the heart safe, for a while.” “What?” Twilight asked before becoming enveloped in fire. Twilight let out a gasp of shock as she was rudely awakened from her nightmare.She quickly looked around to see if her awakening had woken up her little dragon assistant, Spike. She smiled as she noticed that the small bed was empty, meaning that the little drake must be getting breakfast ready. Getting out of the bed, she used her magic to comb her mane out of its frazzled state and walked to a small diary that she had placed next to her bed. “Dream journal entry #5,” she began, the book immediately beginning to write itself as she spoke. “For the past five days, I have been having weird dreams, dreams of ponies enveloped by magic,” as she continued,looking into the mirror to see if there was anything wrong with her wings. “The first dream was of a brown maned pegasus surrounded by water, not drowning. It was almost as if she was living in it. At first, I had chalked it up to Pinkie’s ‘extra sugar bomb triple chocolate cider shake explosion of energy’ that I had tried the night before.” Twilight let out a small chuckle as she shook her head, “never again. But then came the second night, where I saw a unicorn surrounded by fire, not getting burned. This was followed by a third dream where I saw an unicorn surrounded by trees, making them grow as if she was an Earth pony. That was when I talked with Rarity about the dreams and she suggested that I put them down in this journal. This leads me to dream four where I saw an Earth pony flying in the air, as if she was a pegasus.” Putting down her brush, the alicorn walked back to the dream journal and looked at it, “But this new dream, is interesting. All of the other dreams were silent, like I was watching an event from a mirror, with the exception of this one. This one came with a plea and then was followed by a dragon. What could all of this mean? What was the dragon, and what did that voice mean by, ‘protect the heart?’” Twilight was suddenly shaken out of her thoughts by a knock on her door, “Who is that?” She questioned, teleporting down to the ground level of her library and opened the door. When she did, she was shocked to see a light blue pegasus with a red mane standing in the front of her door. “H-help,” the mare said as she fainted in the doorframe. “Oh my Celestia!” Twilight exclaimed, alarmed, “Spike get the bed ready and then run to the hospital and get nurse Redheart.” “Sure, Twilight, but why?” Spike let his voice carry from upstairs while he cleared the bed. Twilight, wrapping the limp form of the mare in her magic, carried her up to the bed, “Whoa!, What happened to her?” “I don’t know, she just came to the door and fainted,” Twilight said as she lowered the mare to the bed, and covered her. As Twilight began to cover the fallen mare, Spike noticed the cutie mark, “Whoa, check out the weird cutie mark. What do you think it means?” Spike asked. “I don’t really know, Spike,” Twilight said, looking at the two pink balls of energy, circling each other on her flank. “Its a mystery.” The Heart of worlds Chapter 1: Journey of the Heart “I can’t believe I finally made it, the end of high school,” a smile came to the young woman’s face as she walked in her graduation outfit. “No more school, soon to be going to college and...” She stopped herself as she walked outside the grounds,“far away from everyone I care about.” “Hey there babe,” a voice came from behind her, giving her a hug. “Matt!” She exclaimed happily, giving her boyfriend a hug and kissing him. “Graduation day, looking forward to it?” Asked Matt. “Except for the fact that my best friends might be separating, yeah,” the young girl said, dejectedly. “I see,” Matt said a little down, looking at his depressed lady. Smiling a little, he reached into his pocket, pulling out a small box, “Hey, I think I might know what make you feel better.” “What Matt?” She asked, but before she could get an answer she heard a scream and a battle cry, “That sounded like Irma! I got to go!” She said as she ran off into a blaze of light. “MATT! IRMA!”The red headed mare screamed as she sat up, covered in a cold sweat. “Calm down, you’re safe,” said a white mare with a pink mane as she placed her hooves on to the blue pegasus, trying to calm her down. Panting, she looked down at her hooves, almost as if she was looking at them for the first time, “W-where am I?” She asked, trying to figure out her body. “You’re in Princess Twilight Sparkle’s library. I came here to make sure that you are all right,” the nurse said as she removed the stethoscope from the mare’s body. “Well, she seems to be all right. No major wounds, illnesses, or anything like that, she just seemed to be exhausted.” “Thanks for coming, Redheart,” Twilight said as she walked to the bedside of the redhead. “You’re welcome, miss Sparkle,” the nurse pony said as she walked out of the loft and down the stairs. Turning her head away from the vacating nurse, Twilight looked at the sitting mare, “So, what is your name miss?” “My name is Will Vandom, and I’m sorry for intruding in on you like this,” replied Will, looking to the princess. “I don’t even know how I got here to be honest. All I can remember is that me and my friends were-AHHHH!” Will screamed, holding her head as memories flooded her mind, switching between images of her with her friends as a bunch of hairless apes, to her with her friends as ponies. “Hey, welcome to middle school. Or as I like to call it, hell!” An auburn girl said, a smirk drawing on her face, before turning into a pony. “Don’t worry, she’ll be fine. I’ve got her,” a blonde pony smiled before changing into a human and back again. A brown pony with dark purple hair smiled at Will, "Please to meet you, I am Taranee." “SURPRISE!” Yelled a dark haired oriental girl, changing her image back into a pony Twilight quickly placed a hoof onto Will’s shoulder, and looked at her with concern, “Are you all right?” “Yeah, I’m fine,” Will said, looking up with a smile, “I guess I’m just getting a headache from being hungry.” “Oh, don’t tell her that, now she will begin to think of so many ways to help you fix that problem, and give you steps on what causes a headache,” a voice on the wall complained. As Will got off the bed, she turned around to look for the voice, only to see a clock, “What?” “I said, let’s head to Sugar Cube Corner to get you something to eat,” Twilight said, heading to the stairs, “and then we can talk about what happened to you and your friends and how we can find them again.” “Uh, sure,” Will said, following Twilight. “Oh sure,” a frazzled british voice said from the kitchen, “go to the pink maniac instead of your fridge!” Will quickly turned her head to the kitchen, raising an eyebrow at the sound. Shaking her head, she tried to ignore it and follow the alicorn. Once the two mares made their way to the shop, a bubbly pink pony hopped right up to the two, “HEY TWILIGHT!” Turning her head, she looked at Will with a big smile, “Oh my gosh! A new pony! Hi there, my name is Pinkie Pie, and welcome to Ponyville! Since you’re new here, I’ll go and grab you a fresh muffin straight out of the oven!” “She really shouldn’t. In my opinion, I think the cupcakes I helped made were better today,” A voice called out from the kitchen. “I think I’ll have the cupcakes instead,” said Will. “Are you sure? The muffins are really good!” Pinkie said excitedly. “Yeah, your...” Will fumbled for a moment on her words as she looked into the bakery kitchen and saw only a stove. “STOVE?!” Twilight arched an eyebrow, “The stove just talked to you?” “Well, sort of, kind of, yeah...I mean when Pinkie Pie offered the muffin to me, the stove told me that the cupcakes were better,” Will said, looking at the stove confused. “Oh, sometimes I think I can hear the Cakes talking to me, but then that is just me being really hungry!” Pinkie said with glee as she brought back a cupcake and gave it to Will. “You can talk to technology?” Twilight asked, unsure if this mare was telling the truth or not. “I guess so,” Will said looking down at the cupcake, “I...don’t know. This is all too weird-AHHH!” Will screamed as she hunched over, holding her head in her hooves. “Another headache?” Twilight asked, reaching over to the mare in concern. “Yeah, I-” Will began to sway back and forth as she felt the pain subside, while a blue portal began open next to her. “What?” Was all Twilight had time to asked as a firebolt spell came from the blue portal, striking her in the side, and sending her flying. “Twilight!” Screamed Pinkie as she was lifted up by a magical aura and thrown against the wall. As Twilight slowly got up from the blast, she got a good look at the attacker, “S-Sunset?” “Hello, Sparkle,” the two toned mare said, a symbol of a black V glowing brightly on her forehead. “I thought I come home and take something from you. Namely, everything.” Turning her head over her shoulder, she looked at the prone Pinkie. Looking up from the table, Will’s eyes began to crackle with electricity. As she raised her hooves in front of her, she could feel the air crackle around her, “NO! Get...AWAY!” Screaming, in fear and worry for her new friends, she thrusted out her hooves to let out a torrent of electricity from her outstretched hooves. “What?” Was Twilight’s only response as she watched this display of unicorn like magic coming from a simple pegasus. as a pendant appeared around her neck. As the lightning struck the yellow unicorn, hitting her hard enough to knock her out but not to kill her, the pendant glowed a bright pink and sealed the portal. “Will, that was...”Twilight said, looking shocked as she got to her hooves. Her eyes widened in surprise as the blue pegasus wass bathed in an etherial light, and a pink necklace appeared around her neck. Without a word, the pendant glowed bright pink and shot out at Sunset and the portal. “AHHHHH!” Sunset screamed as the symbol on her head was wiped from her and the portal closed behind her. As the magic dissappated, Will slowly lowered back down and looked at herself in shock. Will just stood there, looking at the pendant and her hooves. Looking back at Twilight, her eyes looked on in fear, “What am I?” > B is for breaking > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         A cyan pegasus walked back and forth between two guards with a scowl on her face, “What do ya mean you won’t let me see her? THAT GIRL TRIED TO KILL TWO OF MY FRIENDS!”         “That attitude, young lady, is why you are not allowed in here. Not until Celestia has had a few words with the suspect,” Swift Arrow said staring Dash straight in the eyes.                  With a small growl, Rainbow Dash crossed her forelegs and walked away to Pinkie’s room. While she did that, the suspect that she was mad at sat in the room, whimpering, “No, please, I don’t want to... AHHHH!”         “Shh, my former student, its all right,” Celestia said, putting a comforting hoof onto Sunset’s shoulder.         Sunset looked up at Celestia, eyes wide with fright, “Oh no! C-Celestia! I am so sorry for everything. I-I-I didn’t want to come back, I didn’t want to hurt anypony, I’m sorry for taking the crown, please-”         “Please, calm down Sunset,” Celestia pleaded.         After taking a few moments to breath, she looked up at her teacher, and smiled softly, “Even after all this time, and everything I did, you’re still willing to forgive me.”         Sunset’s eyes then widened in horror, “Wait, what about Pinkie? Is she...?”         “Pinkie Pie is all right; dazed and nursing a concussion, but she will live. I am quite curious as to why you are here, though. I was led to believe that you were staying in that world,” Celestia said, looking down at Shimmer.         “I was, but that changed. I will tell you everything once Twilight gets here,” Sunset said, looking down at the covers. After thinking for the moment she looked up to her former mentor, “But, what happened to that other mare? The one who blasted me?”         “After the fight, Twilight said she had left the Corner and ran off somewhere,” the white alicorn walked around to sit next to Sunset. “My guards are looking for her right now. Now, tell me something before Twilight gets back... why didn’t you come home?”         Sunset let out a small sigh before looking out the window, “I didn’t deserve to.”         Will laid against a tree, looking at her hooves in a mix of fear and wonder. The very idea that she could produce a bolt of lightning like a unicorn was both terrifying and exciting, “How could I do that? I’m not even on the weather patrol back home I-AHHHHH!”         “You have have been chosen to be the new guardians of the veil,” an old pony with a black mane said as she looked to the five mares at the table. “Irma, you have been gifted with the power over water. Taranee, you no longer need to fear fire for you can control it and to you Cornelia, you have power over Earth. As for my little Hay-Lin, you now control the might of air. All five of you will now have extraordinary abilities.”         “Wait,” a young pegasus said, “did you say five, grandma?”         The old pony turned to look at Will, “Yes, one will be there to bind the others in harmony.”                  “W-who was that? Who-" she paused for a brief moment as she began to remember their faces. "My friends, Hay Lin, Irma, Taranee, Cornelia. But, who was that woman, what did she mean by guardains and bind them in harmony?"         “Mr. Huggles, come back!” A soft voice yelled, trying to call to small dormouse as it ran from the basket of a yellow pegasus.         Turning her head to the noise, Will watched as the dormouse ran up her foreleg, up her back, and onto the top of her head, “Mr. Huggles?”         “Oh, he’s so cute Matt,” Will said, holding the mouse and staring at him.         “His name is Mr. Huggles, I was hoping you could give him a good home.”         Will blinked a few times as the memory quickly faded, looking at the little mouse on her head, “Oh, hey there!”         “Oh, I am so sorry,” the butter colored pegasus said as she trotted up the hill, “Mr. Huggles normally doesn’t run away from me like this. He’s normally very calm and relaxed when I carry him here.”         “It’s ok,” Will said as the grey mouse slid down from her head and in between her forelegs where it curled up into a ball, asleep. “I think he likes me. The name’s Will, who are you?”         “F-Fluttershy,” she nervously said, looking down and away from the blue pegasus, “So, if you don’t mind me asking, why are you here alone by this tree?”         Will let out a sigh as she looked in the direction of Sugar Cube Corner, “ Earlier, I was with this mare named Twilight Sparkle at that little shop down there.         “Oh, were you down there when Sunset attacked?” Fluttershy asked.         “You heard?” Will asked, looking down and feeling bad about the fight.         “One of my friends, Rainbow Dash, told me about it,” Fluttershy said, a little smile on her face as she grabbed a basket of food, “I was just heading to the hospital to see if there was anything I could do to help. Why are you here?”         Will sighed, sorrowfully, “Because when that unicorn came in and attacked everypony, I... I somehow released this lighting bolt that struck her in the chest and this weird gem came out.” Will said, looking at her hooves in fear and then at the jewel around her neck, “I had to run away because I was afraid of what I was or if I would hurt anypony.”         Calmly, Fluttershy put a comforting hoof onto the shoulder of the blue pegasus, “Maybe you should’ve gone with Twilight to talk about this. She might be able to help you understand what happened to you.”         Will let out a small sigh, and then looked up at the yellow pegasus, “ Do you think she’ll really help a total stranger like me? We only just met.”         “I’d like to think so,” Fluttershy said, smiling softly as she sat with Will, “Twilight does like to help ponies who are in trouble, especially if they helped out one of her friends.”         Looking up at Fluttershy, and then back down to the little dormouse in her hooves, she smiled gently and looked back up at Fluttershy, “Alright, let’s do it.”         “What did you mean, ‘you didn’t deserve to?” Asked Twilight Sparkle as she walked into the room, just hearing the last bit of conversation, “I thought that the elements fixed you?”         Sunset let out a growl as she slammed her hoof against the bed, “You have no idea what they did to me. The elements are a balancing force when you think about it. When used, they balance out the bad  with the good. A princess who demands eternal night is sent to a place with eternal sun and the light of the stars, the chaos god is put into perpetual stillness while unable to change a thing, and then a girl who wants total dominance and power is put into a body where she couldn’t do a thing with that power.” Tears flowing quickly from her eyes, she put her hooves to her eyes and began to cry.         “You didn’t have any control?” Twilight asked.         “NO! I didn’t,” Sunset sniffed, “you only saw a monster using my body to take control of those people. You saw a monster use all that power against you, while me? I was forced to sit on the sidelines in my own body!” Looking down at her hooves, she shook her head as if to remove the memory, “But, that wasn’t the worst of it. Try and imagine what it was like, wanting to be able to do something with the power that you had been given. That all you wanted to do was prove that you were worthy of being a princess by being able to take over something, even as small as a school. Then, imagine that you lose that control, that you could only watch as a demon version of you begins to pervert your desires. Can you imagine what it was like, no longer being in control? I was so disgusted with myself, I didn't want to come back.”         “So why did you come back?” Asked Twilight, sitting next to the yellow unicorn.         Sunset let out a soft sigh and looked out the window, “About a few months after you had left, I ha begun to try and redeem myself. I tried doing good around the school, and helping out our friends. Heck, I had even begun to look myself in the mirror again without wanting to break it. Then, one day while I was walking outside of school, he teleported right behind me.”         “Wait, magic doesn’t exist in that world!” Twilight objected.         Sunset furrowed her brow at Twilight, “I thought you were the most powerful unicorn on the planet. I thought you would’ve figured out that the only reason why you couldn’t use magic there was because you lacked the tools!” To empathise the point, Sunset flicked her hoof against Twilight’s horn.         “OW!” Twilight winced, rubbing her horn.         “Much like how you can’t farm without the proper tools, you can’t use magic without a place to focus,” Celestia said, beaming with pride at her former student.         “Correct, they use magic through their fingertips. It’s how I kept an eye on this world after all,” Sunset said, before continuing her story. “The man somehow knew everything about me: being an unicorn, my fight with Twilight, how I had all that power, what happened to the element, and everything else. He offered me a chance to have all that power back and to take revenge on you. He even tried to empathise with me, sweet talk me into being his weapon. Of course, I said no. I didn’t want to go back to being a cruel monster again, that was when he showed his trump card, your human friends.”         “What?!” Twilight yelled.         “He had them in a magical grip, with magical energy around their necks. He told me that if I refused, he would kill them one by one,” Sunset again teared up, “By this point, I had become  so close with all five of them. I became their best friend and they mine and what’s more, I was worried for you.”         “Me?” Twilight asked.         “I had read somewhere that, according to multiversal theory, that killing an alternate counterpart might have an effect on the other selves. Some say the life force will transfer to the others and some say that the death might kill another version. I didn’t want to risk it, so I gave in. He branded me with his mark and sent me here with the intent to kill you.”         Celestia put a calming hoof onto Sunset’s shoulder, “Do you remember what the mark looked like?” “No, I don’t” Sunset said, shaking her head sadly. “I remember what it looked like, Princess Celestia,” Twilight said, bringing out some paper and a pen. Quickly, she began to write down the weird V placed in a circle. “ It was shaped like this.” Celestia’s eyes opened wide in shock as she looked at the symbol, “Twilight, this is...” “Is what, Celestia?” Asked Twilight, concern and curiosity in her voice. Celestia calmly shook her head as she put the paper under her wing, “It’s nothing, Twilight. Now-” “Uh, excuse me?” interrupted Will as she opened the door, “the guards said you wanted to see me, your highness?” Will then stopped and gasped as another memory came to her head. “Wow! A queen now, guess we’ll have to start bowing to you every time we meet,” Cornelia said, chuckling as they walked behind a young yellow mare with long blonde hair. “Oh no, you don’t have to do that,” the mare said, smiling, “if anything, we should be bowing to all five of you for all that you did for Meridian.” Will smiled as she bowed to her friend, “Yeah, but we still want to respect you, as a ruler.” “Even if we did all the work,” muttered Irma under her breath. Almost immediately upon seeing the princess, Will respectfully bowed, “Thank you Will. But there is no need to be so...”Celestia stopped herself as she looked at the jewel around Will’s neck, “Oh my goodness. Will, may I ask if I can take the jewel with me back to Canterlot? I wish to examine it a little more closely.” Will looked down at her necklace, its soft pink glow almost seeming to tell her that it was alright, “Uh, sure.” Lighting up her horn, Celestia took the necklace away from the red head and put it behind her wing, “Thank you, Will. Now, as for you Sunset.” “I am ready for whatever punishment you have, Princess,” Sunset said, defeatedly. “It seems that you are stuck here until we can find a way to open a new portal and, since your crime fell into Twilight’s realm, I leave it to her to decide your ultimate fate.” At this, Twilight became a little flustered, “M-Me?” Regaining her composure, she turned to Sunset, “Well, seeing that you did attack me and might use your skills to attack again, I have no choice but to put you under house arrest for the time being. Will, you are welcome to stay with her. I will go to my friends and tell them of the news as well.” With that, Twilight walked out the door and to Pinkie’s room. As Will watched the alicorn leave the room, she turned to the yellow unicorn, “So, you’re stuck too, huh?” “Not exactly,” Sunset said, looking out the window at the setting sun, “I actually come from here, but I have been in another world for so long that this one... just feels alien to me now.” Chuckling, she looked at the young guardian, “You seem rather calm to be around a pony who just tried to kill you and a friend of yours.” Will smiled as a memory came to her A man with wavy black hair looked at Will, “Hey Will? Thanks for, you know, not being too mad about the whole, ‘trying to kill you thing;’ ' Will chuckled as she thought of her boyfriend, “What can I say, I have a thing for forgiving people... even if they are bad.” Sunset chuckled as she looked at Will, “Thanks.”         Within the majestic halls of Canterlot Castle, Celestia sat in her private chambers and held the mystical gem before her in her magic, “Amazing, to think that the heart of Kandrakar would wind up here in Equestria, and on that pony of all things.” “SISTER? We must talk about a certain Phoenix of yours and how he is treating my little,” a dark blue alicorn said as she walked into the room, only to be silenced by the sight of the glowing pink gem in front of her sister. “By our father and mother! Is that...?” “Yes, Luna. It is,” Celestia said with a smile. “Oh my goodness. They have picked new guardians already? Who are they? Where are they? Is it one of Twilight’s friends? Oh won’t they be excited to know of the destiny that they have before them,” Luna squeed excitedly, prancing about. Celestia held up a white hoof to calm her sister down, “I am afraid that the chosen guardian is not one of Twilight’s friends, nor is it anybody that we know. Apparently, the heart has already chosen its new wielder, and  the four other guardians have already been chosen.” Luna looked a little disappointed as she sat next to her sister and began to grumble to herself, “At the very least, those idiots back in Kandrakar could tell us when they have chosen the new guardians of the veil. So, why did you take it from the owner, sister?” “Merely to examine the adventures that this guardian may have had, and why has she come to our world without the other four. And where are the other guardians?” Celestia said, using her magic to peer inside the gem. “You expect foul play, Celestia?” Luna asked, looking at her sister, “Has that happened before?” The white alicorn shot her eyes up in remembrance, thinking back to a long time ago, “N-No, never. But it is odd that one guardian has arrived here, and the other four are not present. Almost as if someone wants to keep her away from the others. What is more, is this.” Luna watched as the small parchment floated over to her, taking a long look at the sip of paper with the image of a V inscribed on a circle, “Tia... this is.” “I know, the mark of the dark dragon, his mark,” Celestia said, looking back at the gem. “But he is dead, sister! You and I have both been to his final battle ground and you and I both know that there is no coming back from that battle,” Luna said, sitting next to her sister. “I know, and that is what terrifies me,” Celestia said, looking solemnly at the glowing gem before her. > C is for companions > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- Chapter 3:         Bright Spark woke up that morning feeling angry, he didn’t know why,he just did He was  in the kind of mood where everything could set him off. Walking down the stairs to the kitchen, he sat down at the seat while his wife continued to cook, “Morning hun. You’ll never guess what surprise I have for you.” his wife said.         “What is it, the same freaking food that you serve every freaking morning?” The stallion asked, standing up with his face distorted into a growl.         “Hunny? What’s wrong?” The mare asked backing away.         “What’s wrong?” The stallion asked before swatting away the cake, “The problem is that I am tired of sitting here, day in and out, haveing the same food badly prepared by a mare who doesn’t know how to cook. I am tired of working in the same dead end job for a wife who doesn’t appreciate anything I do, and I HATE the fact that a bookworm gets a high office while I GET SHIT! I’m going out, don’t bother  looking for me!” The stallion growled, storming off through the door.         The young mare collapsed to the ground, tears filling her eyes, “FINE! GO OUT AND LEAVE!” She yelled, collapsing to the ground, her tears streaming down her face, “You probably wouldn’t like the news anyway! You would probably hate me for it!” Taking one look at the cake, she read the message, ‘congratulations! you r a daddy’ that was written on it with a pregnancy test next to it. Seeing this made her cry one more time, holding her stomach closely.         Twilight stepped out of the bedroom, using her magic to rub a towel across her wings, “‘Wing cleaning? OH it’s easy, you can get it done in a few minutes!’ That was a load and you know it, Dash! I still can’t see how you dry these things so quick,” Twilight grumbled to herself before looking into her guest room and noticing the absence of one of her guests, “Sunset? Where are-”         “Out of date, out of date, horribly written, inaccurate,” complained a voice from down the stairs.         “Sunset, what are you doing?” Twilight asked as she walked down the steps.         “Re-organizing your bookshelves,” Sunset said as she watched Twilight walk.,She thought A REAL alicorn would’ve glided down. “I figured since I was stuck back here, with you, I might as well help around the house by fixing your books. I can’t help but notice that some of them are horribly out of date.”         “Wait, how would you know that?” Twilight asked.          “Because, when I was at Canterlot Castle, I would spend a lot of time there rewriting the books and fixing their misinformation with the right ones,” Sunset said as she took out another book with her magic.         Twilight’s eyes looked on at the activity with an air of disbelief, “I really don’t think Celestia would keep that many books that were written badly.”         “You be surprised,” Sunset said as she brought out another book and flipped through the pages, “Take this wing spell, for instance. I bet when you cast it, you were really exhausted weren’t you?”         “Well, yes but I was-”         “That’s because the writer of this spell was thinking too lightly, borrowing mana from butterflies takes too long. From what I have seen and done, it would be far easier to mix blue and white mana to create temporary wings,” Sunset said, putting away one of the books.         “How did you figure that out?” Asked Twilight, looking at the book and seeing that Sunset was right.         “Because I happen to be very talented in finding out the fastest ways to use spells with a very low drain on mana. I didn’t get into Celestia’s school just because I’m a pretty face you know,” Sunset smiled.         Twilight giggled as she put one of the books back, “Of course you didn’t. You know, I was kind of hoping you would come back one day,” thee alicorn said with a sigh, “I mean, you were Celestia’s student before me, I figured we could spend hours together talking about the classes, the lessons, different magical-” Twilight stopped to see Sunset beginning to cry, “What’s wrong?”         “I never wanted to come back,” Sunset said, tears welling up  “I was just fine  staying back in that world, live out the rest of my life with my new friends, and never bother with all  of this, ever again! I grew to love those girls, Twilight, they were like my sisters,” Sunset choked back a sob, “but in an instant, that man took it all away from me. Why? I was... finally happy.”         Twilight reached over and gave Sunset a hug with her wing, “It’ll be alright, Sunset. You’ll see, it might take a while but I bet I can find a way to go past the time limit of the portal and open it for you to go home.”         “YOU DON'T GET IT!” Sunset screamed at Twilight, “There is no way back, not now, not ever!”         “What?” Asked Twilight.         “Just before I left for your world, I used my magic to decimate the statue where the portal was. I ruined my only chance back, and without a proper portal relay... I can’t go home. I can never go back,” Sunset tearfully said, putting her face into Twilight’s shoulder.         “Don’t say that, Sunset,” Twilight said, rubbing the yellow unicorn’s back, “Nothing is for certain. Give me some time and I can figure out a way to send you back.”         Sunset raised her head, “You’ll do that for me? Why? I... I’ve tried to kill you twice and I tried to kill your friend.”         Twilight shrugged, “ I can be a little stupid sometimes, because I like giving second chances. I guess its because I’ve seen it done some good things for ponies in the past.”         Sunset chuckled at this, “You’re right, you can be stupid. So, where is our other guest?”         “Will is still asleep in her bed. If you ask me, it’s getting too crowded here,” Spike said, coming out from the kitchen with a plate of waffles.         “Sorry Spike,” Twilight said, “ but you know its rare for us to have more than one guest here at a time. This place just isn’t built for more than two ponies and a dragon  living here.” Before this conversation took place, Will was asleep in her bed, tossing and turning in it.         “Look, Cornelia, I’m sorry,” Will said, looking down at the ground with tears in her eyes. “I know that my plan was stupid and I could’ve gotten your sister killed but I had to-”         The blonde unicorn quickly interrupted the blue pegasus with a big hug, “Look, I may not agree with your ideas, and there’ll be times when I think you are an idiot, but I’ll never hate you.” She then pulled away, looking like a human girl with a soft smile, “Just know, no matter what you plan, I’ll be there to back you up. But don’t expect me not to argue with you about it.”         Will put her forehead to her best friend’s head, smiling, “Never have any other way.”         “It’s too bad, you’re all alone now. Aren’t you,” a voice said, firing a wall of flame at the young woman, incernating her.         “Cornelia!” Screamed Will as she woke up, panting. Taking the time to roll out of bed, she could hear the conversation from down below.         “I just.. .miss them Twilight. I never thought I would say that about anypony, ever,” Sunset said, looking down. “All my life, I was just focused on being the best, winning alone, and now... I can’t see my life without them.”         Will sighed as she walked to the edge of the stairs, “I feel the same about my friends. All of my old ones just wanted to be friends with me because they felt sorry and then I move to a new town and poof...I have four friends I can’t think about leaving.”         “Speaking of which, where are your friends now?” Asked Twilight.         “Well, they should be back in-” Will stopped herself, unsure of the answer. Her mind kept going back between the words ‘Vanhoover’ and ‘Heatherfield’, both seeming to be the right place and yet, seem wrong, “they should...”         Twilight watched as the redheaded mare swayed back and forth in confusion, “Hold on! Are you all right?”         Will smiled as she felt herself being held up by Twilight, “Y-yeah, I should be fine. I don’t know why I can’t remember where my friends are right now or where I live. It’s like a fog is in my head.”         “Twilight! The princess just sent something back,” Spike said, coming in with a letter and the pendant that was around Will’s neck.         “My pendant! Thanks Spike,” Will said smiling, putting it on as fast as she could. Once around her neck she lifted it up to her face and smiled, “The heart of Kandrakar, is the symbol of the leader of the guardians, it will bind you to the others.”  She whispered softly to herself as she felt a little warmer with the necklace on her.         “I wonder what she found out?” Twilight asked as she look at the letter.         To my dearest Princess Twilight Sparkle.         Upon investigation, I have determined that the pendant is a source of very powerful magic and an item that belongs to your friend. Do not let her let go of it and you must protect her for the time being. I cannot say more in written form for fear of somepony else reading this.         As to your inquiry about the symbol, I am afraid I cannot confirm what it means until I have more information. Until then, please be careful of anything strange happening in Ponyville and report to me the moment you find something odd.         Sincerly         Princess-          “OH YEAH! WELL, BITE ME!” Rainbow Dash interrupted as she barged into the library, a book sticking out of her bag.                  “Rainbow Dash, there isn’t a need to be rude,” Twilight said, rolling up the scroll.         “Not you, Twilight, I was yelling that out to-oh, you’re still here,” Dash remarked, looking at Sunset with a scowl.         “A pleasure to see you again, ‘Miss Dash’,” Sunset snarked back, only to get a light nudge from Will.         Twilight walked over to her cyan friend, “Rainbow, who were you yelling at then?”         Rainbow Dash let out a sigh as she looked at the door, “Thunderlane, he was having a fight with Bulk out there. I broke it up and he cussed me out for it.”         “Wait, Thunderlane? You mean that sweet guy? But he would never-” Twilight began.         “Yeah, I know,” Dash remarked, laying the book onto the table, “That’s the weird part. I know Thunderlane, he has a lot of patience. He’s not the type of guy to fly off the handle, just because somepony bumped into him.”         “That was it?” Asked Will.         “Yeah, weird huh?” Dash said as she walked to a bookcase.         At that moment, the door busted open and a ragged orange pony stepped out, “What is wrong with everypony today?”         “Applejack, what’s wrong?” Asked Twilight.         “Just a big feud going out there, is all,” Applejack said, not noticing Sunset.         “What do you mean?” Asked Will.         “Well, Ah was out in the market, when Ah saw the flower trio getting into an argument. No problem, Ah thought, after all, friends fight once in a while. Then, out of the bloom, they attacked another flower shop across from them. Ah had to step in before they could do anything serious!” Yelled Applejack.         “You guys don’t normally act like that, right. I thought Ponyville was peaceful and kind. At least that was what I heard,” Will said.         Applejack got a good look at Will and walked up to her, shaking her hoof fast, “Well, howdy! The name’s Applejack, ya must be Will. Thanks for savin’ Pinkie Pie and Twilight yesterday. Ah can’t thank ya enough for that and,” her green eyes then glared at Sunset, “What in Tarnation is she doing here?”         “A pleasure,” Sunset said, bowing to Applejack. “I seem to making new friends left and right.”         “Forgive me, Ah didn’t know Ah was supposed to be happy at seein’ a pony who tried to kill mah best friend TWICE, and put another in  the hospital,” Applejack growled.         “To be fair, she was under a spell and your friend only suffered a mild head-”         “I HAVE NEVER BEEN SO INSULTED!” A white unicorn exclaimed as she walked into the house, followed closely by a tearful pegasus.         “Let me guess, ponies are easily agitated and take it out on others with no reason,” Twilight asked as she watched her two friends walk in.         “Yes, how did you know?” Asked the purple maned unicorn.         “It’s been happening a lot lately,” Twilight said plainly.         “Yes, it was horrible, Twilight,” Rarity said walking past the alicorn. “Not only did they insult my mane style and my fake lashes, but there was also a small stampede that hurt one of Fluttershy’s poor ducks!”         “Its ok, Goslyn, it’ll be all right,” Fluttershy said as she continued to wrap the wing of a duckling in a bandage.         “I swear, its getting weirder and weirder out there,” Rarity said as she walked around the library and looked at Will, “Ah, you must be Will! A pleasure to meet your acquaintance, I am Rarity and that is Fluttershy. And, my word, that is a lovely gem on your neck,” the white unicorn said, looking down at the heart.         “Thanks,” Will said.         “May I?” Asked Rarity.         “Sure,” Will said, smiling.         Using her magic, Rarity lifted the heart close to her face, “My word, where did you get this? I have never seen its make anywhere in all of Equestria, and there is no jeweler I know of that could possibly have cut it so well.”         “I... don’t know,” Will said, the name unable to come to her.         “Well, be as that may, I simply have to request you come to boutique soon and we can discuss your marvelous gem,” Rarity said with a smile before turning to Sunset, “And you must be Shimmer. A pleasure I’m sure.”         Sunset arched an eyebrow in surprise, “I’m surprised, no off-handed remark or insult?”         “Darling, as I told another mare not too long ago, I am a lady and we ladies do not hold grudges. Furthermore, if I am going to insult you, I will do so behind your back,” Rarity said with a smirk.         Will looked around the room, slightly confused, “I don’t get this, I thought that Ponyville was peaceful and quiet.”         “Yeah, its bucking weird,” remarked Dash, looking up from her book. “It’s like everypony decided to become flank-holes all of a sudden.”         “Kind of like, everypony jus’ up and forget how to be kind to one another,” Applejack added. As Twilight listened to each of the girls talk about the previous events that had been occurring back in Ponyville, she looked back at the letter, “ Girls, pack your things! We’re making a trip to Canterlot!” “What?” Asked Fluttershy. “Princess Celestia told me to talk to her if I started to see something weird, and this most likely qualifies,” Twilight said. Sunset walked to Twilight, looking rather perplexed, “So, you are just going to levitate us all there while flying? Wouldn’t a powerful mage like you rather teleport?” “Actually, I was thinking of taking a train,” Twilight responded with a blush. “I mean, I can teleport me and Spike easily enough, but more than that and even I would get tired.” “Wait, you get-you mean as an alicorn you never-” Sunset stammered. “Took too much mana to try,” Twilight said. Sunset sighed and muttered under her breath, “How did you even become an alicorn? How did you even beat me?” With a sigh, the orange unicorn looked up at Twilight, “Let me guess, you use only blue mana when you teleport, don’t you?” “Well, teleportation is mainly mental, why? Is that a problem?” Asked Twilight. Sunset sighed, “Because that is wasted energy and very insufficient. I know how to do it, without much of a drain.” “How?” Asked Twilight. Sunset then smugly smirked as she turned her flank to the other ponies, “Look at my mark. What is it?” “A sun, so what?” Asked Dash. “Wait,” Will said, taking a step closer, “Is that a yin/yang? A balance?” “Yep,” the orange mare said, flipping back her mane confidently, “You see, I got this mark because I can balance out the mana needed for a spell while keeping enough for another without draining myself. This allows me to cast multiple giant spells in a row without tiring myself out or suffering mana drain for too long.” She looked back at the group of ponies, each with a confused look on their face save for Twilight and Will. “I think I got it,” Will said, stepping forth, “What you are saying is that, a spell that would normally drain a normal unicorn like Rarity, you can cast while keeping enough mana for yourself to cast another strong spell.” “But how? Even when I was an unicorn, I would have to use all of one of my mana pools to cast a large spell,” Twilight asked. “Let me show you,” Sunset said, “Everypony, gather around Twilight.” With questioning looks, the bearers and Will did so, with Fluttershy sighing, “It feels odd, doing this without Pinkie.” “Ah, we’ll fill her in when we get back,” Dash said with a shrug. “Ok, now, Twilight, prepare your teleport spell, and hold it,” Sunset said, watching as the purple alicorn lit up her horn. “Perfect. Now, do you feel yourself connected to the blue mana pool?” “Yes,” Twilight said, closing her eyes. “Now, instead of tapping into only that, I want you to take some of the energy from one of the other four pools. Bring it out,” Sunset, smirking. “I-I- I can’t,” Twilight grunted, a small bit of sweat pouring down her face as she concentrated. “Sure you can, its easy,” Sunset said, “You are an alicorn now, you have the largest mana reserve of any pony here. Just pull out the extra energy you need from those instead of only one.” As Will watched the lesson go on, her mind began to shoot back in time. An old mare, her once black mane now white, stood before the five mares, each tired from a battle, “Remember you five must always stand together. Alone, you are strong, but together, you are almost invincible.” “Right, how can I forget,” Will said, looking to Cornelia, blushing. “Sorry,” “It’s ok, if you didn’t mess up once in a while, you wouldn’t need us to lift you up,” giggled the unicorn. She then hugged Will with human arms. The old woman smiled at the girls, “Never forget, your true strength flows from each other...” “Hey Twilight,” Will asked, breaking Twilight out of her concentration, “When you used the elements to fire that rainbow thing. What did it feel like?” Twilight smiled as she closed her eyes in remembrance, “It was like I could feel each of my friends giving me some of their energy, lending me just enough of their power to use but I was giving them some of mine, like we were all connected.” “Try that,” Will said, “Try associating each one of the mana pools with your friends and treat it like each one of them is giving you their power.” Twilight nodded and began to concentrate, her horn glowing for a moment. For a few moments, she felt nothing, then she began to smile, “I think I got it!” “Do you?” Sunset asked. “Yes, I can feel each one of them in a separate way,” Twilight said, making her horn flash, “Fluttershy is a calming white, Applejack is a strong green, Rainbow Dash is a blazing red, Rarity a creative blue, and Pinkie...” Twilight stopped herself, frowning about the lack of her friend.. Sunset shook her head, “It’s ok, you should be able to manage with only a bit from four pools.” Eyes closed, Twilight nodded and continued to prepare the spell, taking in some energy from the other pools, not noticing her friends glowing as well, “HERE GOES! HOLD ON!” “Who was that woman, and what did she mean that me and other guardians,” Will thought as they began to disappear into the ether, “And how did I know about how their power affect me, that I get stronger when they are nearby.” “As you can see ambassador, everything will be fine for your people’s journey through Equestria tomorrow,” Celestia said to the satyr before her. “I am sorry to hear about your hometown, however.” “Do not worry your highness,” the goatman said, his accent thick. “We Satyrs have this thing about vengeance and we will find the dragon responsible.” With that, he walked out the door of the castle, just as a purple dome of energy appeared in the center of the throne room. “Sister, who is-” Luna asked, walking into the room, only to watch as Twilight and the others appear before her, “Twilight?” Celestia, unfazed by the appearance of her student, chuckled at Twilight as she stood, barely panting, “Twilight, though I welcome your visits, I do wish you would warn me first. That, and I have never known you to teleport here before.” “Your student never tried with a group before, I taught her how. Without wasting her mana I should add,” Sunset smugly smirked. “I knew you two could learn from each other,” Celestia smiled as Twilight walked up. “Princess,” Twilight said, trying to focus on the task at hand not on her glee at performing a new trick, “Something is going wrong in Ponyville. Fights are starting randomly, ponies are turning violent, and more and more are letting their rage overtake them.” As Luna walked to stand next to her sister, she listened to this and shook her head. Looking to Twilight she asked, “Tell us, the ponies who attacked, did they have a V somewhere on their body. The neck or arm?” Rainbow Dash quickly nodded, “Yeah, Thunderlane had this weird mark on his neck when he attacked Bulk.” Celestia sighed, “It’s as I feared then.” “You know something, your highness?” Asked Will. “Of course she does, she’s the queen of secrets remember?” Responded Sunset with a scoff. Celestia ignored the comment and began, “In order to know what is happening to the ponies, you must know who is responsible. Back when Queen Terra and King Titan were still young, the magic of our universe was held by a select group of dragons. The good king of dragons, Bahamut,” Celestia spat the name, like it sickened her to say it, “sent out his most trusted soldier to take it and bring it to the people. This purple dragon was joined on her quest by a kind yellow dragon, a generous white one, a loyal blue, an honest orange, and silly pink. Together they had many adventures and soon took the magic; but it was not without cost. The purple dragon lost her five friends in the course of the journey. So heartbroken was she, that she used the magic for one selfish thing... to bring back her friends.” Twilight smiled tearfully at this and looked back at her friends, knowing she would do no less for them, “So, what happened next?” “The six dragons used the magic to bring it forth across the universe, giving the earth ponies their strength, the pegasi the power over the weather and flight, and the unicorns their unique magicks. The five dragons then sealed their power into five orbs, known as aurameres and placed them within the halls of Kandrakar and the purple dragon became the first head of the council of Kandrakar.” “What’s Kandrakar?” Asked Applejack.                  “It’s a mystical realm just behind the veil that protects our world,” Sunset said, walking to the side of the group, “It a powerful source of magic, where all magic is said to flow. It is also said that, it is there where the five guardians will be chosen when the time comes.”         “Shouldn’t the red head one know this, she looks confused,” Luna said, whispering to her sister.         “But what does this have to do with what is going on in Ponyville?” Twilight asked.         “Have you ever heard of the balance?” Asked Sunset, “It states that when something of a great good happens in the universe, a great evil must also happen.”         “Agreed,” Luna stated, “When the purple dragon brought her five friends back, in exchanged, something dark was born. It was a black dragon, representing death and destruction. For eons, he rested, drawing upon energy from the death, hatred, and destruction that happened in the world overtime. All through this, a fairy with a heart as black as pitch raised him, tempered him into a fierce creature. Then she unleashed on our world, forcing him to try and kill us all.”         “Me and Luna teamed up with a company of brave soldiers to defeat him and finally seal him away. A year after Luna was freed, we had heard news of this monster’s release, and then his apparent death. We could hardly believe it, not only was he freed, but something was able to kill him. We went to where his grave was and sure enough... he was dead.”         “Who was this guy?” Asked Rainbow Dash.         “His name was Valtor,” Luna stated.         “And if that dreadful creature is dead, then why do you think he is the cause of what is happening?” Asked Rarity.         “His mark,” Luna stated plainly, “Whenever he would attack a world, his victims would bear the mark of a V upon their bodies. We can only assume this means that someone, or something has revived him and unleashed him on our world. For what reason, we cannot say.”         Applejack looked up at the two princesses, “So, what does all of that have to do with the ponies acting plumb out of their minds?”         “One of his many tactics that he would use to devastate the world was to unleash something that we had dubbed, the hate plague,” Luna stated plainly, the thought disgusting her. “It starts off when a carrier brings it into the world, touching and spreading it to the innocent populace of the planet. You have already seen the beginnings of the virus at the moment, stage one. Here, small things that once annoy a pony become huge means of aggravation. Ponies who would normally brush off a small insult will become aggressive and lash out. Stage two, the ponies rage increases, they begin attacking the ones that they feel have done the most harm to them. Friendly rivals turn into bitter enemies and now, even a small slight will turn a pony into a violent monster. Stage three, the pony starts to lash out at any and every pony, attacking and most likely, killing all that stand in their way.Lastly, stage four...” Luna stopped herself. “S-Stage four?” asked Fluttershy, trembling. “Your body cannot stand being a state of constant rage forever, the adrenalin pumping through you, your heart racing to keep up, it soon becomes too much and you...” Celestia stopped herself, “Die. Your body becomes covered in a black ooze and will drain you of your life. OR worse, your body will become covered in the ooze, turning you into a mindless monster, serving only the will of Valtor. What's more, when you are infected, your strength, senses, and some parts of your mind become stronger, sharper, and every way more powerful” “Is there a cure?” Twilight asked. “None that we found,” Luna said, shaking her head, “Though, we found that beating the tar out of the victims leaves them cold and unconscious long enough for you to find and defeat Valtor.” “Twilight, me and Luna will try our best to find where Valtor is, but I want you and your friends to return to Ponyville and find a way to stop it. Or at the very least, find Valtor,” Celestia said. “EXCEPT! For you, Sunset shimmer, you are to stay in Canterlot.” “Oh, I get it. Keep an eye on the criminal?” Sunset remarked, a bit of anger in her voice. “Not at all,” Celestia said, shaking her head. “You have attacked a very beloved pony in Ponyville. The populace will be quite angry with you, and if any of them have the plague in them... they’ll attack you on sight. Do not fear, though, I have arranged to reopen your old room and you can assist in finding a cure for this plague with my student.” Sunset walked by Celestia with a scoff and a flip of her mane, “Fine, but do not expect me to be reading any books.” Celestia sighed and shook her head, “Of course not.” Luna watched as Twilight and her friends left the  throne room, “Sister, are you sure that the red head is, in fact, a guardian?” “Yes, Luna,” Celestia nodded. “Then why did she not fold here?” asked Luna. “Perhaps she lacks the power too, maybe her powers have not fully bloomed,” Celestia stated. “And where are the other four, there are FIVE guardians!” Luna asked. “She is nowhere near as powerful as she should be!” “Yes, I know,” Celestia nodded. “A guardian alone, especially the keeper of the heart, is a very troubling sign indeed.”                            > D is for Dragon > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         As the rays of the sun hit Pinkie’s eyes, she gave a little yawn as she woke up. Stretching her forelegs over her head, she quickly turned her head back and forth to look around. As her eyes began to scan around the room, she began to notice a distinct lack of her friends or anypony else. For all intents and purposes, she was alone in the room, “Hey, where did everypony go? Where are all my friends?”         “They’re busy, probably trying to stay away from you,” said the blonde nurse as she walked in with some medication on a cart.         “Now that’s just silly. Why would my friends want to stay away from me?” Asked Pinkie with a giggle.         “Because you are one of the most annoying ponies I have met! Do you even listen to yourself? Always jumping, squeaking, and being all happy all of the bucking time! Celestia, it makes me sick!” said Nurse Trueheart, grumbling as she got her medications read for Pinkie.         Taking a glass of water, Pinkie quickly downed the pills, “Oh, I get it.. .somepony’s grumpy! Everything always seems more annoying when they’re grumpy.”         “I’m not grumpy!” Yelled the mare, her eyes narrowing in rage, “I am just telling you what is on my and probably your friends’ minds.”         “No you’re not! If you were speaking my friends minds, then you would have their heads on your shoulders,” Pinkie said, before giggling at the image. “My friends know I just try to keep their minds off of being all frowny and grumpy when they are in a bad situation. So, come on, tell nana Pinkie what’s on your mind!”         “I’m four years older than you,” the nurse said, shaking her head. “And nothing is on my mind, I’m just... tired.”         “Of what?” Asked Pinkie scooting closer on her bed.         “Of everything, of sick people getting sicker, of everything I do not being enough, and just being overworked,” the nurse said, letting out a sigh as she sat next to Pinkie.         “Hmmmm, sounds like you need a motivator. How about this, you helped me and there are a few other ponies who are feeling better because of you right?”         “Yeah, but-”         “Exactly, all of those butts would be hurting without you. So what if it seems like there is more, if you keep at it, it’ll shrink, right?” Asked Pinkie with a smile.         “Yeah, I guess,” said Trueheart, then she looked at Pinkie, who now had a bad wig and beard on. “What?”         “It’s my doctoring beard, it shows I’m a P-shycharitst!” Said Pinkie.         “But-that... how could,” as Trueheart began to work through the motions, she began to giggle and then laugh for a few moments. The to then began to swap stories and talk to each other about their lives, all the while, the pink pony found ways to bring a smile to Trueheart’s lips.         Near an alleyway in the crystal empire, a young stallion with a emerald cutie mark walked by a flash of light, “What?” He asked before walking into the alleyway, “H-Hello?”         “Hmmmm, interesting, not the form I expected but it will have to do,” said a suave voice from within the shadows. “You there, stallion, come to me.”         “Y-yes sir?” Asked Emerald Glance as he walked closer to the being in the shadows, trying to identify the being.         “Tell me, is Princess Cadence entertaining court today?” Asked the voice as he looked to a clothesline and grabbed some robes.         “Oh yes, Princess Cadence is holding her love court today. She’ll see everypony who has a problem and will try and help them. She is so nice like that,” said the stallion with a smile. He then looked at the figure with a glare, “Hey! Don’t go and steal-URK!”         “I’m not stealing, I’m borrowing,” said the stallion as he strangled the crystal pony with his magic. “I’ll  bring this back, when the empire is in flames.” With that, the being in shadows smirked as he dropped the stallion to the ground, dead. Walking towards the gleaming spires of the castle, the creature in shadows began to weave a spell across the land. One that began to slither and writhe  as dark tendrils slunk deep into the ground.         After a few moments, he made his way up into the castle and into the throne room, “And I think we’ll convene after one more case,” the pink alicorn said as she sat on the throne.         “Ah, good,” the being in the cloak said as he walked into the throne room. “I was hoping that, Princess Mi Amore Cadenza, princess of love and caring, would entertain me.”         “And who would you be, sir?” Cadence asked, looking at the thing in the cloak with a small bit of worry, “And please, it’s Cadence.”         “So this is what Nobility and Royalty have lowered themselves to? Allowing themselves to be called common names?” The man in the cloak said, removing his garb to the shock of the court, “My name is, Valtor of the Black Flame. And I have but one request, the Heart if you please.” “The Crystal Heart is not to be given freely,” Cadence said defiantly, “It belongs to the crystal ponies!”         “I knew you would say something to that effect,” Valtor said, a sick smile came to his lips as magic glowed in his eyes. “Which is why,” he stopped as the screams of crystal ponies could be heard down below. “I brought the ponies of the crystal empire here. It seems that the dead of the past, the ones that Sombra took and butchered, are not too happy about being forgotten by the public. They wish to talk, and make the world burn,” Valtor chuckled as the fires began to erupt in the city below.         “GIRLS!” Will exclaimed as she walked into a circle, looking at the four ponies around her. “Oh, I am so glad to see you. You don’t know how much I need you right...now?”         As Will walked closer to the four ponies, she watch in horror as they began to fade away, their bodies being taken away from her, “Goodbye, Will,” the auburn earth pony said, her body being dragged by a wave of water.         “Goodbye, Will,”  Cornelia said, the unicorn vanishing in a wave of starlight and moonbeam.         “Goodbye, Will,” Taranee said, the earth pony walking away into the dark.         “Goodbye, Will,” Hay Lin said, vanishing into a bright light.         “No! Girls, come back!” Will shouted, as her pleas were silenced by a booming laughter.         “Why, Will? I thought you knew where they are,” Valtor said, his voice carrying with it a sinister tone. “They are in Vanhoover, correct? You have so many memories of that place-”         “Of course I do I-” she was interrupted when she looked down at her hoof and saw a hand in its place. “W-what!!”         “A pony or a human? What are you? Do you even know?” Valtor asked, his voice coming from everywhere, “Maybe you should ask Twilight, maybe she might know what you are?”         Will shot awake from her bed as the dream ended, panting rapidly. Looking down at her body, she saw that she was still a blue pegasus with a weird pink cutie mark. Getting out of the bed, she gave her head a little shake in order to dispel the memory of the dream, hoping that it meant nothing and was just a nightmare. Perking her ears at the sounds of electricity and mumbling, Will began a slow walk down the stairs to where she thought she had heard Twilight, but was surprised to see nopony there, “If you’re looking for Twilight, she is in the lab down the basement. Though, I might warn you, she gets testy when ponies interrupt her,” Spike said.         “ARG! DARN IT!” Twilight screamed from within the basement, “557 spells in this stupid library and not a one of them is like this ‘hate plague’! AHHHH!”         “She, might be a while,” joked Spike.         Nodding with a small smile, Will began to flitter around the library. As she looked over some of the books, she began to try and figure out what was going on with her memories, “I was always a pony, wasn’t I? I mean, what else could I have been. I remember me and my friends meeting in Vanhoover, discovering our powers at Hay Lin’s, and then we became guardians. I can even remember being knighted by Cadence for what we-wait,” Will stopped herself as her hoof touched upon ‘multiversal theory’, “They...Hey Spike?”         “Yeah?” Spike asked, picking up some leftover papers around the table.         “Haven’t we-” before Will could ask, the front door of the library slammed open, a large green stallion standing in the doorway.         “WHERE IS ‘Princess’ TWILIGHT?” The stallion bellowed.         “Uh, who are UGGH!” Yelled spike as the unicorn lifted him with his magic and threw the young dragon across the room.         “Spike, what was that...SPIKE!” Yelled Twilight a she ran up the stairs and caught Spike in her magic. Lowering him down to the ground, she put a quick healing spell on him to keep him safe. Breathing out a sigh of relief at Spike’s dragon toughness, she turned to the unicorn who brought out his serrated knife, “Who are you?”         “You don’t need to know my name witch! That’s the problem with you pretentious piles of manure! You never pay attention to common folks like me, and then you just get the high paying offices handed to you. Well, not anymore, I’m gonna kill you!”  He bellowed, charging at Twilight and slashing at her.         Twilight quickly moved out of the way and charged up her horn, then her eyes noticed the symbol on the stallion's neck, “He has the hate plague! I have to be careful how I fight and not hurt him too badly, it isn’t his-AHHHH!”  She was knocked out of her thoughts by a right hook from the stallion. Getting up from being knocked against the books, she looked up to the stallion, “Celestia was right, they do get stronger from the plague. That punch really hurt!”         Will watched, trying to conjure up her inner magic that she had used a few days ago, “Come on, I need to hit him with something, anything!” Struggling, she tried to conjure up her inner spark, but then let out a gasp as a memory hit her.         “The one who holds the heart, has the power of Quintessence,” the old woman said as she poured some tea.         “Quin-whatta?” asked Irma, looking up from her bowl.         “Quintessence, means life don't it?” Asked Hay Lin.         “Yes, it does-” answered the old woman.         Watching the lightning crackle and charge around her blue hooves, she looked up at an unicorn statue head. “QUINTESSENCE!” She screamed, firing a surge of magical power at the object. She then watched in shock as the head came to life and leapt at the rampaging stallion, bashing him against the head and knocking him out.         Twilight stood in shock at the sight, “What, how did you?”         “I-I don’t know,” Will said, speechless. Looking down at her hooves in shock, she watched as the last remnants of lightning flowing from hoof to hoof.         Twilight’s eyes opened wide in wonder and curiosity as she picked up the pegasus and unicorn in her magic, “Oh, this is so utterly amazing! You have to tell me EVERYTHING!” With a squee, the alicorn pulled the two down into the basement and slammed the door. Once inside, she quickly strapped the unicorn to a table while letting the pegasus sit on a chair, “You know, I find it amazing that you can do unicorn magic like that. I mean, I have heard of bringing thing to life spells, but those were usually for very powerful unicorns, though I guess that includes me now that I am alicorn.” Without even turning to look  back at Will, the young princess fired an anesthetic spell at the unicorn, “But you! You did something unbelievably amazing, used unicorn magic. Pegasi usually use emptha, emotion magic, when it comes to their magic, but using an Unicorn’s arcana? That’s never happened, even if a pegasus had the blood of a unicorn in them. Just,” Twilight stopped to take a breath as she finished laying her testing equipment onto a small table, “HOW!?” “I-I don’t know,” Will said, shaking her head sadly. “All my memories come to me in little flashes, like I will see me and my friends standing around this old mare and she keeps talking to us about who we are and our ‘destiny’. She also keeps talking to me about what I can do, about what my powers are.” As Twilight listened to the blue pegasus, she used a small needle to draw out some blood from the insane unicorn, “And that’s all you can remember?” Will nodded, “ Other than where I live and my friends names.” “Who are they?” Twilight asked, putting some of the black ooze under a microscope and looking at it. “Well, there’s Irma and Taranee, both earth ponies. Hey Lin, a pegasus, and then there is Cornelia, an unicorn. We all come from,” Will held back a wince as the pain of her memories started up, “He-Vanhoover.”  “Vanhoover?” Twilight asked, out loud, “Isn’t that far away? Why did you come here?” “I-I-” “Hey Lin,” Will grunted as she looked to a small crater just a few feet away from the ruins of the high school. “Irma, Cornelia,” she said, struggling, but found that his grip increased the more she tried. Instead, she winced as she looked to the craters sitting side by side where two friends once stood, “...Taranee.” Will said, tearing up as the memory of her friend’s last moments came to her, “Where did you send them?” “Isn’t it obvious, my dear? I killed them,” the man said, smirking. “No, you didn’t. They’re alive, I can feel it! And I am going to find them!” Will said, her eyes looking back at the man’s golden ones. “Such determination, that is why you will lead me to the heart,” the man smiled, forming a ball of energy in his hand. “The-heart?” turning her eyes downward, she looked at the heart of Kandrakar around her neck. “The greatest heart of them all,” he said, placing the ball onto Will’s heart, “the heart of worlds.” Will blinked her eyes a few times, trying to get back the memory but watched it vanish from her mind quickly, “I don’t know.” “Maybe if you got a letter out to Vanhoover, you can figure it out. Who knows, maybe your friends are there,” Twilight said, putting the blood into the vial. “Spike should be ok by now. Have him send a letter to the princess and have her get in touch with Vanhoover.” Nodding, Will ran back up the stairs and sent out her letter. Once she was done, she walked back down to see Twilight growling in frustration, “Something wrong?” “It’s this virus, I can’t figure it out!” Twilight yelled as she walked to some of her other beakers, “This plague can’t be airborne, or else we would’ve contracted it earlier. It doesn’t seem to be liquid based or does it seem to be touch based, it just seems to be...There!” “So, magic based?” asked Will as she walked over to one of the microscopes and looked in it. “That’s the only explanation left, but that is the rub,” Twilight said, walking to the last beaker on the left.  “Watch this,” with a loud zap from her horn, the beaker was covered in a bright purple light. When the light faded away, the blood as still black, “That was a very powerful cure spell that Cadence once taught me, and it is supposed to cure certain magical diseases. But not this one.  I also know that, for magical diseases like this one to work, the caster need to be somewhere close by to begin the spell. This ‘plague’ started sometime after Sunset came into town, and she was infected too.” “So what you’re saying is...?” “That this has the elements of being a normal virus, but it’s power and effects are much more magical in nature. It’s like if somepony merged a spell with a virus,” Twilight said, looking over the vial before her. “This Valtor is close to being a magical genius! I mean to do a perpetual spell like this is utterly-” “TWILIGHT!” yelled  Spike as he ran down into the basement, “We have trouble!” “What is it Spike?” Twilight asked. “It’s the Crystal Empire, it’s under attack!” Spike said, running to Twilight with a panicked look in his eyes. The mood on board the train was unnaturally quiet as  the six mares rode off in the train. The five bearers sat in their seats, taking the time to look up at the window to see if they were getting closer to where their friend was under attack. Will, on the other hand, was trying to cope with her own memories. “What’s going on, Twilight?” asked Applejack as she ran with Twilight. “Cadence sent a letter asking for us to come and save the empire from a certain pony, Valtor,” Twilight said. “Isn’t Valtor the ruffian who-” Rarity asked catching up. “Yeah, and now we get a chance to kick his tail back to wherever he came from!” Dash said, a cocky smirk on her face. “Umm, shouldn’t we pick up Pinkie Pie?” Asked Fluttershy. “She still needs her rest, “ Dash said, speeding up her flight. “The nutball would just slow us down anyway.” The last part was softly muttered, but only Will caught part of it. “Why did Dash say that, it wasn’t like her,” Will said as the train bumped and moved along the track. “WAIT! How did I know that, I never... “...thank you all,” Cadence said, finishing her speech. “It was no problem, you majesty,” Will said bowing. “You know, if we were here,” Dash remarked, smirking, “we would’ve had this done in 10 seconds flat.” “Wait... they were there when me and my friends saved the empire? But I never,” Will then stopped herself for the moment.” Wait, I don’t remember ever-no wait, yes we did, it was right after our battle with Nerissa. We came to the empire and saved them... right?” Will then looked up to the bearers of harmony, her eyebrow arched in confusion, “Twilight, have we-” “Get ready girls, we’re here!” Dash exclaimed, looking out the window. “Oh, my goodness,” Fluttershy said, trembling as the train came into the station and looking ahead at the burning city. The blue and black flames arose high in the city beyond, some of the fires reaching high into the sky. Even from that distance, the screams and pleas of ponies could be heard. “We don’t have much time!” Twilight commanded as she and the others ran from the station to the city proper, “Rainbow, you and Fluttershy go and get some clouds to help with getting rid of this fire. Applejack, you help the guards to get the ponies to safety. Will, Rarity, you are with me.” “Where are we going?” asked Rarity as they split into their separate groups. “To the Crystal Heart, if Valtor is anywhere, he is going to be there,” Twilight said, while Applejack ran off to fight some decaying pony corpses. “Ok, what the hay are these things!?” Asked Applejack as she began to punch and kick the creatures. “Valtor called them the ponies of the past”,said one of the guards as he punched a few of the zombie puppets. “I think they’re the ponies that Sombra executed.” “Oh, buckin great,” Applejack said as she adjusted her hat and continued to help the ponies. Meanwhile, the three mares ran to the crystal heart and stopped when they saw a pony sized figure standing front of it, “Ah, so you have come, princess. I am humbled to be entertaining the presence of royalty twice in one day. And what do I the pleasure?” Valtor asked, turning around to reveal himself. “My word, he’s a dragon!” Rarity said in shock. “Yes, much to my dismay,” Valtor said as he stood on his hind legs. “I was expecting for this world to make me something much more elegant, like an alicorn.” He then gave his wide wings a flap as he walked in front of the three mares, widening his slitted eyes at the sight of Will, “ Will, welcome! I do hope you are enjoying your new world, or is it your old one?” “What do you mean?” Will asked. “Why not ask Twilight?” Valtor smirked, looking at the purple alicorn. “Ask her if there ever was a Will Vandom born in Vanhoover. Ask her if a Irma was ever born to a royal guard, or if Cornelia ever gotten dresses from Rarity?” “What are you talking about?” Will asked, growling, “Of course they did. I was born not far from Ponyville, and then I moved to Vanhoover a few years ago. Then...then...” “You met four friends, became the guardians, and helped to save this empire once. Correct?”Valtor asked, looking at the nodding Will, “Rarity?” "Guardians, what does she mean?" Twilight asked. "I-thought I knew," Will said, her mind racing. “I am sorry darling,” Rarity said as Applejack, Rainbow Dash, and Fluttershy arrived, “I don’t recall ever having a mare named Cornelia buying one of my dresses.” “But I-AHHHHHH!” Will screamed as she collapsed to the ground in pain. “Oh? What is this? Memory problems?” Valtor chuckled as he walked to the Heart, “Or, maybe they’re lying to you. Changelings, magic, or mind control are all available in this world. So maybe you have been born here, and they are just lying to you to get the Heart of Kandrakar. Who can you trust?” Asked Valtor as he laid a claw onto the heart. “Get away from that!” Dash yelled but was pushed back thanks to the dragon’s magic. “Hold, whelp!” Valtor shouted, “ I wasn’t thinking about using this heart. It is powerful indeed, but it is not the heart I am looking for. No, I am looking for something far more precious.” “What?” Asked Twilight. “You are smart, you can figure it out, princess,” Valtor chuckled as he flew off into the distance. Will, still writhing in pain, let out another scream as she fainted.          > E is for enemy > --------------------------------------------------------------------------          "I'm a pony," Will said as she stood in the darkness. "No, I'm not! I'm Will Vandom, I come from... Vanhoover? No! I-ARG!!!!!!” "Poor, poor Will," Valtor said in her mind. "You have no idea who you are anymore, do you?" "Yes I do! I'm a pegasus, I work with the guardians to protect the Veil. Me and my friends saved Equestria from dimensional threats!" Will argued, looking around for Valtor. The black dragon appeared behind her, cupping her chin, "Is that so? Then why did you not know how to fly? Or what about Twilight Sparkle? You met her once didn't you?" "I-I..." "Maybe I'm right, and Twilight is lying to you," Valtor chuckled as he vanished. "Wait, get back here!" Demanded Will as the world around her began to vanish into white. Will shot up in a bed to see a buttery yellow pegasus sitting next to her. The pegasus flew up with a start,"You're awake!" She said with a smile. "Oh, hey Fluttershy," Will said with a pant, before looking around her. "How long was I out?" “You passed out for almost an hour, we were all worried,” Fluttershy said, patting Will’s forehead. “I decided to stay with you while the others helped with the city. Are you all right?” Will nodded. She then looked to the capital city of the empire. The streets, though still being after the flames were quelled, were now cleansed of zombies, "Wow, things cleaned up quick once Valtor left. Where's Twilight?" Fluttershy blushed,"It was the weirdest thing, once Valtor left all of the zombies just... disintegrated." She looked towards the door,"Twilight is discussing things with our friends. We wanted to wait until you got better before we got back to Ponyville." "Thanks," Will said, getting out the bed slowly, trying to steady herself. "Besides I have something I need of her." Fluttershy helped Will up,"What would that be?" Will smiled softly at Fluttershy, "I need her to find out about some ponies in Vanhoover." Outside, Dash flew in the air, her scowl becoming worse, "What did that Valtor jerk mean by, 'this wasn't the heart that he was looking for?' That is the only heart for miles!!" Twilight looked up at her friend,"He was probably speaking figuratively." She looked back down as she said"If this wasn't the heart he was looking for, then why did he attack..." "Maybe he was using it as a distraction?" Rarity asked. "Yes, a distraction, but-"Twilight gasped,"We have to get back to Ponyville, now!" Will stepped out of the hospital room, "Why?" Twilight turned to Will,"Good, you're awake! Listen, I think Valtor's after the Elements!" "But they're stuck back in the tree, how can he get to them?" Applejack asked Twilight. "They were taken out once before, unless..." Twilight's eyes opened wide as she flapped her wings,"He's after the tree itself!" She grabbed Applejack in her magic,"Come on!" Valtor stood before the tree of harmony, a slick smile on his snout, "Now, this must be the heart of worlds." a low chuckle came from deep within his throat as he gazed at the crystalline tree A maniacal laughter filled the air as Valtor looked upon the tree,"Hey, aren't you the little drake who got beaten by those pretty little faeries?" "Who's there?" Valtor demanded, looking around. "My dear wizard, you didn't think you could come in here without facing any... chaotic resistance, did you?" The voice laughed again. "Chaos?" Asked Valtor to himself before opening his eyes wide, "Discord? Are you on this plane?" "Well, of course!" Discord popped out in front of Valtor,"After all, Harmony exists here." He looked at the tree behind him,"How are you doing?" He asked, not really expecting an answer from the tree. The tree said nothing, only gleaming in response. Valtor took a knee and spread his wings as he bowed, "It is a pleasure. My servant told me all about you: a multiversal entity. Someone who can exist in many forms on many universes. I am honored." he then walked closer to the tree, "I came here mainly to-AHHHHHHHHHH!" he pulled his black claw away, sizzling. Turning his slitted eyes up to the tree, he watched as it’s glow seemed to taunt him. "Honored!?" Discord beamed with pride, then he frowned,"I could've told you that was going to happen. But I didn't, you know why?" His face went to Valtor's,"Because you're not as smart as you think. You don't know everything, do you? Valtor waved his hand, trying to ignore his pain, "There are many things that have passed me by in my learnings. You’re right, I do not know everything. Sadly." he looked away, a growl escaping his snout. "Aw, poor dragon!" Discord said in a mocking tone. He gave a wide grin,"At least you admit something, except that you still don't realize your other major flaws." The black dragon walked next to Discord, "Other flaws? What flaws?" he growled that last word. "Oh, yes! You think you're great, yet you've been defeated! You're a master, yet you've always been a pawn, even now!" Discord grinned,"You are also very prideful, even compared to me. But that's all I’ve got to say. Be grateful, Twilight, Guardian." Discord said as he looked beyond Valtor. "I AM NOT A PAWN!" he yelled, wanting to burn Discord for the affront, but stopped when he heard hoofsteps "Oh, Will, Twilight, a pleasure to see you and your friends arrive to the tree. However, I am afraid that this isn't the heart I am looking for either, but a very powerful magical source nonetheless," the black dragon smiled, opening a portal and began to walk into it. Twilight growled as she reached the spot where Valtor left,"Darn it!" She looked up at Discord,"What did you mean?" Discord smiled,"You girls figure it out. I have other matters to attend to. First, don't you have something to ask Twilight, Will?" He said, before snapping his fingers and disappearing. "Not the heart..." Will looked down at the crystal around her neck. She then turned to look at Twilight, "Twilight, I need you to look up some ponies in Vanhoover by the names of Irma Lair, Taranee Cook, Cornelia Hale, and Hay Lin." Twilight nodded and turned to walk out of the cave,"Be grateful... he must've been giving us a clue..." She said as they walked out of the cave. "What clue?" Rainbow asked, throwing her hooves in the air. "This is Discord! His clue is probably something that leads to nowhere!" "Rainbow, you know that's not true! Discord can be helpful, when he tries to be," Fluttershy argued. Rainbow only scoffed as the group walked out of the forest. Her magenta eyes looked towards the hospital, "Isn't she out, yet?" she growled. Will stood at the back of the group, wobbling a little as a voice rang in her head, "The heart... Rarity turned to Will,"Something wrong?" She asked. "No, I’m fine," Will said, giving a small shake of her head as the voice said again, "The heart... You are the possessor of... Twilight looked at the hospital building,"Why don't you girls check on Pinkie, while I do a little research?" The girls nodded, while Dash gave a huff, "Love too, but can't. I have some jobs that need to be done. See ya!" "What's gotten into her?" Applejack asked. Rarity flipped her mane, "She's just being her usual self!" she scoffed. "I'll go check on her," Fluttershy said,”I’m worried "I am going with Twilight," Will said, getting re-oriented. As Rarity and Applejack entered the hospital, they found that the mood was a little lighter than is expected of a hospital. At the desk, a little mare with black mane sa,t looking at a photo, "Oh! Hello. And what brings you two to the hospital?" she said as she watched the duo enter. "My, everything here's chipper." Rarity said. "We're here for our friend, Pinkie Pie." Applejack answered the mare at the desk. Nite Nurse smiled, "Sure, she is in room 303. I trust you know the way." AJ and Rarity nodded as they went towards room 303. As the two mares walked in, they could see on Pinkie's bed a mare with a sheet covering her body. Rarity gasped,"Pinkie!" She and Applejack ran to the sheet,"Oh, my poor, dear old friend! I can't believe you're gone!" She said in an over dramatic tone. The pony under the blanket spoke, "Me neither. Maybe if they gave me some cake or something sweet, I wouldn't be gone." Applejack teared up,"Alright, I've got some pie here with me right now!" she said, producing a piece of apple pie from her saddlebags. "At last! Can you believe those silly nurses have me on a diet in here? They keep saying 'need to watch your sugar' or ' need to eat a balanced meal'. I am keeping balanced!" she said, throwing her hooves in the air. Hungrily, she took the pie and forced the entire thing into her mouth. Applejack chuckled,"They must not be used to you yet." "Yeth, anth teff are a buff of grumffy a buff of gumfy panfffs," Pinkie said through her food. Rarity used her magic to wipe some of the crumbs off, "Pinkie, please, swallow." "Pinkie, they're only looking out for ya," AJ said. "But they've been really grumpy. Like sometimes, they'll scream or rant at other ponies. There was a colt in here that almost started to cry because of one of them. Of course, after I was done talking to them, they were nicer again," Pinkie giggled. "So, what has been going on outside?" Applejack blinked and looked at Rarity,"Well," She looked back at Pinkie,"A lot of ponies have been... mean outside too." "Really?" Pinkie asked, her ears drooping. "That's so sad. Don't worry! I'll be out soon and I can make everypony happy again!!" "Yeah, cuz the world needs a healthy Pinkie Pie," AJ said with a smile. "And we need you, dear," Rarity said, hugging Pinkie. As Dash flew in the air, she looked over her shoulder to see Fluttershy flying behind her, "What do you want, Fluttershy?" "Um, well, you've been acting really strange lately." Fluttershy said, landing on a small cloud. "Strange?!" Dash yelled, glaring into Fluttershy's blue eyes, "and how the buck have I been strange? Hmm?" "Eep!" Fluttershy shrunk back into the cloud. "I haven't been acting strange in the least! If anything-" she stopped herself, as if she held back some inner rage. "Look, I'm fine, really. Just annoyed that we couldn't find Valtor. Now, just let me GO!" "But, Rainbow, y-you've been acting so mean!" Fluttershy said, weakly. "No, I haven’t!" Dash Argued, " I have just been acting normally. I-this is about Pinkie, look, the mare can take anything and come out like roses. That is just how she is. Now, do me a favor and just go home!" "But you need me!" Fluttershy yelled, a worried look crossing her features. Dash had her back to Fluttershy, growling softly to herself as she held up a hoof. Then she looked at it and shook her head, lowering it slowly, "You're right, maybe I just need some rest. Thanks Flutters," she said, turning around hugging her tightly. A soft smile crosses her lips, "How about I check up on Pinkie tomorrow, while I get some rest today. Ok?" Fluttershy hugged her back,"That would be great." Rainbow Dash nodded and flew off to her home. As she landed, she punched at her cloud walls as hard as she could, growling to herself, "Stupid Fluttershy! Stupid Pinkie Pie! I don't need to check up on any of them! They were just messing me up! We could've had that guy by now if we didn't have them! Maybe it would be better if they,” Rainbow blinked,” what am I saying? What was I thinking!" Dash said, shaking her head. Taking a quick look outside, she decided to take another flight out of her home. At the Library, Will followed Twilight in, looking at the small crystal around her neck. Softly, the pink gem glowed, a little dimmer now that it had left the side of the Tree of Harmony. Slowly, she began to rub the crystal in her hoof, trying to see if it would spark her memory. Twilight looked up towards the second floor as she trotted,"Spike! I'm going do a little research, could you please send a request for some census forms from Vanhoover?" "Sure thing, Twilight!" Spike said from upstairs. Will walked around the library, the amulet around her neck glowing softly. Her mind began to think back to what Valtor had said, trying to shake of her sense of doubt and fear, "I live here. I was born here, I helped mom with foaling my brother. Wasn't I-" "Will, this is your new baby brother!" Will’s mother smiled at her. "I warn ya Will, little sibs can be trouble." A light blue earth pony with auburn hair smiled. "Hey, I am a little sibling!" Taranee, a black woman argued. "Sorry Taranee." Irma blushed, now a pony once more. Will stumbled back a little, the image of her friends changing between a pony and a human rapidly. In her tumble she knocked a book off its shelf and onto her head. Twilight turned to the sound of the book hitting a pony,"You alright!?" She said as she ran over to Will, and picked the book up in her magic. Will stumbled for a bit before nodding, then reading the book' title, "The Power of a Heart by Wise Sage. Twilight, I think this is the right book!" Twilight looked at the book, and then opened it's pages. "The heart" the book read "Is the source of magical energy within a dimension. Although it’s usually seen taking the form of a gem, it has  also been known to be a person or an object that is linked with that dimension's core virtue. Held by only a few, the Heart is meant to be guarded in secret or protected by that world's champion." As Will listened to Twilight read the book, her mind began to fill with memories of her standing with four other humans and/or ponies, watching others get hearts. An old woman held up her staff, standing in a throne room, "Now, I have the Heart of Meridian!" "The Heart of Mana," a man in a black cloak chuckled as he held a young woman by the throat. An old pony with a balding mane lead Will through a small cave to where a beacon of light shown, several crests flew by, "Behold, young guardians, the Heart of the Digital World." "The Heart is usually hidden to all but a few.” Inside of the book were images of a jolly roger, a compass, a black heart, and a mushroom, each Heart unique in its own way, "Each Heart of a world has its own ability. Detection, protection, light, and there are even some hearts that bind others. No Heart is stronger than the other, the only difference is in the wielder and the Heart’s energy source." "Does it say anything about our world's heart?" Will asked "We'll see..." Twilight said. Canterlot Castle... Celestia sighed as she watched the yellow unicorn studying like a mad mare, "Oh Sunset... I think your time in the other world has done you good." Slowly she turned and began to walk away from the library entrance. As she walked, she looked to her side at the shadows, "Questions, my dear Luna?" "You always seem to know where I am, Sister." Luna said as she appeared from the shadows with a pout. She looked back at Sunset,"What are we going to do about her, sister?" "You haven't been able to trick me since our father was able to fly you on his back," Celestia giggled. She then turned her head back, "I do not know. I had her search for a cure in order to give her a job to do. But I know deep down she only wishes to find a way back to her world." A sigh escaped the white alicorn's lips. "She is much like Twilight in that regard, both won't stop to find an answer to a problem, even if it seems impossible." Luna looked back at Sunset,"Are you sure we can't find another way to send her back?" Celestia sighed, "The mirror is broken. I've been to the empire and Cadence has told me about it. It also seems that we are cut off from other dimensions as well. Starswirl mirror is dead at this moment, and try as I might, I cannot use my magic to try and leave this dimension. It is as if we have been cut off." "Cut off!?" Luna growled as she stomped her hoof,"It must be Valtor's doing!" In the shadows, next to a gargoyle, sat a black dragon statue, unseen and unheared by others. Slowly, he let out a small chuckle and snuck into the library and watched Sunset, "Now, my lady Sunset. Please tell mewhat you have discovered," he whispered to himself, trying to find a hiding place. You think you're great, yet you've been defeated! You're a master, yet you've always been a pawn, even now!" "Not a pawn," Valtor growled to himself, clenching his claw. Sunset shoved another book in the 'read' section,"Come on! Do any of these books have anything on the plague!?" She put her head down on the table. A white unicorn walked behind Sunset and bumped into her, "Oh, sorry. I hope I wasn't bothering you." Sunset turned to the unicorn,"No, you weren't bothering anyone,"She muttered,"I wasn't making progress anyway..." "Don't be like that!" Pinkie placed her hands on the desk,"I bet the answer is where you least expect it!" "Pinkie, that doesn't help." Sunset said "Would it help if I gave you my calculator?" Pinkie brought out her overtly pink device. "This is a History paper, not a Math paper." Sunset frowned. "Would it help if I brought Twilight from the other dimension!?" "It hasn't been thirty moons yet." Sunset said "Well, darn! How could I help if you're so picky!" Pinkie said, still grinning, as she hit the table, causing the book to flip it’s pages "Pinkie, tha-that's exactly the page I need!"Sunset looked at the book, and gave a small giggle. "Pinkie Pie, you know how to cure a good amount of frustration." Sunset said, laying her head down with a smile. Then she blinked,"Wait, frustration? Pinkie? No, that-that can't be it! But the Hate Plague is magical in nature..." She beamed as she grabbed the unicorn behind her,"I have to tell Twilight my hypothesis!" The unicorn stumbled back as she was shaken by Sunset, "Oo-okay!" The doors to the library quickly closed, "Care to tell me, too?" Valtor asked, stepping behind the unicorn, and looking at Sunset. "Ah, so this is you in unicorn form, how beautiful." Sunset glared at Valtor. She looked down at the unicorn,"Run." She said as she grabbed her pen, and ran towards the Humor section of the library. The unicorn nodded, running away. Using her magic to force open the library doors, she ran out towards the throne room. Valtor turned and walked towards Sunset, "Why do you run, Sunset? All I want to do is talk," he said, walking down the Humor section, but looked to History. " What about histories? What about myths? What about a certain Heart?" Sunset touched a few books in the Humor section,"Sorry, there's somepony more important than the Heart! By the way, I love your new look!" Sunset said, running down another section. "Why thank you, my dear," Valtor took a moment to bow as he walked down the aisles. "But who is more important than the heart?” "My friend!" Sunset said, grinding her pen along the floor as she galloped off. “Your friend? Surely you mean Twilight’s friend, you are just a replacement,” The black dragon continued his slow walk, a grin coming on to his face as he saw the pen lines, "Oh my dearest Sunset, what are you trying to do? You know full well that your magic is inferior to mine." Sunset shrugged off his insult, focusing on her task, "You know what? You're right. I mean, I couldn't possibly stand up to such a magnificent creature such as you!" Sunset said in a mocking tone as she ran to the Science section, and looked at a window,"Unless, I show my true power to you, then you might have a problem." "True power?" Valtor belted out a laugh, "Child, I was born before Celestia and Luna! I was there when the very kingdom you stand in was founded! I watched the defeat of Discord, and I was sealed away long before Luna was ever Nightmare Moon. I am far older than what you give me credit for, so no power you possess is a match for me." "I do have the power to keep you talking!" Sunset's voice said. The symbols on the ground glowed as Sunset kept talking,"I left this library a long time ago."She laughed as a few books in the humor section teleported away. Sunset ran through the streets, her horn glowing,"Come on, Twi! Please figure this out!" "WHAT?!" Valtor growled as she slammed his fist against the History section. "OH well, at least I found my book. I was going to have her find it for me and take it, but... having this will do. Now, my little book, tell me your secrets." I have maybe two minutes before Sunset can get the princesses on my tail. I better find the page quickly, or... A sword flew towards Valtor's face, as a midnight blue alicorn glared at him,"Valtor, you son of nitch!" "Nadir, a blade that I have not seen in ages," the black dragon smirked as he moved to the side letting the sword hit the bookcase and spear some books. "Princess Luna! Does you mother Queen Terra or Princess Celestia know that you use such rude language on nobles?" Drat! I was hoping to find what I needed before the princesses get here. " Tell me, have the years been kind to you?" "You are no noble, monster!" Luna shouted, her horn charging Nadir with lighting and swinging it at Valtor. Valtor ducked under the blade, wincing at the pain from the sword nicking his wing, "But I am a noble. Raised by the fairy queen with black heart, and taught the ways of nobility by a horned king, I am the dragon of black night. I am just as noble as you are, Nightmare!" he added, lunging at Luna to swipe at her with his claws. (Thirteen seconds to set up a teleport spell, `10 seconds to think of a place to go that I have been to in this world. Need time!) Luna stepped to the side, wincing as the claws hit her cheek,"I'm no longer a Nightmare! Although, I'm tempted to become yours!" Luna sent a wave of telekinetic force at Valtor. Valtor grunted as he was slammed into some of the bookshelves, "(ten seconds are done, now need a location) I am honored, princess. but I do believe I have other appointments." Luna gasped, as she realized what Valtor meant,"Don't you run from me!" she ran at him, her horn glowing. "Oh but I will, fair Princess," Valtor said, opening a portal behind him. "Ta-ta, Night Queen!" he began walking into the portal. Luna growled in frustration as she fired a lightning bolt at Valtor. Valtor let out a laugh as he entered the portal. The bolt harmlessly striking the ground.  Celestia landed next to Luna, using her magic to fix parts of the library, "Where do you think he went, Luna?" Luna frowned,"He could be anywhere he's been before! How could we find him now!?" She looked around in anger Celestia shook her head, "I have no idea, but I am glad that Sunset was able to tell us about him when you did." the princess of the sun said as she turned and began nuzzling Sunset. Valtor landed at a castle in the Everfree, 'The Castle of the Two Sisters. Not my best choice for an escape, but it will have do." Sunset backed away a bit from the nuzzle,"Yeah," She looked at the place where Valtor left,"What kind of book did he want anyway?" Celestia walked to the history books, "Maybe there is a clue here. Luna, did you see what book he held in his hand before you came to fight him?" Luna thought for a moment,"I saw it, but I didn't see the title." Celestia picked up some of the history books and handed them to Sunset, "I think you might be able to find it, dearest Sunset." Sunset nodded as she went to search the books. Twilight rubbed her hoof along the side of the books when she heard a *pop*. She looked up and opened her mouth wide in shock as she watched several books fall on top of her. Spike shook his head as he walked by,"I swear, you're like a magnet for these kinds of situations!" "Are you all right?" Will asked, trying to help Twilight with the pile of books. A purple hoof popped out of the books, followed by a head,"I'm fine," Twilight shook her head,"I think my head's building a resistance to this, unless that's the concussion talking." She used her magic to pick up the books,"The Science of Comedy? Laughter: The Best Cure? The Hitchpony's Guide to the Galaxy?" She went through the pile of books,"These are all based around comedy. Why would somepony send me this?" She then noticed markings written in ink on the bindings,"Three. Point. One. Four? What does pi have to do with comedy?" Will looked over the books, "Maybe whoever sent you these wanted dessert? Wait... pie?" Twilight frowned at her,"Pi is a num-" Twilight stopped before she could correct Will,"Comedy? Pie? Pinkie Pie!" Twilight said with a grin,"Of course! That's why Valtor had Sunset go after Pinkie!" Twilight grabbed Will,"The Plague is magical in nature, so the cure itself must also be magical! That was Doctor D. H. Filliams' theorem on medical magic! So, the plague must require the Element of Laughter!" She then frowned,"But Pinkie's still in the hospital..." Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"How do we get Pinkie to cure the plague..." She looked to her left and saw a mega-phone,"That's it!" "What is it?" Will asked. "First, we need to head to the KCOLT radio station!" Twilight said as she went towards the door,"Spike, hold down the fort!" "Right!" Will said, flying after Twilight. Spike gave a salute as Twilight left. Twilight ran to the station, hearing Vinyl's voice over the waves,"Hello, and welcome to the Vinyl Scratch! I'm afraid Octy can't be here right now-" "I will end you!" shouted a voice "She's kinda tied up at the moment." "DJ!" Twilight shouted as she entered the room, and looked at the tied up Octavia.”What in the -?” Will looked on in shock as she walked into the room, "Ok, so what happened here?" Vinyl grinned as she turned to watch the two enter,"Well, lookie here! Fillies and Gentlecolts, The illustrious Princess Twilight Sparkle has made an unexpected guest appearance!" She pointed at Octavia,"In case you missed it, Princess, Octy here got angrier than usual, and then attacked me!" "I'll kill you!" Octavia shouted. "Love ya too, Tavi." Vinyl smiled at the normally refined earth pony, she turned to the alicorn,"What brings you here?" "I need you and your crew over to the Ponyville Hospital!" Twilight said, running into the booth and pointed at Octavia,"We have a cure for this!" "Good, I'm getting tired of Octy's love songs." Vinyl said. "Die!!!" Octavia frothed at the mouth. Will couldn't help but chuckle as she she thought of two of her friends with a similar relationship, “They must be really close friends normally. No way they would put up with each other like this.” Vinyl dragged Octavia by the rope while she and her crew followed Twiligh to the hospital.t,"Well, this shouldn't take long!" Twilight looked at the DJ after explaining the hate plague,"I thought you would be the first one to get infected with the Hate Plague." "Nah, I'm too zen for that!" DJPON-3 said with a grin. "You overzealous pain in the flank!" Octy ranted "Uh, Vinyl, be careful. Some of the equipment hopes that you guys make up soon. They don't like it when you fight for real." Will said. Vinyl blinked as she pulled down her shades,"Whoa, you can talk to my equipment? That's cool!" She smiled, a toothy grin. “Yeah, it’s kind of weird,” Will said, trying to figure out why. Twilight headed up to the front desk,"Excuse me, we need to see Pinkie Pie." "Room 303," night nurse said, pointing to the elevator. Twilight and her group went up towards the room, where AJ and Rarity were about to leave. "Hey Twi-" Applejack was about to say before she and the white unicorn were pushed back into the room. "No time to talk, girls!" Twilight said as she walked into the room,"Pinkie!" She said as she went to the pink mare,"How are you feeling?" "Super!" Pinkie squealed, looking at her friends, "The nurse said I can leave tomorrow and...” she looked at Vinyl and her crew,” Ooh, what are we partying for?" Twilight grinned,"Well, we're trying to cure a very bad case of meanness." "I'll murder you in your sleep!" Octavia shouted. "Basically, we want you to sing." Twilight said, glaring at the earth pony. Pinkie Pie smiled, "Twilight, you got it!!" grabbing the microphone in her hooves. She watched as Vinyl gave the signal. "Why didn't she ask any questions about why?" Will asked. "It's Pinkie, she doesn't need a reason to sing," Applejack smirked. The song played loudly through the radio of Vinyl's equipment, sending the waves of music through every radio that was tuned in. Everywhere that Pinkie's voice was heard, ponies that were once filled with rage now found themselves quelled of their anger. The mark of Valtor, once prominent on a lot of ponies bodies were now fading into nothingness. From within the castle of the two sister's, Valtor watched Pinkie's healing music flow, " Well played, Sunset. Well played. Although, I consider this a small victory. The information to the Heart of Worlds on the other hand...is now mine. Surely this castle will have the information I require.” The music continued to flow from Ponyville to the city of Canterlot and beyond, curing the ponies of the hate plague. Celestia, watching her former students look through the books of history, could only sigh as she felt the healing wave course through the palace, "You do me proud, my faithful students...." Octavia shook her head as she went to normal,"Vinyl," She looked at the ropes,"Is this another one of your games?" She blinked as Vinyl gave her a big hug. "Shut up and hug me!" the DJ said. She picked up the microphone,"And that was the Element of Laughter herself, Fillies and Gentlecolts! Now do your fav DJ a favor and hug the next pony you see!" "OK!" Pinkie Pie giggled as she hugged all of her friends that were in the room. Valtor walked through the old library, "Now, by my mother's good grace, I might be able to read some history in peace." "Heart of Worlds?" A raspy voice called out to Valtor,"You have high aspirations, don't you, Drake?" "Who's there?! Discord?" Valtor asked, turning his head at the noise. "No, but I would like to meet him one day." Te raspy voice said,"I'd rather not speak my name, it would give too much away. Instead, I'd like to help you." Valtor closed a book, "I seem to be getting a lot of 'help' lately, but I am listening, how can you help me get to what I want?" "Well, first, I need to know why you want the Heart of Worlds so badly." The voice said. "When I was resurrected by my servant, she gave me the history of the hearts. She told me about their magical power and how strong they would make a person," Valtor opened his dragon fist and looked at his palm. "But, then she told me of a heart that is connected to the very multiverse itself. The heart that is connected to all worlds. The person who can lay claim to such a heart would become the most powerful mage in the multiverse. Worlds would fall before him and none would stand against him. If I were to gain that heart, I would never fall again. I would never be betrayed by my mentor again as I am slain by a faerie and used as a puppet to test my other half!" With that, he slammed his fist against the stone wall hard, "The owner of that heart... would finally stand on top of it all." a low growl escaped his lips as he pulled his claw away, looking at the mark. "Ah, I know betrayal all too well." The voice growled,"You are ambitious, I like that. Allow me to give you a little bit of advice: Celestia would not place the location of a piece of the Heart of Worlds in an obvious, unprotected location such as this." " Then where could it be? I have checked the crystal archives and I know that fool Sombra would not have the location," Valtor asked, looking for the voice. "Try looking for something that Celestia holds precious. And look for specific wording. A heart can mean many things after all." The voice chuckled. Valtor walked to a nearby chair and sat down, "Something she holds precious..." > F is for Familial > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- “What would the princess hold precious above all else?” Valtor asked,  looking to the cloaked figure. "I wouldn't know who that would be, but you may be able figure it out." The figure walked away. He grabbed a mouse in his red hand and opened his mouth wide, absorbing the magic from it,"This will be interesting." the figure said as he dropped the small animal. A light chuckle escaped his lips as he walked out of the castle. Valtor sat back on a chair, listening to it creak, "The ponies of Equestria? Well, that goes without saying, she is a princess, so of course her ponies are important. No, I have to think more personal." with a chuckle, he held up his clawed hand and began to count, "Twilight, Sunset, and Cadence, surrogate daughters. Those she would give Equestria for, but... there is one who she would give everything for..." A throaty chuckle escaped his lips as he began to think The girls left the hospital and caught sight of Spike running towards them, "Spike dear, whatever is the matter?" Rarity asked. Spike panted as he held up the letter,"It's from the princess!" Twilight took the letter in her magic and opened it,"It's the population forms, but there's something attached to it..." She took a note out,"Look for the code in the heart's book." "Heart's book? What in tarnation does that mean?" Applejack asked. Will landed next to Twilight and looked over her shoulder, "More importantly, what does it say about the people I asked about? Irma, Taranee, Cornelia, and Hay Lin!?" Twilight looked at the forms, then frowned before looking at Will,"I... don't know how to tell you this..." "Well come on, tell me!" Will said, trying her best to not take the forms out of Twilight's magic. "I need to know!" Twilight sighed as she looked again,"Your friends aren't here." Will’s eyes opened wide as she stumbled back,  her entire body trembling "W-what? B-but they have to be there. They were born there and I remember being-" Can't trust her "There with them when I-" She is lying. She wants the heart "Twilight, maybe her friends were all sent away?" Rarity asked. Twilight turned to Rarity,"I asked for birth records, even if they were sent away, their names would still be in there." "N-no. That's wrong," Will said, backing up and trembling. Her mind started to race through memories faster than ever. “You can't trust her!,” an old voice spoke out. "My name is Narissa," an old Pony said, bowing. “She just wants the heart,” the voice spoke again "You know Phobos just plays with your head," Irma said, looking ahead at a burning city. “You-” the voice was quickly interrupted by a young female’s voice, speaking with a soft comforting tone Please, trust her. They are your only chance. Trust them for now, they are your friends A pair of pink hooves grabbed Will as she stumbled back, "Whoops!" “P-pinkie. What are ya doing out here, Ah thought the nurse said you had to stay in for another day?” Applejack asked. Pinkie giggled as she lifted up Will, “The nurse saw how well I was acting and figured that I could leave a day early.” Twilight looked at Will with concern in her eyes,"Will? It's okay, we'll find your friends." She walked up and put a hoof on her shoulder. Will looked up at Pinkie Pie and smiled, "Thanks for the catch.” turning to look at Twilight she smiled, “You'll do that for me?" Twilight turned to her friends with an uncertain look, before turning back to Will,"Yeah, anything for a friend." “So, yeah, that’s why I was a little nervous about making you guys my friends at first,” Will sighed, a frown on her blue muzzle. "I'll kill them, I'll freaking kill them!" IRma said, walking next to her friend. "Irma, calm down," Cornelia said, placing a hoof onto the blue earth mare's shoulder. "Irma, its ok, really," Will sighed ."Those were just a-holes." "But they were only friends with you because your parents divorced. I mean, you have got to feel-" "Mad, not at all. Actually, I want to thank them," Will smiled. "They helped me to remember who real friends are. What real friends are like." "This hug needs some guardians, stat!" Hey Lin smiled, glomping her friend) "Thanks," Will let out a breath, "but what about the rest of the message?" "What message," Fluttershy asked, flying in. Twilight smiled at the new arrival,"Celestia sent me a message saying something about looking for the code in the book of hearts." She looked at her,"How's Rainbow?" She says," Fluttershy said, turning her head and trying not to remember how angry Dash looked. "She's fine, and she just needs some rest." Will looked at Twilight, "Do you think the code is in that heart book we found?" "Let's to the library to see that book again," Twilight said,'Although, I didn't see anything that could be considered a code...' she thought. With a slow walk the six mares and one dragon went to the library. "My lord," an old pony said, appearing next to Valtor. The dragon smiled as he looked to the old mare, her cane stuck to her hoof, "Greetings my dear servant. Tell me, how are the guardians doing at this moment?" "It is as you had requested, I have given the other four the tools and motivation they need to begin the hunts for their Hearts," the pony said, bowing. "And my hate plagues?" Valtor asked, running his claws along the table. "I am afraid only one of the carriers have made it to their destination. The others have all died," the old mare whispered. "Good, and are you sure of the time displacement?" The old mare nodded, "It is as I said before, the dimensions run on different time scales. You are free to spend as much time here finding the heart as you want. A brilliant plan, my lord. One that you came up with." "Yes... I did," Valtor muttered, looking at his claws. "Servant? “What is that staff you wield?” Valtor asked, his legs wobbling as he righted himself “Why, it is the heart of a world, my lord,” the old woman said, running her hand along the gnarled cane. “A...heart?” Valtor asked. "This is my plan right?" Valtor asked, looking at the old pony’s eyes. "Yes, it is. You came up with it the moment I told you about the tale of the hearts, all I did-" she smiled softly, "was give you the tools for it." "T-that's what I thought," Valtor said. "You have doubts?" the lady said. "No, none at all... Celestia walked into the library, "Did you find anything, Sunset?" Sunset jumped at Celestia's voice, her flank hitting the book she was reading. She coughed,"Well, I've only been able to gather a little information. This book does have quite a bit of data about hearts, but nothing on the Heart of Worlds..." "The Heart of Worlds? W-where did you hear about such a thing?" Celestia asked, a shiver running through her body.. "Valtor said something about it. Why?" Sunset looked at Celestia with a raised eyebrow. "Because it is a very powerful object, one thought to be legend," Celestia said, walking next to her student. Sunset stepped back a little from Celestia,"So if Valtor finds it, he may become unstoppable." "Yes," Celestia sighed, hating the feeling of distance from her student. "Sadly, I have only heard of such an item, but,” Celestia paused, “not its location. However, I have heard that it is said "Twin students of the Sun will find the location." Celestia said, walking out of the library. As she walked, a small tear dropped down her cheek, "Have I become such a boogey-pony in her eyes?" "Celestia! Help me! there's a spider"- a five -year-old Sunset screamed, running to her mentor’s side. "Celestia, can you help me?" a ten-year old Sunset asked, "Tia... I love you.” a twelve-year old Sunset said, hugging her mentor. “ This is my mothe-" Sunset began as she talked to the instuctor The white alicorn shook her head, trying to wipe the memory away. Discord slinked out of the window of the library, a note carried in his hand,"You may not know where it is... but I do." he laughed as he copied Celestia's horn writing on the note,"But Twily doesn't have to know that." He laughed as he drank his wine glass of chocolate milk and quickly added it to the population forms. He threw the chocolate milk away and flew off. "Tia, she's probably more scared of herself than of you." Luna appeared from the shadows again. "What do you mean, Luna?" Celestia asked, looking to her sister. "I know from experience." She said with a frown. The white alicorn said nothing, just gave her sister a large embrace. After a few minutes of hugging, Celestia then asked, "So, what do you think we should do to help her?" "Well," Luna said, not letting go,"You could try spending a little more quality time with her. No work, just spend time with her." Celestia nodded, "Probably that would be best." Back in the castle, Valtor looked at the two statues of Sunset and Twilight, then to Luna, "Which one first." “My liege,” whispered the olden unicorn, running her hoof along her glowing staff, bowing. May I recommend you send me?” “What?” Asked Valtor. “I have had experience in the dream world. True, it is nothing compared to Luna’s power, but I can manipulate it so that she would not be able to detect me,” the mare smiled. “Then go, bring me what you find,” Valtor said, running his claws along the table. Twilight searched through the book, pieces of paper with notes written on them were laid all around her,"What code!?” Twilight stomped her hoof in frustration.”I've searched every misspelling, every highlighted word, even strung together all the first letters of each paragraph! What am I missing?!" Twilight slammed her head on the desk in frustration,"Darn it! What in Tartarus am I supposed to be looking for!" She sat back up as her eyes suddenly went over to a health book. Will sighed, "Maybe the answer isn't in these books." she then noticed Twilight walking to the health book. "Ok, it couldn't be...” "It sounds odd," Twilight said as she ran her hoof over the spines of some of the tomes,"But what if we're looking in the wrong place? What if it's a play on words!?" She said as she picked a book titled, ‘The Equine Heart by D. H. Filliams.’ Twilight opened it and looked at the editor,"Hony Arm? Weird name." "I know," Pinkie giggled as she began to look through another book. "It sounds like Harmony or something!" Twilight blinked at Pinkie, then looked back at the name, then looked back at Pinkie with a wide grin,"Pinkie, you're a genius!" She said as she hugged Pinkie. She spun around and opened it up,"Look, These letters are written differently than the others... " Twilight began as she wrote down on notebook paper. Applejack chuckled as she walked over to Rarity, "Sometimes Ah think Pinkie is smarter than she looks." "So, it’s some sort of weird code?" Will asked, cocking her head. Twilight continued to jot down the letters,"The Heart of Worlds..." Twilight read out as she turned to Will,"Yes, it's code, excuse me," She turned back around and flipped through more pages. Spike shook his head,"Great, she's in her own little world again." Will giggled as Spike said that, thinking to a young black girl who would do the same. "... There, I think I got the code down," Twilight said, as she jotted down the last of the letters. The girls gathered around Twilight, "What does it say?" asked Applejack asked. "The Heart of Worlds is hidden in the decayed land of nothingness, the gates lay in sand, steel, and water." Twilight recited. She laid the notes down and tucked her hoof under her chin. "What in tarnation does that mean?" Applejack asked, scratching her head. "I think the gates are places in other countries. And those gates lead us to this Heart." Twilight said as she laid her hoof down. "But, Twilight, where do you think those places are?" Rarity asked. "Well, for sand, I would say Zebrica, but Saddle Arabia's got more desert land. Tauros is well known for it's steel crafting. And Aquastria is the most obvious place for sea."Twilight answered after she picked up a globe and pointed to the various countries. "But do we even know that Valtor has any clue to this?" Will asked, looking at the three locations on the map. "He probably doesn't know about this." Twilight said,"But I hope he doesn't find out about it." She turned to the others,"We  have to get to it before he does." "Just say the word, sugar cube, and we'll be right with ya," Applejack said. "Ah bet Rainbow would say the same, if she were here." "Will, surely you don't mind us taking a break from find-" "I think," Will interrupted. "That somehow, finding out about the heart of worlds... is connecte to my memories." Celestia walked into the library, "Sunset? I think it is time you stepped away from the books, there is something I need to show you." Sunset looked up at Celestia from her book,"Um, this is kind of important..." She said, scooting away a bit. Celestia sighed, "You have also been studying for the past ten hours. You need to rest your eyes." It has been ages since I had to deal with Twilight like this. Sunset looked at the clock above her desk,"Wow, it's been that long?" She laughed a little,"Rainbow always said I study too much." She looked down with a sigh,"Maybe I do need a break." "Yes, you do," Celestia said, using her magic to close the book. She then began a slow walk to the door, "Come." Sunset looked at Celestia, then gave a nervous sigh,"What do you want me to see?" she trotted with Celestia. "You'll see," Celestia said, leading the young unicorn to a long spiraling tower. As she walked, she looked to Sunset, "Am I to assume that your new friends are treating you well in that world?" Sunset walked with Celestia, her eyes averted from her former teacher,"Yes, th-they've been really nice to me. Even though I don't deserve it..." "Everypony deserves a chance for forgiveness, and to not be alone," Celestia said with a smile. "But, I've been so horrible to them! I've been so power hungry, so... evil!" Sunset said. "So I've heard," Celestia drapped a white hoof along the unicorn's back, she gently rubbed it to calm her former student. "But, that is something you can work towards fixing. We make mistakes to grow from them," turning her head to a window, she caught a glimpse of her sister raising the moon. "And as long as we are alive, we can correct them. The ability to change... is the right of us all. They apparently saw what I see in you." Sunset turned to the window,"What... you saw in me?" As they neared the top of the tower, Celestia sighed contently, "A little sun, whose light had yet to come out and touch the hearts of others." Sunset frowned,"How did you ever see that in me!? I was power hungry! I was constantly finding ways to become better than other ponies, just to say that I was better!" Tears were coming to her eyes. "Because, I saw more. I still remember the little filly who came to my room, asking or help from the dark things that were in her closet. I saw you jump for joy whenever you leaned a new spell or when you were able to use three unique spells at once. You may have became power mad, but I knew the truth. You really enjoyed showing what you could do," she then sat on a cushion, "I only wish I found a better way to temper that before you ran away from home." Sunset stood in the room looking away,"No, I wish I wasn't so horrible to you, or everyone else!" "I've forgiven you ages ago Sunset. I've felt more like I failed you as a teacher. But, forgiveness and the like will take time. Right now, I brought you here to see something special," the white alicorn then pointed up at the roof, which slowly opened up to show the starry night. "Lovely, isn't it?" Sunset looked up,"Yeah, it... looks better than when I last got a good look at it so long ago." A soft chuckle came from Celestia’s lips as she looked up to the sky, "That's because Luna always had a better gift for the art than I did." "Luna... was she the Mare in the Moon?" Sunset looked at the moon,"I never thought she really existed.” She pointed a hoof at the moon.”It feels odd not seeing that image up there..." A regretful sigh escaped the alicorn's lips, "Yes, she was. My fault for not paying attention to her needs or her feelings. Her rage and jealousy allowed her to let corruption take hold, turning her into a nightmare. It was only with the help of Twilight and her friends that my sister was returned." She glanced up at the moon and smiled, "You say that it is weird to not see the image, it is comforting to me. It means that one of the ponies most dear to me has come home," with that she looked to Sunset and smiled. "If I was unable to forgive my student for conquering the minds of others and destroying friendships, how could I forgive my sister for almost destroying the world." Sunset looked down with sadness,"Well, it's easy for you to forgive me." She looked up at Celestia,"Though, is destroying the world really preferable to my destruction of friendships?" "I would let neither happen," Celestia said, looking down at her student. "But, given the choice, I would rather face the end of the world with my sister by my side, than losing her and never seeing her again. Loneliness is a very horrible fate, wouldn't you agree? I think that is what Twilight's friends in that other world began to see as well. Do you know what Luna looked like when she was cured?" Sunset cocked her head,"No?" "She was tiny and small," Celestia giggled holding her hoof about eye level. "No bigger than you were." Sunny giggled,"Really? I wouldn't be able to tell, looking at her now." She looked at Celestia,"Were you ever like that?" Celestia blushed, "Me? N-no, never. And don't you think about asking Luna for evidence to the contrary.” A blue bit of magic appeared in front of Sunset, turning into parchment that read,"Yes. Yes she did -HRM Luna" Sunset chuckled at the parchment. "And what is that in your magic? What are you laughing about?" Celestia asked with a frown. Sunset simple shook her head as she crumpled up the paper and threw it into the fire,"Nothing." “All right, but I will remember to hunt down my sister later," Celestia said, a joking tone in her voice. Raising her head, she took a look at the stars, "Oh, look at those constellations." Sunset looked back up,"Wow, they're... so beautiful." She sat down next to Celestia. She pointed a hoof to a unicorn with a bubble, "There's Fizzy the goofy, who brought water and laughter to the Minotaurs." her hoof then pointed to a unicorn blowing air from her horn, "Gusty, who brought wind to the Saddle Arabians. Truly," her wing then went over Sunset, covering the unicorn as she looked at an earth pony constellation, "Who helped the seaponies with her strength of heart, and then,” Her hoof moved to a pegasus constellation,”Wind Whistler who helped the others with the fires of knowledge. It is said that those four are the guardians and protectors of the Heart." "Whoa," Sunset said," That's..." She cuddled closer to Celestia,"Amazing." "And look there, another little sun coming out," she said, pointing to a small light in the sky. "That's nice..." Sunset said as she slowly fell to sleep. Celestia smiled as she began to hear the soft snoring of her former student .Go with love upon your journey Go with wonder in your heart May the light be there to guide you Through the terrors of the dark You have always been my daughter on the day you came into my heart And I am glad to see you again There's a rainbow on the water There's a heart in the sky Will you see me when you leave? Will you know when I cry? You have so much left for me to show All the love you have given me My only wish is to hold you one more time And for us to stay for a much longer time In a parallel point of view And still they call, the friends who are there with you Will you take me by the hoof when I come through? You have left so much behind you All the love you have given life And I wish only to hold you you have always been with me In a parallel point of view I hear them all, the ones I have left behind Will you bring me to the light when you come home? Go with love upon your journey Go with desire in your heart May there be somepony beside you Who can hold you in the dark When you get to where you need to be Don't forget all that you have learned I only wish to see you one more time How I wish that I could see you one more time Go with love upon your journey “Welcome home, my little Sunset,” Celestia said, nuzzling the unicorn. "Mom..." Sunset muttered in her sleep. Twilight set a couple a books in her saddle bags, and took a few maps of Aquastria, Saddle Arabia, and Tauros from a shelf and placed them inside. She looked out the window and smiled at the constellations. She pointed a hoof at each of them,"Four guardians of the heart. Wind Whistler, Fizzy, Gusty, and Truly." She smiled before turning to her clock, eyes open wide in shock,"Wow, is it that late? Well, I suppose I could stay up a little bit more to plan my day." A soft crying was heard from the upstairs, as Twilight heard Will say, "I know you're out there. I'll find you, I promise!" Twilight ran to the source of the crying, and found Will looking out the window,"Everything alright?" "Oh, Twilight, I'm sorry," she sighed and sniffled. "I was just trying to get use to the fact that... my memories might be wrong or my friends are out there and I can't save them if they're in trouble!" Twilight shook her head,"I wasn't sleeping anyway." She walked over and sat down next to Will,"Whatever makes you think those things?” She tried to think of how Celestia would handle this situation. "I-I just don't know," the red maned pegasus said. "I thought I was born here, that my friends were born here, but now... I don't even know if they are real! I keep seeing so many visions, I can't even tell if I'm right anymore." "You are right." Twilight said as she put a hoof on Will's shoulder,"Will, I think it's going to take some time and we're probably going to have to go all around the world for a bit, but I don't think you’re wrong. Your friends are out there." "How can you trust me? For all you know, I might have had my memories wiped by Valtor just to reawaken as his agent at the last minute to kill you all," Will whimpered. Twilight shook her head,"I don't think so." she smiled,"You are way too nice for that. Plus,” Twilight chuckled a bit,” I think if you were his agent, he would use you to find where this 'Heart of Worlds' is, and he would get to the gates before us." Twilight thought If this is even his plan. What Discord said still rings in my mind. Will let out a sigh, and looked back to the window, "I-I hope you're right." she then rested her head on Twilight's shoulder, letting out a sigh. Twilight smiled as she placed a hoof on Will's shoulder,"I know I'm right. Now get some sleep." “You should do the same, Twilight,” Luna’s voice said from behind the purple unicorn. Twilight turned,”Pri-” Her eyes fell as Luna placed a horn on her forehead. “You’re welcome, sister.” Luna said as she flew off.  Back inside the clothing room of Carousel Boutique, Rarity sighed as she placed the turban in her bags,"... and now I'll get to the Tauros wear." She beamed as she went to her dresser,"Oh, but what would look good. It's to the north..." Sweetie Belle watched with intent as Rarity began going through her closet, "OH! what about the toboggan?" the little filly recommended, a smile on her. "Oh, that would be perfect! Toboggans are in this season!" She pulled out some toboggans,"But what color? "White!" Sweetie Belle smiled. A small little frown then came to her face, "Rarity? A-are you going to be all right?" "Oh, White is simply-" Rarity suddenly stopped and spun around at the question,"What was that?" She cocked her head. "Are you going to be ok? I mean, will I still see you again," Sweetie Belle asked, looking down. Rarity sighed and knelt down to Sweetie's level,"Sweetie Belle, of course you'll see me again! I always come out of all those dangerous places looking fabulous!" She raised a hoof dramatically.  She then smiled as she tucked her little sister's chin up,"I will alright, I promise." "Do you really promise? Big sister promise?" Sweetie Belle asked. Rarity hugged the little unicorn in front of her,"Big sister promise." At Sweet Apple Acres, Applejack twirled the rope in her hooves before stuffing it into her saddlebags,"Lucky rope, food, and," She tipped her hat while looking towards a photo,"Yer hat, Pa. Ah thank Ah'm all prepared!" AppleBloom ran to her sister, hugging her tightly, "Be careful sis." Applejack chuckled as she rubbed her sister's head,"Ah will. Don't cause too much trouble while Ah'm gone, ya hear?" Applebloom nodded, smiling a little, "Ah won't." "And don't forget about us while yer gone!" Granny Smith's voice came from beyond the room. "Yes, Granny," Applejack chuckled, then she turned to the red stallion in the room,"And Ah'll be extra careful, Big Mac. Don't push yerself too hard while Ah'm gone!" Big Mac frowned at her.  Applejack cocked her head,"What?" Big Mac simply pointed to a pot and a kettle. "Who ya callin’ a  kettle!?" Applejack frowned. Pinkie stuffed balloons in her bags, then put a party cannon, then a party balloon, then streamers, then cupcakes, then the kitchen sink,"There, all done!" A colt and a filly ran to Pinkie Pie to give her legs a hug, "Don't worry pound and Pumpkin, big sissy Pinkie is going o be all right!" Pinkie said as she nuzzled her little adopted siblings. "Just don't get too crazy out there, dear." Cup Cake said, walking in and putting a hoof on Pinkie's shoulder,"You just got out of the hospital." "Don't worry! I just have to know not to hop around a lot for a while!" Pinkie said, then trotted in place,"I'll just have to trot happily!" "Just keep yourself safe," Carrot said, nuzzling his little 'daughter.' Pinkie giggled as she nuzzled back,"I will!" Fluttershy stepped away from her writing desk, folding a little letter. She handed it to a bird,"Take this to Rainbow Dash, please. She needs to get ready." She turned and watched as her animals helped to put bandages, remedies, and other nice things into her saddle bags. She nuzzled Angel,”Don’t worry, I’ll be fine.” Rainbow Dash growled a little as she sat on her could, watching as a little bird flew to her. Taking the letter, she just nodded and folded it up. A Little growl escaped her lips as she slammed her hoof onto the cloud and then flew to her home. Valtor sat alone in the library when he heard the sound of a mare teleporting in, "You have returned from the dream world?" "Yes my liege, and I have something for you," said the old mare, handing Valtor a small tiny white orb. "A memory orb?" Valtor snickered as the orb flew into his palm. "Aren't we in the wrong universe for that?" "It seemed nice. While I was in the dream world, I visited the sun queen's dream for the clues for what you seek," She smiled, her white mane covering her face. Valtor raised an eyebrow, "And Luna?" "Had no idea I was there. OF course, I dare not challenge her. I may be powerful in the dream world, but she has had a millenia experience on me," the witch bowed and began to walk away. "Wait," Valtor said. "Servant...can I trust you?" "Of course my lord," the old mare said, looking back as she began walking into a portal. "I am your friend." > G is for Gathering > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- Sunset blinked as she found herself in a black void. "Sunset Shimmer..." A white unicorn Saddle Arabian horse came into her line of sight. Sunset turned and charged her horn,"Who are you?" She gasped as she saw the stallion's skeletal hoof. "You should know who I am, Sunset." the stallion said, appearing behind her,"I've appeared in all of the old history books. I am one of Saddle Arabia’s many ancient threats, along with Mirage." He flipped his black mane,"I can still feel her magical residue in the palace." Sunset gasped as she teleported away,"I know who you are now! Mozenwrath!" She fired a beam from her horn,"You should be dead!" Black sand surrounded the stallion, shielding him from the blast,"Yes, that should be obvious. Surprisingly, it wasn't my boot that did me in. Luckily I put up a spell that kept my spirit on this plane." He looked down at Sunset,"Now, I'm looking for somepony to take, and you're just my type." He smirked. Sunset stepped back growled,"Why? Why now!?" "Because I don't want Valtor to take you first. Plus, you have near limitless mana, which would help to prevent this from happening again." He raised his skeletal hoof,"Another reason is that, well, Twilight is leaving with her friends." He smirked,"And I know exactly where she needs to go, for my boot is part of the three gates to the Heart of Worlds." He went closer to the unicorn,” Right there is the perfect place to take your body for my own. Then I'll take Twilight's power, then maybe the goddesses." He smirked,"I would've picked Twilight first, but her will's stronger than yours. You are still broken up over your mother-slash-mentor." "Stay away from them!" Sunset fired her beam, but found nothing came out. "Ah-ah, that's just rude. I let you have that first shot as a gesture of my good will. Besides, I'm not taking your body just yet, but I may help you. First, I'm make you go with Twilight, then I'm going to watch what you seven do. Observe your personalities in order to find better ways to hurt you. In the meantime, I can keep Valtor off of you." "I'll tell Celestia-" "No, if you do, I'll stop your mouth before you could get a chance to do so. Now hold still." He charged his horn as he went closer to her. Sunset screamed. Sunset woke up in a cold sweat. Celestia looked down at her little protege, "Sunset, what's the matter? Sunset looked at Celestia, Mozenwrath's voice filling her head,"Just a bad dream," He said. "Just a bad dream." Sunset said out loud. Celestia frowned, and then sighed, "I see. Go back to bed, my little Sunset." As she watched Sunset go to bed, the alicorn looked to Luna. "Sister? tell me, have there been any intruders in the dream world lately." Luna shook her head as she landed from the window,"Not that I'm aware of. Why?" "Sunset woke up from a nightmare," Celestia said, running her hoof through Sunset's mane. "Valtor is looking for the heart of worlds. It would be like him to invade the dream world to find it.” "The Heart of Worlds!?" Luna shuddered from hearing that, then she looked down at Sunset,"I could look inside her dream right now, if you want?" "Please, and let me know what you find," Celestia nodded. Luna's horn glowed and her eyes went white. Luna found herself in a large room with various bookshelves around her. She heard some ruffling  and turned to see  an orange filly looking through a book. "One day, I will become a great archmage, just like my mom!" Sunset grinned,"I will be really powerful and be all cool" Luna blinked," A memory," She then felt her hair stand on end. She turned but found nothing but a door. Luna's eyes went back to normal,"I felt something, but I couldn't see what it was." She turned to her sister,"Her mother was an archmage?" Celestia nodded, "One of the best, Sunshine Dawn was quite a skilled mage. Her power, skill, and speed when it came to using the different mana was only surpassed by two other ponies." "Two others?" Luna asked. "Three, if we include your student and her skill in ilusion/dream magic." Celestia said. She nodded towards Sunset "Her, and Twilight are the two. They both easily break the Astor/Starswirl scale. Luna blinked in surprise,"You really know how to pick your students. What happened to her mother?" "Says the mare who picked the magician from the streets," Celestia giggled. "I don't know, she just came to my school one day while holding little Sunset in her hooves. She told me to watch over her and to guard her." "It wasn't the streets, it was a town square." Luna corrected with a nod. She looked at Sunset,"Have you ever thought of looking for her?" "You should ask Glyphstorm about it, he met his wife on one of the searches. For thirteen years, I sent ponies to look for her, and turned up nothing," Celestia said, lowering her head. Luna frowned,"I will ask this Glyphstorm, perhaps I may be able to assist in finding her." Celestia nodded in response, giving Luna permission to leave. The sun monarch then draped her wing over Sunset, hoping that she will be safe. Twilight gently laid the still-sleeping Will on the bed as the first lights of morning came up. She frowned up at the castle,"Stupid Princess, putting me to sleep..." She muttered as she went downstairs to make herself some coffee. She began to think,"If Valtor died, who brought him back?" She asked herself as she remember what Celestia said. Spike, ever dutiful as ever, walked from the kitchen with two cups of coffee on a plate. An apron on that read 'kiss me, I'm a gem' on it, "Thinking about something Twilight?” Twilight grabbed one of the cups,"Thank you, Spike." She looked down,"Yeah, I'm still thinking about what Discord said about Valtor. I believe Valtor may not be the true mastermind behind this." "Wait,what!!" Spike yelped, trying not to wake Will upstairs. "Are you saying that there is someone up h-higher than Valtor? W-w-wh do you think that?" "Well, Celestia said that Valtor died a while ago." Twilight took a sip of her coffee,"Plus, Discord said something about him being a pawn 'even now'. I have a feeling that somepony or something, brought him back, and is manipulating him. Think about this: Why would someone bring a creature like Valtor back without a reason?" "Because he/she is into zombies?" Spike asked. Twilight blinked at Spike, then shook her head,"... No Spike, then Valtor would be a mindless zombie. Valtor does seem to act like he has some degree of free will. If he didn't, I think I would be able to figure it out." "You sure?" Spike asked. "What's this about zombies?" Will asked, walking down the stairs. Twilight turned to her and chuckled,"Oh, Spike just had a silly thought!" She whispered in Spike's ear,"I don't want her to worry anymore than she has to. I'm not going to tell her my theory until she can get her memories in order." "Are you sure we shouldn't tell her? I mean, this guy is huge and if there is a bigger guy waiting..." Spike shuddered. Will happily walked to the fridge, lightly brushing Owlowiscious’ feathers before walking to the fridge, "Ok, now lets see-" "I wouldn't go for the sandwich, Twilight has left that thing in there since she got winges," the fridge said. "I think it's become nightmare." Will turned to to Twilight, "Uh, Twilight, I think your sandwich has gone bad." "I'm sure." Twilight said to Spike, then turned to Will,"What!?" She walked over to the fridge and looked inside, and stuck her tongue out,"How long did I keep that in there?" “I will swallow your soul!” The nightmare sandwich said. Will chuckled, "Apparently since before you got wings." "That talking to appliances power of hers, still freaky," Spike thought to himself. Twilight shrieked,"Oh my Celestia! I'm usually more organized than that!" She took out the monster sandwich, and burned it,"I'm so sorry..." "It's ok," Will giggled. "You should see my fridge." Twilight cocked her head,"Your fridge...?" "Yeah, mom always kept telling me to clean it. Especially when... my little brother was born," she let out a sigh as one of the ponies close to her came flooding back. “Oh," Twilight said,"You're little brother must've been cute!" She said as she looked over the fridge,"The rest of the stuff's still good, thank goodness." she pulled out a few sandwiches. "Ok, we have got to stop crowing the little future guardian," IRma joked. "He isn't going to be a guardian, no. This is little guy is going to become king by his own hand," Will smiled, tickling her little brother "Yeah, he is," Will sighed as she grabbed a sandwich. Twilight looked at Spike,"Reminds me of another cute little guy." Spike blushed and walked away, "Not that cute." he mumbled. Will giggled, "Little brother?" "Yeah, little brother." Twilight said with a nod. "So, when do we leave?" Will asked. Twilight looked at the clock on the window,"At noon. Hopefully,"Twilight headed towards the door,"Everypony will be ready." At a little house in Canterlot, a little filly opened the door, "Oh, my gosh! Princess Luna! Daddy! Princess Luna is here." "Honey, not every unicorn is Luna. You know that," a green pegasus said, walking up to the door. "I am so sorry. She is a huge fan of Luna that sh-sssshit! Princess Luna! My gosh, I am so sorry! Why are you here?"  Luna couldn’t help but chuckle at this"It’s alright, Glyphstorm, I’m rather glad I have such a good little fan." Luna nodded,"I’ve come for information regarding Sunshine Dawn." "Sunshine Dawn, heh, that's a name I haven't heard of in ages. Princess Celestia sent me to Tauros to find her. Spent two years looking for her." he turned back to look at a white earth pony in the kitchen. "And all I got was a wonderful wife and a kid who loves to play Princess Luna with the fillies. What do you want to know, your highness?" "I just needed to know all the information you have about her." Luna said. "Well, I basically know is that she was a yellow unicorn with a red mane. Her cutie mark, interestingly enough, was a bright sun. I was chosen to look for her because I had some meetings with her, nice gal too. I don't know why she left her daughter or Equestria. When I was in Tauros, I was told that she was searching several of the libraries for some reason. "Hmm, I'm going to take down your testimony. I think I can have somepony help with that." She wrote what he said down on a scroll and used her magic to send it towards Twilight. "Thanks. Sunshine, she was a good mare, kind of thick headed, though. It’s so weird for her to leave her daughter like that. "Yes, which is why I want to find her. I also want to do this for my sister's former student as well." Luna said. Twilight was about to leave the door when Spike coughed up the letter. Twilight took it in her magic and looked at it,"Find Sunset's mother in Tauros?" "Isn't Sunset that mare who I kind of hit with this thing?" Will asked, holding her heart "Yes, I'm sorry for that." Sunset said as she walked up to them. "Hey, you were evil, it happens," Will smiled. Twilight jumped back in shock,"Sunset, what are you doing here?" "I want to help you personally." Mozenwrath said. "I want to help you personally, Twilight, it's the least I could do for you." Sunset said. Celestia sighed as she looked on from her room, "Luna, dear. You student... is she available right now?" "As far as I know, why?" Luna asked, stepping into the room "I think I may have need o her. Tell her that its time for a show in Tauros, and Saddle Arabia," Celestia said, looking on. Luna nodded as she teleported away. Sunset frowned,"Yeah, it happens too easy for me..." "Hey, it's alright!" Twilight patted Sunset's shoulder,"we still forgive you." Sunset smiled,"Thank you." "Still you doubt yourself." Mozenwrath said. "Yeah, we're all friends here. The name is Will," the blue pegasus said, hugging her. Out of nowhere, a pair of pink hooves joined in the hug. Sunset blinked,"Pinkie!? Where did- why am I asking?" Pinkie giggled, "Like a superhero, wherever there is depression or sadness, I am there with a hug!" the pink mare then happily pronked away. Will turned to look at Twilight, "You know, I think I am starting to get used to her weird ness." "THat means you are now officially a part of us." Twilight nodded as she walked with Sunset,"We're heading out to find the three gates to the Heart of Worlds..." "And according to the book Twilight found, its in Saddle Arabia, Tauros, and Aquastria," Will said. "Sounds like we have a lot of work to do." Sunset said,"I assume the others are getting ready?" "They should all be at the train station." Twilight said. Dash yelled from above, "We would be there sooner if we weren't waiting for all of you guys!" "Yeah, you probably went there first!" Twilight shouted. "Of course!" Dash shouted, flying to the station, her face hiding her anger at Sunset's appearance. Twilight trotted inside the station,"Girls, Sunset's decided to join us." "Well, howdy there sugarcube," Applejack said, holding out a hoof. "Look, Ah know what you did when ya came here, but Twilight seems to trust ya. That works in mah book for right now." "A pleasure to meet you, Sunset," Rarity bowed and smiled. "Um, hi?" Fluttershy said shyly. Dash on the other hand, scoffed and flew into the train. Sunset blushed a bit and took Applejack's hoof. She sighed as sh looked to where Dash flew off. "She'll need time, Sunset." Twilight said as she got on the train. "Amazing how easily they trust you." Mozenwrath said. "Shut up. You're lucky I can't tell them about you." Sunset thought.   "Yeah, Rainbow can be a little hardheaded sometimes, but her heart’s in the right place," Applejack said, walking into the train. "Besides, you weren't yourself. IF we were angry at everypony who was under control, we would never feel right around Luna," Rarity said. Pinkie giggled, "Besides, being mad all of the time is boring!" Fluttershy nodded, walking in, "Even if Rainbow seems a little more mad than usual." Twilight looked at Fluttershy,"What do you mean?" "Well, when she came in, it was almost like she was looking for a chance to argue with Applejack," Fluttershy said as she walked with Twilight into the car. Twilight frowned at this,"That's a little odd. Rainbow could be brash sometimes, but she never looked for a fight with any of us!" She looked at Dash, who laid in a seat away from the others"Perhaps we should go talk to her." Fluttershy nodded, "Yes, we should." Valtor slowly awoke, looking down at the memory orb, "Better give this a look." He looked deeply into the orb with his magic When he opened them again, he found himself in a new body, "This is strange, guessing from the size I'm a-child?! and judging from my surroundings I'm in a-" he was interrupted by a soft voice. "Tell me, Celestia, are you happy to finally meet your little sister?" the tall alicorn said, her green mane flowing while covered in flowers and branches. "Celestia? Where-" Valtor began to ask when his host began to speak. "Yes, Momma," squeaked Celestia, bounding. "Wait, if I am in Celestia's body and that is her mother, then that must be Queen Terra. Of course," he smiled, looking at the queen's earthy brown coat. "I can't wait for her to get a little bit bigger so we can talk to each other, play with each other, I can tell her my secrets, and we can be bestest of friends," the white alicorn said, bouncing after her mother. Queen Terra let out a small chuckle at her daughter's excitement, "Yes, I can only imagine what my daughters can do." Putting on a serious face, she looked into her daughter's pink eyes, "Celestia, do you know why I called for you today?" "Yes please," Valtor said while his host shook her head. Valtor got a good look at tree cutie mark of the queen as Terra turned to lead Celestia down the hall. With a glow of her magic, Terra opened two massive ivory doors that laid at the end of the hall. The massive pink heart in the center of the door splitting in twain as the doors opened. Looking up in awe, Celestia followed her mother into the hallway, jumping slightly when the massive doors slammed behind her and disappeared. Following her mother down the hall, Celestia looked up and saw a row of stain glass windows, "Tell me, Celestia, what do you know of the stars?" "Each one is a sun, each star has a power to give life or take it," Celestia said, as if reciting from a book. "Yes," Terra smiled, nodding. "But there is something more, each star you see up there, is a world." "They are?" asked Celestia. "Yes, and on each world is a heart," Terra said, passing by a stain glassed window of an unicorn guarded by an earth pony in armor, a pegasus wielding dual crossbows, a unicorn in a hood, a zebra, and a mare singing. "And each heart is as different and unique to their own world?" asked Celestia, looking across from the glass stain window to the opposite, seeing a picture of the grey unicorn standing alongside a mare in armor, a black alicorn, a filly, an elk, a griffon, and a pegasus. "Yes, taking on a variety of forms," Terra said, walking forward. "But, there exists a heart of hearts, capable of drawing power from all hearts of all worlds. A heart of worlds." "Wow," exclaimed the little filly. "Do you know where it is?" "Yes, as it was told to me by my mother: The twin students of the sun shall find the heart in the decayed land of nothingness, the gates lay in sand, steel, and water. Look to the guardians of Fire Water Air and Earth for the gates. They will lead to you the keys to open the gates and bring you to the land of nothingness." "The guardians..." Celestia asked, looking up at another stain glass, this one of a group of six mares holding a glowing light over a land of fire. "Yes, now, keep this a secret, keep thi safe. Don't even tell Luna," terra said. "Then who do I tell it to?" Asked Celestia. "To your daughter of course," Terra said with a smile Valtor awoke from the memory orb and looked to his servant, "My dear servant, let’s see some more of the world, shall we?" Twilight walked over to Rainbow,"Rainbow, is something wrong? Fluttershy said that you've been acting strange lately." Rainbow Dash,who had been resting on one of the chairs, looked up to her friends as a voice rang in her head (Don't tell them,), "Yeah, its insomanana or something like that. Haven been getting much sleep." Twilight cocked her head,"Really? You haven't been getting any sleep?" She frowned skeptically,"Dash, did you hear a radio broadcast earlier yesterday?" "Oh yeah, Pink’s song right?" Dash let you a chuckle, "Oh yeah, I heard it." "Okay," Twilight said. She looked at Dash then turned away skeptically. "I think she’s under a spell," Mozenwrath said. Sunset gasped. She tried to open her mouth, but failed to produce words. "Oh, no, I can't have you telling them! How would that hurt you then!?" Mozenwrath said. Pinkie Pie bounced happily to her seat, while Will sat next to her and looked outside the window. Applejack looked straight ahead at her window, watching the town of Ponyville "And here we go, far from home." Rarity smiled, "Oh, I cannot wait to see Tauros, I have heard so many interesting things about that place." "Like what?" Will asked. "Well, I have heard that they are known for their wonderful steel art, and their excellent craftsmanship making," Rarity commented. "Iron Will told me that they also had a love of mazes,"Fluttershy added. Twilight grinned,"Plus, it is said that the ancient minotaur god, War, once created Mimic the Wise's horseshoes. In fact..." She began to ramble as she pulled out a book. Sunset nodded,"All that is making me more and more anxious to see this place! But wouldn't it make more sense to go to Aquastria first? Isn't that closer, and you've been there before." She thought,"I'm also afraid to go any further." "Hey, we have to get to the port anyway to get a boat to the northern coast,so let’s start there," Dash said, looking at a little map she had grabbed. "... And the minotaurs also created Celestia's armor..." Twilight continued. Sunset nodded,"So what's Aquastria like?" "Oh, I remember that place. I one time terrorized a princess sea pony there." Mozenwrath said. "I didn't ask you." Sunset thought. "Wet," Dash responded. "Oh, simply gorgeous! Filled to the brim with sea coral and lovely crystalline palaces,"Rarity gushed. "... And don't forget the legendary axe of invincibility..." Twilight said. "I don't think Twilight's stoppin' anytime soon..." Applejack said. "Wow, I can't wait to be there." Sunset said. "How about Saddle Arabia?" Mozenwrath said. Sunset shuddered,"Um, what... have you... heard about... Saddle Arabia?" As Twilight continued to speak, Rainbow Dash passed a note to Pinkie and Applejack that read '10mins before she stops' and an amount of bits on it. "Well, I haven’t been there myself, but, I have seen some of the wonderful silk items they have made. The dresses and the fashions there are to die for!" Rarity said. "Oh, they are to die for alright." Mozenwrath said. Applejack wrote down '15 mins' "... But those are all the things I believe are there. Wanna hear about Aquastria?" Twilight said with a wide grin. Sunset shook her head quickly,"I'm good!" Pinkie Pie thrusted her hoof in a "Yes!" pose and took 25 bits from each mare. Will looked to the end of the train, "So,how long until we reach the port? "It should be about an hour from now,"Twilight said, she looked out the window, watching as the train entered the station. Sunset visibly shuddered a bit, fearing the thing in her mind. Somewhere, at Hoofington "At last, the Great and Powerful Trixie returns to the stage. The power of her show will sure amaze, astonish, and shock all who see!" Trixie shouted walking out to the stage to an empty crowd, "Heh, still got it. Tonight, you're gonna wow them, honey." "I'm afraid you're going to have to cancel, my faithful student." Luna said as she came from the shadows. "Mistress!" Trixie said, turning and bowing before her teacher. "W-what brings you here? "I've come with a mission, you might want to schedule a couple of shows in Saddle Arabia and  Tauros." Luna said, giving Trixie a scroll. "Trixie smiled, "I always did love the west. May Tixie inquire as to why?" "Celestia failed to explain, but I don't think she has to." Luna looked at Trixie,"I believe it has to do with one of her former students, Sunset Shimmer." "Sunset, wasn't she the mare who took the element a few months ago?" Asked Trixie as she walked to her wagon. "Yes, but she's been reformed." Luna said,"Much like myself." Trixie couldn't help but smile, "Twilight does that. All right, but Trixie will need some faster transport if she is to hope to get there. That and some extra cash from her usual stipend." Luna pulled out a bag of bits,"Will this do?" She clopped her hooves and two night guards appeared,"Pull her carriage." Trixie grinned as she went into the carriage,”Look out world, Trixie’s coming.” > H is for Heart > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- The train gave a mighty l urch as it pulled into the station, “Now arriving at Portland Port, all ponies departing please get off and/or change for the train leaving or Vanhoover." "Vanhoover," Will sighed, knowing it as the place that she thought she was born. Where she thought her friends were, and slowly she lowered her head. "Hey," Pinkie placed a hoof on Will's back. "We'll find them." She said with a big smile. Slowly, the redhead looked to Pinkie, before smiling back softly, “I don’t know... what if I’m making them up. What if I’m not-” “Hey, do you feel all warm inside when you think about them?” Pinkie interrupted, looking back into her friend’s eyes. As Will nodded, Pinkie giggled, “Then they’re real, and they’re out there waiting to see you again!” “Come on you two!”  Rainbow Dash yelled as she followed the other mares out of the train and into the station. The small port town of Portland wasn’t very large in comparison to towns like Manehatten and Fillydelphia, but it was a port town that led to Aquastria and that made it special. The bearers and their two companions were entertained by the talk of the town. Amid its modest setting were the calls of fishmongers, ship builders, and captains. However, the eight’s destination took them to a small set of steps leading into the water. "Now," Twilight said, as they got closer to the water,"The spell I am going to use is going to feel a little weird." She looked at Sunset and Will. "Weird how?" Sunset asked. "How does growing fins and gills sound?" Twilight looked at Sunset with a bit of a smirk. "Wait what?" Will asked, shocked. Twilight's horn glowed, enveloping the ponies in a bright light. For a few moments, the mares could feel a ticklish feeling traveling down their necks and legs,"There!" “Wait, what?” Will looked over her body in shock, seeing the fins and gills on her body. Sunset sighed, “Celestia never got around to teaching me this.” “Trust me, I bet she would’ve, if given the chance,” Twilight nodded, before looking back at Fluttershy, “"Our ride, please." She said with a smile as they went into the water. As she moved quickly into the water, Pinkie couldn't help but giggle, "This tickles as much a last time!" Twilight turned to Fluttershy as they went in the water,”Fluttershy, our ride please.” Will raised an eyebrow, "Our ride? What do you-" Fluttershy noded, treading the water and letting out a small call. After a few moments a small whale appeared before the girls, leaving Will to look on in amazement. Quickly, they got onto the back of the whale and he began to travel through the murky depths. As they traveled, various amounts of sea life passed them by. Will, deciding to focus more on the group around her, looked at each mare in turn. For some reason, she began to feel something unique as she looked to them; be it a calming presence as she watched Fluttershy playing with a passing by fish or a hopeful feeling as she looked to Pinkie Pie. However, as she gazed past each mare, she saw Sunset as the yellow unicorn sat alone, “Now that I think about it, she’s like me... lost and far away from her friends. “So, do you miss your world?” Sunset turned to Will and sighed,"Yes, a lot." She looked down,"Even though I wasn't born there, I felt like it became my world!" "Even though you don't deserve it." Mozenwrath said. Sunset glowered at nothing. Applejack looked to Sunset, "Y'all all right Sugarcube?" Sunset shook her head,"Nothing... just nothing..." "Probably just-" Dash stopped herself, letting out a growl instead. Twilight frowned when she heard Dash growl,"Rainbow...” "Stop!" A  green sea-pony guard swam up and stopped in front of them and held out his spear,"Oh, it's just you, Princess Twilight Sparkle and friends! What are you doing here?" "What's it to you?" Dash asked rudely. "Um, we're here-" Will began, trying to figure what to say. "We need to see King Leo." Twilight said, filling in for Will. "Oh, is that all? Come, we'll take you to him!" The sea-pony said happily as he lead the eight through the massive gates of the city and into the town proper. The difference between the shining city of captial of Aquestria vs Portalnd was immense. All throughout the city was the hustle and bustle of the normal city life with plenty of sea-ponies and merponies going about thier lives. Though they traveled well above the city on their floating whale, the eight mares could still watch in amazement at the bustling center. As they neared the massive and towering shapphire castle, Rarity looked and smiled at it, “It’s strange, but I can never get enough of the sheer magnificence of this palace.” Looking down, Sunset smiled, “I remembered with Celestia showed me this place in a picture book once. I had always wanted to visit it and I thought about going here when I wa-” Pinkie Pie then gave Sunset a quick hug,  “Well, you’re here now! So, you now fulfilled a dream of yours!! Now you can remove this from your checklist!” “Yeah, I guess I did,” Sunset chuckled. Inside the throne room, a large lion-headed creature sat at a  seashell throne,"Ah, the bearers of the elements. It is good to see you all again!" Leo said with a smile, bowing "and who are your two friends?" Sunset gulped, looking at the massive size of the king "Oh, Celestia..." "No, she is your princess. Who are you young lady?" Leo said with a laugh. He smiled at Sunset. "S-Sunset Shimmer," Sunset stammered as she bowed,"This feels unreal. I've always heard of him, but I never thought I'd get the chance to meet him." She thought. "I am Will Vandom," Will said, Feeling a sense of familarity as she stood before royalty. Instinctively she bowed before him. "So, what brings you here?" Leo asked, stroking his mane. Twilight looked up,"We're looking for a gate to the Heart of Worlds." LEo gasped. He turned to his guards,"Leave us." When they did, Leo motioned for them to follow him to a large hallway,"Why are you looking for a thing like that?" Will looked up, "A black dragon by the name of Valtor is hunting for it, and I think it might help me as well." Leo shuddered,"Valtor." He looked at them,"He would be going straight for the gates" He sighed,"In order to access them, You must have the key. In order to get the key, you need to pass a challenge." He turned,"Find Squirk the Kraken in King Tydal's realm. He holds the key." Dash let out a bout of laughter as she heared the name, "SQUIRK?! HAHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHA!" she doubled over in pure laughter. Pinkie let out a few giggles as well, while Rarity looked on in pure disgust. Twilight face-hoofed at the name. Applejack snickered a bit while Sunset was stunned. Leo sighed,"Yes, I know, the name is silly. But you have to find him." He looked out the window,"My guards will lead you to the capital, but no further." Will stepped forward, "And then what do we do? "Ask Tydal where..." He sighed,"Squirk is. Be warned, though, Squirk can be difficult to work with." He shouted,"Guards! Take these ponies to Adalantis!" "Thank you, sire," Will bowed, while Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash continued laughing. "Yes sir!" Wave runner said, swimming up next to the group. Sunblaster smiled as she sailed up next to the group, "It’s a shame you are going to leave so soon. We were about to perform the song of our people." the yellow sea pony said, a bright smile gracing her lips as she led the group out of the throne room and towards the city gates. Leo laughed,"No need to be so formal! Call me Leo!" He looked at his guard,"Well, you could sing it to them while you are leading them there." Sunset blinked,"Song of your people?" "No," Mozenwrath said,"No, please!" The two seaponies looke to eahc other and smiled As they walked to the border of the capital, the girls couldn't help but sing along  Call upon the sea ponies... Mozenwrath was screaming all the way to the capital. Sunset just smiled as she sang along.         It is said that the capital of Tauros is one of the bigger manufacturing centers in the world. That one could not go five feet without encountering a smithie or minotaurs selling hand crated wares. Sadly, due to a combination of the smoke from the furnaces and the shouts of various minotaurs selling self-help books, a sight like a pony sized dragon flying through the sky went unnoticed.                  Up above the city, the black dragon Valtor flew through the air while coasting on the hot updrafts coming from the furnances below. With a sot landing, he stood next to his servant as she held onto her staff for support, “Problems, sire?”         “The bearers,” said Valtor, hooking his wings together to form a makeshift cape. “They are not here as I was expecting them to.”         “And that is a problem sire?” asked the old pony, her white mane going over her eyes. “Now we have time to look for the gate on our own.”         “It’s not that simple,” Valtor sighed as he looked on. “I was hoping for the bearers to lead me to the key and the gate so I can deduce what I am looking for. Without that, I am flying blind.”         The old mare nodded, and looked to the heart on her staff, “I see, then you could beat them to the Heart of Worlds by simple deduction.”         “You know me too well,” Valtor smiled. “Can you locate them through your heart?”         “If only I could,” the old mare said, shaking her head, “But you know what you said. If we put a tracking spell onto Will, it would be troubling for us if the bearers find it.”         Valtor sighed, lightly scratching the stone of the rooftop with his claws, “Sadly, that means we have to play the wai...” he paused as he saw a young calf with his mother walking the streets.         “Valtor, come, it is time for your lessons,” the fairy in black said as she led the young Valtor down a hallway.         Valtor looked up from his book and smiled, “Yes, mother.”         “First, recite to me the five mana pools,” the fairy said, holding her staff.         “Red for destruction, Blue for control, Green for subjugation, Black for power, and white for weakness,” Valtor recited expertly.         The fairy chuckled, “Good, my son. You have become more proficent as you have grown.”         “Thank you mother,” Valtor said.         “...Tell me, servant, have you a family?” Valtor asked, looking at the mother and son.         “Yes, a grandfather and a father,” she said, her voice solomn. “It was thanks to them, that I realized how the only way we can truly be happy in this world is if someone takes control and brings it order. A lesson I wished my son had learned.”         Slowly, Valtor stood up to his full height, “For me, I had a mother. She trained me, cared or me, and made me feel like I could do anything. Then, when I was at the precipice of death, she abandoned me when I was about to have everything.” Reaching out wiht his right hand, a chuckle came from his throat as he made it glow, “You know, I think I know of how to have some fun while we wait for the arrival of the bearers.”         “Is that wise, sire?” Servant asked, looking at her master.         “Motivation, my dear servant. Movitation for the bearers to find the key,” Valtor chuckled as he walked away.         The servant just shook her head and looked to the heart adorning her staff,  “Oh, Princess, I do hope you will enjoy your trip to Aquestria. I have heard that those who seek that key face hell. Hmmm, and it seems that your four friends’ journies have also begun. But, my huntress, where is she?”          After a few short hours of travel across the ocean pleans, the seaponies guided Twilight and to others to the city gates. At the entrance, two capricorns held up spears in thei tail,"Halt-" They then took a look at Twilight,"Princess!" The bowed. Twilight shook her head and waved a hoof,"Please, no bowing." She looked at them,"We're here to see Tydal." "Very well." one capricorn turned to the other,"Tell the king that Princess Twilight is here to see him." A capricorn with a yellow mustach bowed and swam off. As the half-horse half fish swam off, Will looked up at the shining city that laid out beore her, "Wow, gorgeous, Cornelia would've loved this!" The various buldings made out of coral all gave the city a rainbow colored glow. Twilight nodded,"I know." She sighed,"I'm so glad I get to come here." "I remember when this was a small city," Mozenwrath began,"I was still an apprentice when I came here and saw Tydal for the first time." It did not take long for the capricorn to return, "Lord Tydal says he will see you." Twilight nodded as she and her group followed the capricorn through the streets of the city and towards the towering blood red castle. After exchaning greetings with the castle guards, the group was allowed into the castle proper. Entering the waiting hall of the majestic throne room, they were captivate by the large sapphires that highlight the halls, all reflecting the colors of the coral around them, “Oh my word! Look at all of this. Oh, what I wouldn’t give to live in castle made out of these beautiful crystals.” Rarity said, her eyes twinkling         Twilight smiled a little, “It does look nice, and so majestic, but I think this place would be a little intimidating for me to live in.”         “Don’t worry sugarcube, if ya ever wound up in a castle like this, we promise to help ya fix it up,” Applejack said, patting Twilight on the back.         As Fluttershy looked at the large mammals and other sea  life swim overhead, she noticed Sunset standing next to her, “OH! I, um sorry, I didn’t see you there.”         “It’s ok, Fluttershy,” Sunset smiled as she looked at the coral. “It’s so unreal,  being here. I always thought that it was going to be me here with Celestia, not here with-”         “Friends?” Giggled Pinkie as she skipped ahead of them.         Sunset nodded, giving out a little sigh before being nuzzled by Fluttershy, “You know, I didn’t expect you to become this friendly.  I almost killed your friend over there. Aren’t you afraid?” Fluttershy shook her head, “No, you just look like you need a shoulder. A pony to care for you.” Sunset smiled and was about to reply when a female capricorn shouted, “Presenting, Princess Twilight Sparkle of Equestria along with party: Lady Rarity Belle, Lady Rainbow Danger Miriam Dash, Lady Abigail Jacqueline III, Lady Fluttershy Firewing, Lady Pinkamena Diane Pie. Along with them, two memembers of thier party: Madame Sunset Amber Shimmer and Will Vandom.” “How does she know our names?” asked Sunset. The female capricorn looked to the young unicorn with a smile, “Our mages scanned your names as you walked into the room,” she bowed to the mares as they walked into the throne room. They bowed to it’s occupant          "Hello, Princess Twilight." A large  green Capricorn sat on the throne,"What are you here for?" "We need to find," Twilight sighed,"Squirk, your majesty." Tydal snickered,"Why?" Will looked up at the capricorn, unbelieving at what she was seeing, "Because he, has a clue t help us find a key to a gate." Tydal frowned,"A gate?" He looked down at all of them, then noticed Will's necklace,"You will find him in the Lost Trench. I will lead you to him." He said as he got off of the throne. "Lost Trench? Oh great," Dash snarkily responded wiht a roll of her eyes. "Let me guess, next is the pit of eternal torment." "My pendant? Why was he looking at this thing?," Will said, looking down at her pendant. Carefully she held it up to her eyes and smiled softly at it, feeling a little warm at its sight. Tydal led them down a dark passage way,"Be careful," He snickered."Squirk, can be difficult." "Why, is he going to-" "Rainbow DASH!" Shouted Rarity before Dash could make a vulgar comment. The ponies all turned to the loud rumble. "Who dares enter my domain!?" A loud voice rumbled.A large squishy tentacled form came out a crevice,"I am Squirk!" the large squid shouted, then stopped, as if he was waiting for something. Applejack, Pinkie Pie, Will, and Rainbow Dash all fell to the grond laughing their tails off. Rairtyy just looked on and shook her head, "How vulgar! Twilight facehoofed again. Squirk nodded,"That's what I was waiting for." Tydal smirked,"These ponies need your key." "My key!?" He looked at them all and laughed,"These ponies don't look like much! Are you sure they will be able to handle it?" Rainbow Dash stopped her laughing, "Hey, are you saying we look puny to you? At least I don't have a name that sounds like when I-" "Rainbow!" Rarity shouted with a glare, stopping Dash in her tracks. "Yes, I'm very aware of what my name means." Squirk said with a roll of his eyes,"What makes you worthy of gaining my key?" "Well, they are the Elements of Harmony." Tydal said. "They are!?" Squirk's eyes bulged,"Hehe, well, I can't just give you the key, you have to go through my trench first. Be careful though, very few ponies have gone through and survived." "I've survived. I can guide you through." Mozenwrath said. "I don't trust you." Sunset thought. "You don't have a choice." Mozenwrath responded. Fluttershy floated over to Squirk,  patting his head,"It’s ok, I think it is a very respectable name." she then flew off to follow her friends as they walked towards the trench that lay behind Squirk. "Go through a trench? HA! Easy," Dash chuckled. "Uh, Rainbow?" Twilight said,"Whenever you say that, it usually leads to bad things." Mozenwrath began to laugh,"Oh, she's so dead!" As they neared the entrance of the trench, Rainbow Dah looked to Twilight, "Name one time!" "Remember that one time we had to go in a cave and you said it'd be easy? Balrog attack. Fixing Cadance's table? Giant Impossible Fire Ants. Going up a tree?" Twilight shuddered,"A naga. Possum sitting for Luna? Got us cleaning the whole palace for three days." Will laughed at this, her mind having small visions of her best friends in weird situations. She could see some of them winding up wet, or covered in mud.  She stopped for a bit," Ok, how did fixing Cadence's table and a tree lead to ants and a naga?" "And cleaning a palace just for possum sitting?" Sunset asked, arching an eyebrow. Twilight turned and just shook her head,"It would take too long to explain..." As they entered the trench, Pinkie Pie giggled, “Let’s just say, it was a fun experience!” AS they continued, Mozenwrath's voice said,"Heat bubble trap, right in front of Rarity." Sunset pushed Rarity away as bubbles flew up from the ground and burnt the ceiling. "OOF! Thank you Sunset, but how did you know about that?" Rarity said, getting up to watch the scalding bubbles burst. "Instinct." Mozenwrath said. "Instinct, I learned a lot from Celestia." Sunset said with a nervous chuckle. Applejack arched an eyebrow at this, and then shook her head. Dash flew ahead a little, smirking, "See, its nothing. Just a few traps here and there." Pinkie nodded, skipping right behind the cyan mare. Twilight, meanwhile, looked at Sunset, placing a hoof onto her chin in thought,'Sunset's been acting weird lately.' Before turning around and following the leading Rainbow Dash. Applejack looked to Twilight, "Hey, you think Sunset is a little bit...loopy?" "Yeah, a bit." Twilight said, walking near AJ,"I just wish I knew what was going on..." That was when large teeth chomped at Rainbow Dash, “YIP!" Dash shouted, flying back to stay with the group. A large shark bared down on the pegasus, gnashing its large teeth as she retreated. Fluttershy saw the shark and flew up to it, staring it down, “Now see here: She is not to be eaten, she is my friend! Now, you go back home and find some regular food, now young man.” The shark sniffled then cried back to its home. As the large fish ran away crying, Rainbow Dash growled, "Oh come on! What's next, a water dragon?" "Yes." A large sea-green dragon said as he appeared. With a growl and a sneer, Rainbow Dash yelled, “Oh come on!” she then bucked the dragon in the face. The dragon rubbed his snout,"Really?" He shot out a stream of bubbles at them. "Careful, those things burn," Mozenwrath said. "Keep away! Those bubbles burn!" Sunset said. "Oh come on, what kind of bubbles-YIPE!" Dash yelled, feeling the heat from one of the bubbles wizz past her and burning her left shoulder a little. Before another set of bubbles could hit her, she banked left to let the next set of bubbles past her and burn the ground. Twilight blinked,"Amazing! The beast is properly evolved to defend itself underwater! The heat bubbles..." She began. "Great, could we get rid of this thing before she bores me?" Mozenwrath snarled,"If I have to hear anymore of this..." Rarity gasped as she felt some gems in the seawalls, "Oh, that is interesting." With a smile,the white unicorn pulled out the diamond shard and began to wave it in front of the dragon, "Does mr. dragon want gems? Then go" and then tossed them into the distace. The dragon barked like a dog as he chased the gem. His wings beating in the water like a bird. A smirk came to the mare’s face as she turned around nd followed her friends further along the trench.The group continued to walk when they came across a large wall of spikes, with no door in sight, "What on earth?" Rarity asked, looking at the giant wall. Stepping towards the massive wall, she ran her hoof along the sharp spike, "ouch, these things are razor sharp." "Who put this here?" Asked Will. Twilight looked at the wall,"For that matter, how do we get pass here?" She looked along the wall. All the spikes looked a bit rusted, except for one,"Oh, of course!" She grinned as she laid a hoof on the pristine looking spike, causing the wall to rise up,"Any sort of metal underwater would be corroded, so if this is the only spike that was normal looking, it must mean that it had to have been kept up by someone to keep the switch working!" As the wall rose up, the mares began to walk through the portal. However, as Rainbow passed through, her flying began to become slower and her breathing a little shallower, "W-what's going on?" "Maybe, we are just getting tired," Fluttershy said, before sighing, "But really, what's the point. I just drag you all down anyway. I’m so weak..." "What's wrong with you guys?" Will asked, watching the ponies before her collapse. Each mare’s breathing became shallow, the bodies slowly greying as they laid down, and their eyes became black. “Hey, sugarcube?” Applejack walked over to Dash,”What’s wrong?” Dash turned away from Applejack, "What do you care? Haven't you been watching me? I've been getting myself nearly killed because I jump ahead!! I’m an idiot, a mare who can’t even handle saying goodbye!" "I'm too much, I just..." Pinkie whimpered and ell down. "Why am I even here?" Whispered Rarity. AJ looked at Pinkie,"Ah'd never thought Pinkie would feel bad!" She looked at the group, then she looked at Dash,"C'mon Dash, ya may get a little bit reckless at times, but that's part of who ya are! Heck, sometimes if ya weren't here, we'd be dead!" "OH yeah, how?" Rainbow Dash demanded, glaring a hole into Applejack. "Well, if you hadn't kept that dragon away, his bubbles would've hurt one of the others. Look, Ah know we can get into some fights, but you know... there’s no pony Ah would rather have at my back. You just go ahead of the group because you can’t stand to lose anypony." "I'm just a fashionista, not an adventurer, not a hero. Why am I here?" Rarity whimpered. The orange mare looked at Rarity,"Oh c'mon Rares! You're not just a fashionista! You're a wonderful friend who would give up anything to protect those she cares about! Most ponies like you would run and hide, you are willing to give everything. That says hero to me!" Will walked towards Twilight and Sunset, "Why is everypony actin-" "Don't worry Nami, we'll ind her,"said a voice in the shadows. "Cornelia?" Asked Will as she walked towards a glowing portal. "I'm worthless!" Cried Rarity. “Now, none of that!” Applejack said, glaring into Rarity’s eyes. “ You are selfless, and we always need a gal who is willing to give everything she has to help. You are a great gal, both to Sweetie Belle and all o us.” Fluttershy remained silent while Pinkie had begen to collasp to the ground, not moving an saying anything. Twilight just looked ahwad, "Why did I deserve anything?" "You better just leave now, no telling when a new threat will just cauuse me to go evil again." Sunset whimpered. Will touched the shimmer portal, and was presented wiht a vison of her friend, now human, rubbing the back of a orange haired young woman, "Who-" "And even when it seems like everything is against you, and the others aren't there? I promise, I will hold the pain for you. I will hold your burden. I'll do all I can to protect you." "C-Cornelia, I-" the vison then changed to show her and her friend now as ponies, standing in front of a large castle. "Corny, look, I know that my plans aen't alway-" A hug interrupted her, "Look, I know I disagree wth you, and I think I can plan better than you. But, even with that in mind, I will always be there to support you, to hold your burdens. That is who I am. I am-" "My pillar-" she then blinked out of existance and back into the trench. "C'mon." Applejack went to Twilight and picked her up,"You've always been there when a friend needed help. You earned those wings." She went to Fluttershy,"You've never backed down, even when you're scared. Fluttershy, sometimes Ah think yer braver than all of us combine!" She went to Sunset,"Ya ain't going to go evil again, because we'll be there to help ya, no matter where we are! And Pinkie...you’re a freak. But ya are also the most hopeful of all of us,you've always kept a smile on our faces! We'd be all depressed without you around!" She looked ahead,"Now c'mon, we have a job to do!" Each mare looked beaten and drained, a glimmer of life still bearly in their hearts. As Applejack’s words flowed into their minds, each mare could feel a strange sensation overtake them, as if Applejack’s words were reigniting the energy in their hearts. "You're right," Rainbow Dash said, slowly standing up, walking to her friend. "Besides, if I get too reckless, I know I can count on ya." "Am I really that brave?" Fluttershy asked. Applejack nodded,"Yer here, ain't ya?" "Always there," Whispered Rarity to herself. “Always willing to give her all.” Pinkie smiled, and then laughed a little, "I don't know why I was being mopey." Sunset slowy tried to get up, shaking her head free of the influence tha the area was having on her. "It must have been this area's trap," Twilight said, getting up, and looked at Applejack,"Thank you, Applejack." She said as she hugged her friend. "Not the way I did it, but it worked." Mozenwrath chuckled,"Almost makes me sad to split these six up, they’re perfect for each other." The group continued on until Twilight stepped on a rock, causing several beams to appear in front of her. Dash could only smirk as she saw the beams flowing widely and out of control. In the distance she could see a small button just ahead of her, and in her mind, a small beat began to play in her head, "Oh yeah, now we're talking!” Sunset arched an eyebrow, "What's going on?" she asked, looking around as the lights flashed around the area rythmically. "Oh thank goodness, I thought I was the only one who’s hearing that!" Mozenwrath said. "My image song, it plays in my head when I'm about to be AWESOME!!" Dash cheered as she flew into the beams, swooping up when two beams went horizontally at her. Twisting her body into a corkscrew, she flew in between beams that went vertical, followed by four that tried a checkered formation. The next few beams came at her in a repeated formation according to the strange beat, wich Dash began to fly zig zag through it. Laughing at the obsticle course she had been put on,  Rainbow Dash flew up and under and around a series of more beam. Steadily, as if the song became faster, the beams began to increase their tem. Dash just smirked and began to increasee her own speed, soon coming across the button. The beams stopped as Dash pressed the button. The group congratulated Dash, then continued on until they came to a large door, with a large crab in front. The crab coughed,"This is the last stretch. Tell me a joke and I will let you pass." The five mare all smiled and turned to Pinkie Pie, who had a big grin on her face. Stepping forward with mighty strides, the pink mare took a deep breath, "So Celestia one day stood before three animals and asked them to bring her the item that best represents their cultures and she would bestoe on them a specail gift. Well, the three races :The bunny, the pony, and the deer all left and the next day brought out their gifts. The pony brought a rainbow colored gem and told her ‘This represents unity and friendship.’ Celestia said, ‘Then I grant you bonds that will last evermore.’ The deer brought out a tree, ‘This represents our strenght and courage. Our wisdom and long life.’ Celestia said, ‘Then I will grant you solace and peace evermore.’ The bunny then hopped to Celestia and brought out a calculator. Confused, Celestia looked to the calculator and noticed that it had only three buttons: a 2, a multiply button, and an equals sign. Celestia said, ‘Then I will grant you a vasectomy, so you will multiply nevermore.’” The crab snickered, before falling over laughing as the door behind him opened to reveal a statue holding a rainbow colored sea-shell "Whoa," was all Rainbow could say as she stared at the statue. Will turned to the crab, "Is that- The crab laughed,"Yeah, that's the key!" Twilight walked up to the key and looked around. "Are there any surprises?" Sunset asked. "No, this is it." Mozenwrath answered back. Twilight used her magic to pick up the key and then she and the other Element Bearers were blinded by a flash of light. "Friendship!" was the next thing Twilight heard. She found her and her friends sitting in a large castle on thrones. Twililght blinked as she noticed an alicorn running up to her,"Who...?" "Friendship, there's an Earth Pony in the city!" The  light blue alicorn said. "Friendship?" Twilight asked, she looked behind her and noticed her friends were also alicorns, with flowing manes and glowing eyes. She craned her head a little in order to see the cutie marks but was unable to see what they looked like. "... are you alright your majesty?" The alicorn said. Twilight blinked, before turning to him"Let us see this Earth Pony," Twilight said,"But first give us your name." "Me? But I've been your messenger-oh!" He grinned,"This is a test! My name is Speed, and I've been the messenger of the Six Queens of Harmony for two thousand years." He said, before turning,"Come!" Twilight looked at the others and blinked,"This is getting weird." She said as the group headed towards the earth pony. A white earth pony walked through the emerald city, her eyes looking on in amazement, "Why, I do declare, this is the most amazing city I done ever been to! So lovely and pretty. Now, where is that little ol’ castle of the alicorns? OH! There we are!" slowly she walked, still amazed by the sight. Twilight looked down as she and the other five went to her "Oh my, I wasn't expecting you six to be so... large and beautiful, just who does your manes?" Asked the earth pony before gasping, "Oh, I am sorry, where are my manners. My name is Truly Love, of Paradise Estate." Loyalty chuckled and whispered to Friendship, "Great, one of those. Are they making earth ponies smaller or is it just me?" "Uh, it's just you, Loyalty." Twilight said, guessing at her name. She looked down at Truly,"How did you get her, Truly?" Twilight thought,'Wasn't she in one of the legends? Am I in the past?' "Well, my friend Mimic gave me this here magical charm that lets me travel to a place in my head," with that, Truly brought out a small amulet that had a bird on it. "The girl has been really pushing herself to get us all where we need to go." Twilight blinked,"May I see that?" She said, using her horn to detect the kind of magic on the charm,"Why did you need to come here?" She asked. "Well, that is kind of an interesting story," Truly chuckled. "Mimic had been getting some visions about something about the Heart of Worlds. She said she didn't know what it was but, she said we needed to go and investigate it and maybe talk to the queens of harmony about it." Twilight gasped. "Darling, you realize how dangerous it is to talk about the Heart of Worlds?" the mare that Twilight assumed was Generosity said. "Can we see Mimic? Perhaps we can make sense of her visions," A mare Twilight guessed to be Honesty said. "Further more," Twilight said,"You said 'us', who are the others?" "Mah little ol friends: Wind Whistler, Fizzy, and Gusty. No, we haven’t heard how dangerous it is, we never even heard of a thang until today. We knew of the heart of our world, but not the Heart of Worlds. Mimic is at home, trying to make sense of it all. Ah think this little talisman can take you there, if y'all want," she said. "I think we should go there," Twilight said, taking the talisman in her magic, causing a blinding flash of light. Truely closed her eyes at the blinding flash of light, before looking back at the sea, "Now for mah part." With a mighty sigh she continued her walk. "Twilight?" Twilight heard faintly Applejack say,"You okay?" Twilight blinked and shook her head,"What happened?" "You spaced out for a bit," Sunset trotted over to her,"We were getting worried." Pinkie Pie leapt in, "Yeah! Your eyes were all glowy and there was this light all around you like a giantnormus hearth’s warming tree!" Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"Yeah, I was having some sort of weird vision, where I was controlling the body of an alicorn named Friendship, who was part of the so-called Queens of Harmony. The other virtues, Honesty, Laughter, Kindness, Loyalty, and Generosity were there as well, but they all looked like alicorn versions of you." She looked at the group,"How long was I out?" Rainbow Dash looked down, a tear in her eyes, "For two months Twilight. We thought you were dead." Twilight gasped,"Oh, no! And you've been staying by my side this whole time!?" "Y-yes, and by the way, Sunset and Rarity fell for each other and got married in the meantime," Dash said. "Rainbow Dash!" Shouted Rarity as Rainbow Dash began to laugh uncontrollably. Twilight blinked, then frowned at Rainbow,"Well, if you want to be that way about it, I guess I won't tell you about the alicorn of speed I saw in my vision." "Wait, the what? G-go back to that last one!" Rainbow pleaded. Will watched this and began to laugh slowly to herself and stood next to Sunset, " Guess some things don't change, huh? Friends like that always know how to tease each other." Sunset smiled as she watched them,"No, they don't." She chuckled to herself. "Alicorn of speed, personal messenger to the Queens, but you don't want to hear anything about that!" Twilight said, turning her head away. "Oh come on! Yeah I do, I want to know all about it! How fast was she? Could she break the speed barrier, was she anything like me? Come on!!!" "Oh, okay," Twilight turned with a smile,"Well, I didn't get to see his speed, but I saw his cutie-mark of a lightning bolt." "AW SWEET!" Dash smiled, making a note to try and top him next. "So, what do we do with that there shell? If it’s supposed to be a key or gate, how are we supposed to open it?" Applejack said. "For that matter, where is the gate?" Rarity asked. Twilight looked at the shell,"Maybe we should ask Tydal when we get out." The crab from earlier went up to them,"I'll take you out of here." “Why thank you, darling,” Rarity said with a polite bow, enjoying the gentle crab’s manners. Each mare got onto his back and he quickly began to travel out of the trench. As they did, Will did not notice that her pendant began to glow softly with a low pink glow. The group walked out of the entrance, where Squirk was being tied up by another crab. Squirk squirmed,"I tell ya, I wasn't drunk! The whale just got in my way!" "Yeah, tell it to the judge." The crab said. The girls looked on with a raised eyebrow, "What?" Tydal just gave a shrug,"While you were gone, these crabnasties appeared and arrested," He smirked a bit,"Squirk." Twilight sighed,"Well, while that's going on," "Help me!" Squirk yelled," I'm being oppressed!" "You have the right to remain silent," The crabnasty began. "Where's the gate?" She asked. Tydal pointed west,"At the Stone of Truly, near the base." "Where's the stone of Truly?" asked Applejack. "I'll lead you half-way there, but I could go no furthur. After I take you, you must traverse the Bed of Rememberence, and follow the Stone Turtle to the Gate." Tydal remarked, walking the group forward along the seabed. "Oh, a bed? That sounds lovely," Fluttershy smiled. "Great, a stone turtle," Dash rolled her eyes. "Why can't you go any farther?" Will asked. Tydal looked at them solemnly,"I have lived a long, terrible life, so I cannot bear to see the Bed of Remembrance, for it would show me the horrors I have committed in the past. You eight, however, would not endure that. The Bed would show you happy memories, sad times and your sins." Sunset gasped,"Our sins?" Twilight put a hoof on her shoulder,"You don't have to come if you don't want to." "No, I came this far, I'm not abandoning you now!" Sunset looked at Twilight with determination. Will looked down, "Wonder what it would show me?" Pinkie hopped to Sunset, smiling at her, "Don't be so frowny downy Sunny! If you have any bad memories, we'll cheer you up!!" For once, Rainbow Dash had no snarky thing to say, she just began to fly, "So, let’s go." Tydal lead the group to a large desert like area, one that streched for miles, "Here it is. I must go, but I will be here when you return. Be safe, young ones." He said as he left. "Well, what are we waitng for, let’s get moving!" Dash smirked as she flew on ahead. "Rainbow, wait!" Twilight shouted. As they walked along the sea bed, they could hear voices, " You think you can destroy The Elements of Harmony just like that? Well, you're wrong, because the spirits of The Elements of Harmony are right here." Rarity smiled as she watched some of her memories appear before her, "My word-" "Rarity, this is your little sister," a light pink unicorn said, showing a small little white unicorn at her side Fluttershy blushed as Rarity asked her, "OH, um, I like to come to this spa once in a while." "You five really are the best friends a girl could ever have." Rarity said, hugging her friends tightly. Pinkie Pie giggled as she looked on. "Are you surprised, are you? I saw you and thought that you didn't have any friends and must be so sad." Pinkie said, looking at the surprised purple unicorn. “I know you’re upset, that’s why I gave you a cupcake!” Pinkie Pie giggled. “Welcome to Sugar Cube Corner,” Mr. Cake said. "I just wanted verypony to love my favorite older sister." Pinkie said to the light grey earth pony, before hugging her. "Sunset, welcome to your first day of classes." Celestia said, strolling into the majestic hall. "Oh, is this a mother's day gift?" Celestia said to a young Sunset, smiling. "Today, is your birthday, because this was the day you appeared on my doorstep," Celestia said, smiling. Sunset sniffled at the memories of Celestia,"Oh, Celestia..." "Of course the monsters aren't going to get me, they're too afraid you, big brother!" Little Twilight's voice echoed. "That moment, I realized that you all, are my friends!" Twilight said triumphantly. "Friendship isn't easy, but it is sure worth fighting for!" A few tears came to Applejack's eyes as she looked at the pictures in front o her, "Oh...Ma." "This is your job, you are in charge of helping the house now." An orange earth pony said to young Applejack. "Ah'll watch the farm, just like you pa!" Applejack said, a big grin on her face. "Don't worry ya head, sugacube, we'll be by your side no matter what. We're bonded by something that nopony can break." Applejack said, putting a hoof onto Twilight’s shoulder. Fluttershy smiled softly," Oh I love this memory." "You have to give it to my number one flyer." Rainbow Dash said, nudging over her shoulder "You must be my little angel." Flutterhsy said to the shiverin little bunny. "I won't breank a promise Discord." Fluttershy said, looking up at the draconiquis. A yellow unicorn looked down at her young foal, "My precious Sunset..." but quickly, the image faded away. Sunset reached for the image,”Of course, you leave me again...” She stomped her hoof. Will turned, and walked to one image "This is my memory, but.. .why is it so blurry?" she asked, seeing it split into two. The same scene but shown in different styles. "I don't know, should we even be friends? I mean, all we have in common is this little job we do, and then-" "We'll figure out what's next later!" Giggled the pegasus/human. "Yeah, I mean, it would be boring if we knew what we liked right out the bat, the discovery is half the fun," said the auburn earth pony/human. A brown earth pony smiled, "Well, I am willing to find out." "Some more than others," said a blonde unicorn. “Yeah, but you’re you,” Rainbow dash said. “ I am going to be the fastest ever, so no matter where you go, I’ll be by your side in an instant,” Rainbow Dash squeaked to her best friend. "Ok, I admit it, I love this book," Dash said. Dash smirked, "Ok, so I wass little overboard on that memory." Twilight walked over to Will, seeing the blurry images in front of the pegasus, "It seems even the magic in this place can't show your memory." She then felt a shiver down her spine. She turned and saw a cat woman standing in front of her. On instinct, she fired at it The cat woman laughed, "What is the matter dear Twilight? Still angry at the past?" "Shut up Mirage!" Twilight shouted, firing from her horn again. "Twilight?" Sunset put a hoof on her friend's shoulder,"It's okay, she's not..." She looked up and saw a demon woman above her,"No..." The demon looked down at Sunset, saying nothing but looking down with a sneer. In her eyes, all of Sunset's crimes were on full display. Every person she hurt, every life she broken, and every crime she had ever done flown back into her mind. “Yeah, he was, and he loved every moment o it,” “It was Pinkie Pie after all.” “Look, those kids never loved you.” “Oh please, don’t fight, I might have use for all o you.” “S-S-stop, please,” Sunset said, falling to her knees as more images flodded her mind. “I am going to use these students as cannon fodder while I go after Celestia and wrangle the life from her body,” Sunset said, as the crown sat upon her head. Rainbow Dash smiled at the image of her standing up for Fluttershy, and her first meeting with Twilight, when she saw an image of an old mare, smirking "Don't tell them, remember." The cyan mare growled and attacked, only to watch it fade, and replaced with an image of an older mare leaving, "No, don't!" Then a few more images flew by her. "Just go! I don’t need you here, Fluttershy!” Yelled Rainbow Dash. “What does this MAre-Do-Well got that I don’t got. No, don’t leave me alone!” Whimpered Dash. “Why did you do this?” “ Sorry Scoots, I have to leave for a while, see ya,” Dash said flying away. "Aw shoot," Applejack said, watching as the image of two unicorns appeared, which she bucked. "GO AWAY!" Yelled Rarity as she looked down at her little sister. "You are all the worst! I give my everythng and now you abandon me?" Yelled Rarity. “Oh, Spikey, just let me have the book,” Rarity chuckled madly. "Oh my," Rarity sai, walking away from her memory, and then saw a face she hoped not to see again, "Suri" the unicorn growled a little and got ready to fire a shot. Fluttershy backed away a little as she saw the rage filled her roaring and bumped into Pinkie. The pink earth pony shuddered as she looked to Fluttershy, "Fluttershy,y-you aren't mad at me right?" Fluttershy looked at Pinkie, remembering the event that she was referring to, "Never. You were only trying to show how silly I was being and trying to show me the worst. You were being you... I can never fault you for that." With that, the yellow pegasus hugged her dear friend. Will began to tremble as she heard a sinister laugh from off in the distance. The woman in black smiled, "You can never escape me, Will. Your greatest failure, the one that almost got the ones you loved killed. The gallent hero..." Shivering, Will backed up in fear, "N-nno. Who are you." An olden pony, holding a staf smiled, "I'm you. The one you fear of becoming because of that small trinket." "Come on, the princess needs us." Twilight turned to see a sight she had hoped to never see again. "You have a lot to think about." the echo of Celestia said, walking way. The five other bearers left Twilight alone, while Rainbow Dash flew back a little, "Guys, no...don't leave me." Sunset went down in fear,"No, no, no." Twilight began to tear up,"Not again, don't leave me." "Twilight, it looks like you did it again!" Celestia's happy voice echoed. Twilight's ear perked up at this,"Celestia?" She turned and saw Celestia looking at a little Twilight. "Yay! What's the next spell, Princess!?" the filly said, hopping up and down. "Patience, my dear. Come, you must be tired." Celestia said, walking away towards a rock. Twilight followed. "Ah want to protect her against Diamond, Ah want to punch that little filly so much, but Ah can't. He has the money and can ruin us," Applejack said in the dream. The real Applejack stepped back, watching her faults hit her hard. She then put her hat over her eyes and growled. Turning her green eyes to Twilight, she looked ahead, "That's it girls, follow her lead. All of these bad memories, all of these mistakes we done? They're nothing more than distractions!" Stepping forward slowly, each stride seemed to be in defiance of the bad memories,"Yeah we had plenty of bad memories in our time-" "Oh, I failed them," Rainbow Dash whimpered as she fell to the ground, shivering. "But, that was in our past. We can't forget all of our good memories too!" Applejack said, looking to Rainbow Dash. "Get the buck away from her!" "You mess with one of us, ya mess wiht all of us." "We hurt each other, and we'll do it again one day. But, we make up for it, and we'll come out better than ever for it!" "We've got a whole lifetime of friendship and love behind us. We won't let a little thing like this beat us," she then turned to look at Twilight and smiled, "Right?" "Ah love ya, little sis."  Twilight turned, wiped a tear, then nodded as she continued on. Sunset watched as Applejack gave her speech. She then saw the human Applejack before her. She got up and walked behind Twilight. "And don't forget, we're right there with ya to help with the bad memories," Applejack said, hugging both Twilight an Sunset. "I may like winning, but I love them way more," "Yeah," Dash smiled as she walked behind Sunset an Twilight, "My faults are just gonna help make me more awesome!" A human Dash appeared for Sunset, holding out her hand. "I live to help and make things more lovely. I will be there." Rarity wiped a tear falling rom her eyes, before looking ahead. Pinkie Pie took Fluttershy by a hoof and led her ahead. “So I act a little goofy, I alway want to bring a smile to anypony’s face,” “I may be scared, but I wont let them down!” In front of Sunset, Rarity, Pinkie, and Fluttershy stood with their hands holding out. Applejack kept walking ," And i fyou have any problems, put them on me, I'll be there to hold them all up." Will felt a familar tug on her heart, as if seven lights were pulling her away... "...I don't deserve you girls," "You do, don't think otherwise." IRma said.   "Yeah, or else we'll hug you until you realize it." Hay Lin smiled. Twilight looked at Applejack,”AJ, you are not going to put all our problems on yourself, we’re going to shoulder the burden with you.” Applejack chuckled, a warm smile on her face as she put a hoof onto twilight's back, "Of course." Will walked forward slowly, the inner light she had glowing a little more brightly The group soon walked in front of a large stone turtle. Twilight looked behind her,"Okay, I am so teleporting us back. Everypony agreed?" "Agreed!!" Said the girls in unison. Twilight looked at the large structure,”How is this going to lead us to the gate?” “Hmm?” The turtle started to move,”Oh, I have visitors.” “Wow! It’s a talking stone turtle!” Pinkie exclaimed. “Fascinating, what exactly are you?” Twilight asked. “I am a golem, created specifically to protect the gate. I assume that is what you are here for?” The turtle’s head laid down to look into the group’s eyes. Twilight nodded,”Yes, we came to get the Heart of Worlds before Valtor could get to it. So who created you?” “I... don’t remember.” The turtle cocked it’s head,”But Valtor is a name I fear. Come, I’ll take you to the gate.” The group soon rode on the Turtle’s back to a large rock with a whiteearth pony etched onto it. Twilight walked up to the Earth Pony image,"Truly," She said, rubbing the etched figure. Suddenly, the sea shell came out of her saddle bags and glowed, causing the stone to shimmer. A gate appeared on the front. Rainbow Dash stepped forward, "So, who's first?" Twilight looked at all of them,"I think I'd better take a look inside." She said, before turning and opening the door. The door opened to a decayed wasteland, with various crystal buildings scattered across the area. "Oh, my word!" Rarity exclaimed. "What happened here?" Asked Will Twilight stepped through it,"That's what I want to know." Mozenwrath growled,"I sense Heartless in the area." "Heartless?" Sunset thought. A small shadow then began to follow them. > I is for Intervention > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         The cold and heavy feeling that filled the air of the city seemed to have no effect on Pinkie Pie as she skipped through some of the more destroyed buildings, "Hello! Anypony here?"  Twilight walked to a destroyed structure,"I don't think we'll find anypony here." She rubbed her hoof along it, the crystal reflecting her face. "Sunset, look around you." Mozenwrath said. Sunset looked around the group, and noticed several shadows moving,"That's not good, is it?" She thought. "Those are Heartless. Their main purpose is to take various hearts, including the hearts of various worlds. They must've taken this one too. Be careful, don't let them take your hearts." Mozenwrath said. "Why? They don't seem to be doing anything right now..." "They are sizing you up, seeing your hearts in their eyes. Right now, you and your friends look like a banquet to them.” Sunset raised an eyebrow skeptically,"Why are you helping me?" "I don't want you and your friends to lose your hearts and become... worse than I need you to be." Mozenwrath said. Sunset turned to Applejack,"AJ, do you notice something?" She whispered, motioning to the shadows. Applejack began to look around her, watching the shadows at first appearing to be still. Then she let out a small gasp as some of them began to move, "The shadows, they're movin. Hey, Twilight!" she yelled “You see them too?" Twilight said, turning away from the building she was inspecting,"I thought I was seeing things at first, too bad I was wrong." She looked around, seeing one of the shadows creep up on Will. The shadow began to form into a pony like creature with yellow eyes and tendril-like ears. Twilight fired a beam from her horn as the beast tried to snatch Will. "Twilight, what are these things?!" Asked Dash as she pulled Fluttershy away from one of the creatures. "Well, they certainly need a better dresser. Black, uggh," Rarity groaned, backing away from another creature and blasting it back with her horn. "I don't know, Rainbow," Twilight looked around them,"But there are a lot of them!" She said as more creatures began to appear and surround them. Dash turned and bucked a few in the face, watching as they dissipated, while Fluttershy led them away before flying behind them. Panting, Fluttershy wiped her forehead and flew away. Only to be flanked by several more flying heartless from her side. As she watched them come after her, she flew under them and hid in a back alleyway. A heartless came up behind her, and was quickly bucked by a kick from Rainbow Dash. Fluttershy smiled and followed her friend out of the alley. Pinkie quickly dodged tendril after tendril in a bit of acrobatics. Leaping up, she knocked some heartless together. Rarity looked to some of the crystals that laid around, levitated them, and sent them flying at the monsters. Sunset and Twilight stood back to back, firing several beams at the monsters. Moving in perfect sync, the two students began to strike shot after shot upon each heartless. One creature slinked up behind them, trying to attack them. As the heartless lunged, Applejack bucked the creature hard into the side and sent it flying. Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy flew to catch up with their three friends, knocking off the weaker heartless before they landed. After setting Fluttershy down on the ground with her friends, Rainbow Dash took to the air and began to striking down  airborne heartless. Two heartless swiped her claws at Fluttershy from behind, but they were thrown aside by Rarity and Pinkie Pie. The seven mares began to stand back to back, each one striking out against the heartless and protecting the other. Each creature that leapt at them was swiftly taken down by a bolt or a punch from one of the seven protecting mares.Will ducked under a few of the creatures slashes, trying her best to summon her lighting magic, but finding it gone. Seeing the others circling against each other, Will flew to join them, switching to physical combat instead. The creatures began to scurry away. A look of shock and fear in their eyes as they ran off. Panting, Dash looked to Sunset as she dusted off her legs, "So, does Bacon hair have any explanations?" “Bacon hair?” Sunset panted and shook her head,"I wish I did." Twilight looked ahead to a large crystal castle,"Maybe we should look in there." The bearers and Will nodded and followed Twilight towards the gain castle. Looking up, Rarity commented, " It almost makes one think of the crystal palace back at the Empire." Twilight nodded in agreement, then gasped when she noticed a blackened heart under the palace,"Girls, I think this is the Empire!" "WHAT?!" Exclaimed the group as they ran to the blackened heart. "But how?" Applejack asked, watching as the black heart shone like a diamond. For a moment, she thought she could hear a voice from the stone. "Did we go backwards or forwards in time? OH, what if I meet my grandpa and we fall in love and I end up getting knocked up and end up giving birth to my mom?" Pinkie asked. "Does that mean I would have to call Maude grandkid?" "Sometimes-" Will began hearing a voice from the past "There will be times, girls, on your travels you will encounter a version of your own world. you will see horrible things that may have happened to the ones you care about.” the old mare told Will as she walked in front of her "- we encounter alternate versions of our worlds. Sometimes, those versions aren't always pleasant." Will said solemnly. "So," Twilight walked close to the blackened crystal heart,"somehow we ended up in a world taken over by whatever those things are. Those gates must lead us to other worlds, but why?" She turned and looked at the group,"Let's head inside the castle, maybe we'll find answers." Applejack walked behind Twilight and pt a shoulder onto her shoulder, "Hey, Twilight. We might see Shining Armor or Cadence in her, you know that right?" Twilight shuddered and looked away,"I know. I was... trying to get that out of my mind." She kicked a pebble. She could still feel Applejack’s comforting hoof running along  along her back in a comforting manner as she watched the pebble roll away from one of the castles stands. Turning away, the mares walked into the castle proper and up the flight of stairs. For the longest time, the only sound that could be heard from within was the sounds of their footsteps and their breathing. The crystal palace was wide and cavernous, echoing each step that they took. They did not notice a set of dragon like eyes watching from inside a sealed room. "Who's there!?" a voice shouted. Twilight blinked, turning to look at the direction where the voice came from" Who is it? Are you a survivor?" "... Mom?" The voice said. Out of a door, a black unicorn head with dragon-like eyes peeped out,"You're alive?" "Um, hello dear, it’s ok, we're your friends," Rarity said, waving a hoof for the unicorn. "Oh, you poor thing. Where you left here all alone?" Asked Fluttershy. "Mom?!" Dash asked, looking to her friend. “Twilight, what has your other self been doing?” Twilight shrugged at Dash,"How would I know!?" The unicorn was about to step out, but she stopped herself. "How do I know you're not a trick by the Heartless?" the unicorn said. She looked at Fluttershy"I wasn't left here, at least, not technically. I had to watch my friends turn into-" She stopped herself before heading back into the room,"Come inside if you are who you say you are." Applejack was the first to walk in, followed by Will. The room was a small library with a window overlooking the decayed empire.”Who are you?" Will asked. The unicorn turned in surprise, her wings briefly visible, under her cloak,"I guess you aren't a trick by the Heartless, or you wouldn't have gone passed my spell. So you are either real, or figments of my imagination. No matter." She turned to a journal,"My name is Nyx, and I'm the last survivor of this harsh world.” "You're an alicorn!" Pinkie exclaimed as she saw the wings. Nyx looked behind her,"Yeah, I kind of am." She sighed as she walked to a bookshelf. Her cutie mark of a shield with a crescent moon became visible. “Wait, how did Twilight get an alicorn daughter?” Rainbow Dash asked. “I was adopted after Mom saved me from an attempt to resurrect Nightmare Moon,” Nyx said calmly. "Were you a royal guard?" Twilight asked. She wasn’t about to get into the details of the resurrection of Nightmare Moon just yet. "Yeah, and yet I was unable to stop them..." Nyx growled as she hit one book in frustration. Twilight looked at the journal on the desk and walked towards it . She noticed the title said,"Heartless." "Nyx, just what happened here?" Rarity asked, her mind looking back at the ruins of the city. "How did the... heartless as you call them, manage to do all of this?" "It started with a small portal. First there were a few, which me and my mom managed to drive off," Nyx began. Twilight flipped the page to see one of the few they had fought, named "Shadow." "We didn't know where they came from and just assumed they were just a random monster attack, but then more started to come," Nyx continued. Twilight turned another page, to a large black dog labeled,"Gemhunter." "They became stronger, they started to take creature's hearts, turning them into Heartless, then" she shuddered. Twilight gasped as she saw more pages, with dark versions of her, the princesses and her friends,"Loneliness, Deceit, Treachery, Hatred, Cruelty, Avarice, Nightmare Moon, Corona, Decadence." "They took Spike first, then my aunts, then the princesses, then." she gulped,"Oh, Mom, why didn't you let me help?" she started to cry into the shelf. Fluttershy walked over to Nyx and gave her a hug, rubbing her hoof along the alicorn's back, "It’s ok, it'll be alright." "You mom was probably trying to protect you," Pinkie said with a grin. "And, then they did all this," Rarity said with a shocked look as she looked out of the window. Her eyes began to water as the realization hit her, "No, Sweetie Belle..." "Can't start thinking like that, Rare, Applebloom and the others could be ok,"Applejack said, the small shudder in her throat betrayed her though. "No, it won't be alright!" Nyx pulled away from Fluttershy,"They're all gone! Sweetie Belle, Apple Bloom, Scootaloo... all of them!" Will walked to Twilight and looked at the nightmare forms of each bearer as well as the other heartless that was in the book, "Did you make this book?"  She picked up the journal with her magic,"I wrote that book when I was studying them, trying to find some sort of way to fix them, but now I'm only trying to survive! How did I survive so long?" She began to chuckle madly,"Apparently, the dumber ones, the ones that weren't my aunts, Mom, or the princesses, thought I was one of them! I guess being Nightmare Moon's reincarnation helps!" She laughed,"What cruel joke!" She yelled suddenly, slamming the cracked ground with her hoof. The mention of the fates of their sisters caused Rainbow Dash and Applejack to furrow their brows and almost stepped out, were it not for Sunset's magic, "Girls, this is no time to go half-cocked into a vengeance spree." Sunset said. "She's right, ladies do not take vengeance," Rarity said with a low voice, "They wait for the opportune time to honor their sister's memory." Her hair covered her eyes as she looked down at the ground. "Its not a joke, cause I'm not laughing," Pinkie said, rubbing Nyx's back. Will looked at the book, and then back to Twilight, "Do you think there is a way to fix them?" “Well, if we-" Twilight said, but was cut off by Nyx. "If I couldn't find an answer, how could she!?" Nyx shouted, tears in her eyes. She looked away and sighed,"Although, there is something..." "What is it?" Fluttershy asked. Nyx picked herself up walked over to a box with six gems on the top and kicked it open,"Here are objects used by the Queens of Harmony. I am unable to use them, but if my aunts and Mom were here..." Twilight walked over to the box. Inside a purple sword with a star hilt glimmered. a vision of a purple alicorn with a flowing mane using the sword came to her mind. "Equinox." A voice whispered. Twilight pulled it out. There was a white rapier with a diamond on the hilt. An image of a white alicorn with a flowing mane thrusting with it came to Rarity,"Vorpal." Four shiny orange boots with green apples on the buckles shimmered. An orange alicorn with a flowing mane had them on, and was bucking entire mountains,"Gaia." A pair of cyan wing blades with red lightning bolts glimmered. A cyan alicorn with a flowing rainbow mane was slicing tornadoes with them,"Chrysaor." A pair of yellow wing blades with vines surrounding them, before stopping at pink butterflies glimmered. A yellow alicorn with a flowing mane used them to block a dragon's fire,"Mediena" A large golden party cannon, with a blue balloon on the top shimmered. A pink alicorn was seen using it to make more parties,"Party Cannon MK 2000” Rainbow Dash flew over to look at the wing blades, a smile on her face, "AWWWWW YEAH! That is what I am talking about!!!"  As if by magic, the blades came onto her wings in a red flash "My word, what excellent craftsmanship in the weaponry," Rarity said, looking down at Vorpal. As she stared into the reflective image, she fixed a little bit of her mane while it glowed a light white. "Yeah, and some of these weapons are pretty nice looking too," Applejack said, smiling. Much like with Rainbow Dash, the boots flew onto her hooves, glowing faintly orange. "Oh, my. Twilight, do you think these are for us?" Fluttershy asked, looking down at the wing blades as they glowed a bright yellow. "Ohhh, please let me have the cannon!" Pinkie Pie giggled, as the cannon glowed blue. "I believe so." Twilight said,"Though it's rather convenient that they would be here and our other selves didn't get them." She took Equinox out. The sword glowed a bright purple in her grasp. Nyx blinked,"That... didn't happen when I tried to use them."  Will looked at each of the weapons, "Maybe, Nyx, its because it belonged to them." "That..." Nyx looked at them,"Yes, that's why you all came here isn't it?" "Where did you find these?" Sunset asked. "How did the pink one put that cannon in her mane?" Mozenwrath asked. "It's Pinkie." Sunset thought "They just appeared." Nyx said," I only found them after my friends..." A hoof slammed outside of the room,"Nyx..." A voice hissed,"It's Aunt Cadence, please come out this time..." the hoof slammed against the door again. A smile came across Pinkie's face as she bounced to the door, putting her face to the door,"Not until you bring some cake!" "... Pinkie? I thought you were a heartless now..." Decadence said. “Can she get through the door?” Twilight asked, looking at the large library doors. Nyx gasped as the heartless slammed on the door again,"No, we're safe. She can't get through the door, not with my enchantment." Twilight walked in front of Nyx, Equinox in her magic,"Come on, girls, let's fix this problem." She looked at Sunset,"You stay here with Will and protect Nyx." The girls smiled to Twilight, and nodded. Sunset took a step back towards Nyx and placed a foreleg around the little alicorn defensively, her brow furrowing in sheer determination. Will took a step forward, but a look from Sunset caused her to back away a little. “I want to help,” Will growled, rubbing her hoof  into the ground, "But, what can I do." "You can keep her and yourself safe and," She smiled at Nyx,"You can reassure Nyx that we'll be fine." Sunset nodded,"She's right, Will." She put a hoof on her shoulder,"We need to be here in case anything happens. Will nodded and sighed, "Kind of wish I could be with them." As the six made their way to the door, Dash asked, “Do you two know how to use those things? I mean, basic wingblade training is something that is taught in the academy, but you-” “Me and Shining used to spar with swords when I was little,” Twilight said. “I got interested in the art when I was doing some light reading and Shining offered to teach me.” Rarity smiled knowingly, “I am quite fascinated by the finer arts in life: archery, fencing, and that sort of thing. For me, I love the art of using the sword, the swift movements of the blade, and the use of it as a sport. It is one of the few sports I am into.” “And yet, ya won’t be caught dead in a hoofball match,” Applejack chuckled as they opened the door. Slowly the door opened and the bearers of the elements stepped out of the door in a line, a faint mist at the bottom of their hooves. Twilight walked in front of her friends,"Hello, princess." She smiled at the pink and black form in front of her. A black mare with pink eyes stared at them. Pink armor adorned her body, and a blackened heart was where her cutie mark should be,"You... think you can take... me?" To answer, Rainbow Dash smirked and said, "Watch us!" Several shadows leaped at them, before Twilight cut them all in a flash of light. Several hearts flowed up from them. Looking to her friends, Twilight’s expression darkened, “Just remember, they are only shadows. Just like the fearcats.”  Instinctually, Rainbow Dash flew off through the black creatures, letting her wing blades cut through them. She then turned up and flew through another row of the heartless. Rarity took a step back and used Vorpal to cut through two heartless, watching in shock as the creatures faded while a pink heart floated out. Giggling Pinkie Pie exclaimed, "Hey look, these guys have something inside them!" "They look like hearts," Twilight said, grabbing a gemhunter and slicing it,"Perhaps these weapons are freeing captured hearts and those hearts are going back to their recipients!" She looked at Decadence,”I’m sorry, Cadence,” She muttered as she ran at her. Decadence smirked,"How... gutless... suicide's the cowards way out!" She produced a black sword with a rose hilt and slashed at her. Twilight blocked it, then returned with a thrust, which was blocked by Decadence. Fluttershy looked up at Applejack, as the hearts were released, "So, we're really helping them?" "Yeah, so don't worry about killing them sugarcube, like Twilight said" Applejack said with a wink. She then slammed both hooves into the ground before punching two heartless in the face. Then, she helped Fluttershy down and hit a heartless that was behind her. Rarity went to Pinkie's side slashing at them all the way. She watched as Twilight began to fight her former foalsitter, "Pinkie, go to Twi-" she stopped as she watched the pink ball of energy running to Twilight's side. Rainbow Dash flew in from above, “Why is Pinkie heading towards Twilight?” “She is fighting someone she cares for, do you think it will be easy for her? What if you had to fight Scootaloo or one of us?” Rarity said, thrusting at a few heartless. Rainbow Dash said nothing, choosing instead to fly in the direction of the heartless and strike them down. Fluttershy let out a gasp as she watched some heartless come at her, and flew at them to cut them down. Realizing she had her eyes closed as she took down the heartless, she turned around to watch them fade into the ether. Letting out a sigh that her opponents were gone, she began to focus on her flying and getting to a safer spot. That was when she saw one heartless trying to stab Applejack from behind. Growling, the yellow pegasus flew through the shadow, her wingblade giving a clean hit. Turning to look down at her orange friend, Fluttershy smiled as she watched Applejack tip her hat in gratitude. Rainbow Dash smiled as she cut a few more creatures down, letting her wing blades cut through the air, "Ok, we have got to see what these babies can do!" The air turned into blades from Dash's wings. The air blades cut through more heartless. Dash’s eyes went wide, "Ok, that is awesome!!" Applejack and Rarity stood back to back, slamming down heartless after heartless. Rarity watched as five earth pony heartless backed up and ran at her, only to be swiped by Applejack’s legs. In return, Rarity slashed at three pegasi heartless behind her, before  ducking under one more which she thrust her blade into one. Then she ran her hoof through her mane to quickly fix it. Decadence and Twilight’s duel continued on, through the castle and into the throne room. Each blade clashing together in a shower of sparks and light. The fight was only interrupted when Pinkie Pie appeared on the top of Decadence head, “Hi, Twily!” the party mare said with a flutter of her eyes. “Pinkie?” Twilight asked in shock as she blocked a swipe from Decadence. “What are you doing here?” “Helping! Whoa!” Pinkie exclaimed as Decadence began to buck and thrash about in an attempt to throw her off. With a timed flip, the young mare jumped off from the wildly thrashing princess and landed in front of Twilight. Before she had a chance to say something else, her tail quickly began to flail. Eyes wide, she jumped out of the way of Decadence’s lunge. Decadence growled,”Annoyance...” she stepped to the side as Twilight struck at her with her sword. "I prefer to think of myself as peppy!" Pinkie squealed as she rolled under and lightly began to punch Decadence's underside. Decadence screamed as Pinkie hit her, and began to desperately try and get to Pinkie under her. She did not see Twilight as the purple pony flew up and sliced at her side, cutting her deep. Blasting out a wave of  magic that blew the two ponies against the wall,  Decadence put up a shield around herself. Pinkie got up, shaking some of the dizziness way as the shield went up, "The big silly." "Silly? How... am I silly?" Decadence demanded. "You trapped yourself with my cannon," Pinkie giggled, pointing to the cannon beneath the alicorn. "And...boom." The alicorn looked down,"Aw... shoot." She said as the cannon exploded, sending her backwards. Then Twilight flew and stabbed her, causing her to disappear. A shimmer was seen as a pink alicorn lay limp on the ground.A small smirk came to the pink pony's face as she looked to Twilight to hoof bump her, and then began to look into her saddle bag. The others, watching as the creatures began to dissipate ran into the throne room where their friend awaited. From within the library, Will put her ear to the door, “I think the fighting’s stopped.” “Good, that means we can stop waiting,” Sunset remarked, putting away one the books that she used to occupy her time. Reaching for the young teen alicorn, the yellow unicorn smiled, “Trust me. It’ll be ok.” “You know, that could also mean that your friends have failed,” Mozenwrath said. Sunset shook her head, “They didn’t, trust me. If they are anything like my world’s friends...” As Will went for the door, Dash quickly opened it from the other side, “Come on guys, Cadence is awake.” Nyx ran out and gasped when she heard the news. Sunset chuckled to Moznewrath as she followed Nyx and the others out of the library. Nyx beamed as she saw the alicorn,"Cadence!" She shouted, running to her aunt. Twilight held Cadence's head up, trying to get the love alicorn to her feet,"Cady?" Twilight said. The pink alicorn's eyes fluttered open,"T-Twily?" Tears filling her eyes, Twilight forgot for the moment that this was not her Cadence and gave her a giant hug. This embrace was soon joined by Nyx who hugged her just as tightly, "Princess?" Rarity asked, stepping forward with a bow, "Are you all right?" Applejack smiled and tipped her hat, "Welcome back, yer majesty." Pinkie Pie skipped to Cadence and offered her a cupcake, "Hungry?" Cadence took the cupcake and ate it happily,"I'm fine... now. Everypony else?" "We're all doing ok," Fluttershy said, smiling. "Princess, how could've all of this happen? Ah mean, the heart or the elements should've done something!" Applejack said. Will stood back and sighed, looking at the group, "And I did nothing." she sighed as the others began to talk to the princess. "Do you know where we are? I mean, where the other we are? OR Tia and Luna?" Pinkie asked. Cadence shook her head,"I don't about that. The heart, for some reason, couldn't stop them. The heartless took the bearers before they could use the Elements." Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"Hmm." "What is it Twi?" asked Applejack. "Well, since these things can apparently purify heartless, I was thinking we can apply the magic in these weapons to the Crystal Heart and fix the world." Twilight said, taking a look at her sword. "That's what I was thinking, other Mom," Nyx said with a nod. “But it’s not going to be easy, is it?” Rarity asked. "No, I'm pretty sure our heartless selves are going to stop us." Twilight said with an affirmative nod. Rainbow Dash smirked, "Oh, and I thought you said we were going to have something tough," brushing down her wings, she let out a grin, "I always knew I could beat myself in a dog fight." Fluttershy gulped, "Not to mention, there might be a chance Luna and Celestia are there. Oh, Twilight, I don't know i I could fight any of you girls." "Well, one thing to remember is that they are not us or the princesses," Twilight said, walking to a nearby window and looking out at the destroyed city."They're just shadows of us." "Even so darling, it will be tough," Rarity said, looking down. Applejack then put a hoof onto Twilight's shoulder, "Now, who are telling that to Sugarcube, us or to yourself?" Twilight looked at Applejack, then her pupils went down,"Myself." She whispered. Applejack slowly wrapped a foreleg around Twilight and hugged her. Rainbow Dash looked to Cadence, “But, the heart was black when we saw it downstairs. Doesn’t that mean its dead?" Cadence shook her head,"It's only corrupted, not destroyed. If you can purify it, you can fix it." "Oh, great,” Dash rolled her eyes at this. “Think these weapons can do the job Twi?" Dash asked. Will looked at the group and stepped forward, “Um, Twilight. I would also like to try and see if I can purify the heart. ” Rainbow Dash let out a scoff at this, “And what makes you think you can do anything?” “That pendant did cure me of the hate plague that was in me,” Sunset said. “It might do the same for the heart.” Twilight looked at her sword and then to the pendant on Will’s neck, “It is a possibility. I am still quite curious as to how that gem works, and I wish I had a chance to study it.” “Well, it makes a great flashlight! Look at it glow.” Pinkie giggled. Will turned her head down and stepped back, “What? Wh-when has it been doing this?” Nyx arched an eyebrow at this, “You mean, it wasn’t supposed to do that? It was glowing when you came in the library.” “Interesting,” Twilight said, walking to the pendant and lifting it with her magic. “Maybe its glow has something to do with the Crystal Heart. Maybe if we could get to it and place this pendant on it, we could revive the heart.” “Hey, Twilight, think that monster could help us down?” Pinkie Pie asked. “What monster?” Twilght asked, before letting out a small eep as a giant eyeball appeared outside the window. Nyx looked at the eyeball,"Not a behemoth..." She gulped. "Ok, what is a behamoth?" Asked Rainbow Dash. "Well, it's big, breaths fire, and I do believe it came from the heart of a dragon," Nyx said, taking a step back as a clawed hoof slammed against the castle. "A dragon?" Flutterhy squeaked at the rumbling of the toner/ "Wait, a heart of a dragon?" Applejack asked, as she started to realize the horror of what that could mean. Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes at this, "Bucking great, who wants to go outside and sya hello?" Twilight looked out the window, her body shivering,"Don't think about it, don't think about it." She opened the window and leaped out. "TWILIGHT!" the five mares shouted. Applejack turned to look at Nyx, "Is there a faster way outside?" "No Time! I can fly-" Dash said, beginning to fly out the door. But was quickly blocked by Will. "No! We don't need two reckless ponies out there," Will said, looking into Dash's magenta eyes. "We need to plan something else. "What do you know, newbie? Out of my way!" Dash shouted. "Rainbow," Fluttershy whispered, to which Dash sighed and floated down. Nyx nodded,"Down here," She said as she ran towards a corridor. Quickly, the mares followed Nyx downstairs to where the behemoth was attacking," No, Spike..." Rarity said, noticing the faint purple color in the behemoth's body. "Where's Twilight?" Asked Fluttershy. Applejack turned to look back at Nyx, “Nyx, you go and keep an eye on Cadence. That’s an order!” “Yes ma’am!” Nyx saluted, unable to refuse a command from her aunt. Twilight's body flew down in front of Fluttershy. She got up, feeling a little dizzy,"Bad Spike, take your medicine..." She shook her head and growled as she got up. "Twilight, are you all right?" Fluttershy asked, looking over her friend. Twilight looked at Fluttershy,"Well, my faithful assistant is now a dark being and I'm trying to get help him as fast as possible without endangering my friends, who in this world are also heartless, but other than those things, I'm just peachy!" She yelled, as the behemoth breathed fire. The fire was blocked by Sunset's shield. Fluttershy let out a squeak as Twilight yelled, hiding it behind her wings. Twilight stepped back a little,"I-I'm sorry Fluttershy. It's this world." She looked at the behemoth behind her,"It took you, the princesses, and Spike." She sighed. Sunset nodded,"No problem, but could you girls maybe come up with a plan before I lose this?" She felt a bit of unfamiliar magic bolstering her shield,"Mozenwrath As I've said, I don't want these things to kill you all "W-well, he's a little big, but I can try," Fluttershy nodded "Alright you try to stare him down," She turned to Applejack and Rainbow Dash,"You two take a piece of rope and tie it around his legs." She looked at Rarity,"Rarity, when he goes down, you and I swing up at him. Pinkie?" She looked at the pink mare with a smile,"Party Time." Each mare nodded in response, before breaking away from the group as Sunset dropped the shield. The dragon let out another roar as he saw his prey expose themselves from the shield. Taking a deep breath, Fluttershy flew straight up towards the dragon and landing on his nose. Narrowing her eyes, she looked deep into the dragon’s eyes, giving him the full power of the stare, “Spike, what on earth is the meaning of this? You are breaking you poor Twilight’s heart by being so destructive and cruel. Now, you stop attacking us right now or else I will give you a time out.” The beast shuddered as it stepped back, not seeing Rainbow Dash and Applejack pulling a rope taught around the dragon’s legs and causing him to trip. This allowed for Twilight and Rarity to swung up with their sword. Pinkie Pie, finding a broken building, aimed her cannon, "Ready, ready, aim and fire!" she squealed, firing the shot at the monster as he fell backwards. The monster screamed as it hit the broken building. A heart flew out as it disappeared. Twilight took a step towards the building, and then she  shuddered,"Anypony else feel a little cold?" She said, her air visible. A figure drew near her. "Y-yeah," Rainbow Dash said, shuddering. Which was surprisingly for her since pegasi like her didn't get cold. Will looked towards the heart and saw eight figures approaching, “Guys, look ou-” her voice was drowned out by a severe gust of wind. After several minutes of strong wind blowing them back, the eight mares found themselves in town center, facing the castle and the path to the heart. Rainbow Dash swore under her breath as she watched six mares approaching from the path. One in particular caused her horn to glow and appear closer to Twilight, "Do... you feel it?" Twilight's voice whispered in the alicorn’s ear," the Loneliness?" Fluttery barely had time to let out a yelp of surprise when she was hit by A yellow and black shape tackled Fluttershy,"Can you run? I think not!" Cruelty said, through jagged teeth. “Fluttershy!” Yelled Rainbow Dash when a black and rainbow blur flew around her. "Oh look, it's a poser!" The thing said with a laugh. A pink and black hoof slammed the ground before Pinkie,"Not you, I hate you!" A white and black form danced through the air,"Oh, my, I hate it when ponies copy me!"  She said, beckoning Rarity to come away from the group. A orange and black hoof stormed towards AJ,"Howdy, Ah'm here to be yer friend!" Twilight took a step back,"Sunset, you and Will go for the Heart, now!" Will looked back to Sunset and then to Twilight, "But what about you?" Twilight looked up at her evil self, who was standing a small distance away from her, a sword drawn,"We'll be fine, we've got each other after all." She said with a smile. Will calmly nodded and flew off, Sunset turned and followed her, her horn glowing as she got ready for the first sign of trouble. Fluttershy grunted as her opponent landed on top of her, putting her foreleg to the evil her throat, trying to hold her back. "Who are you?" "Cruelty," She hissed,"and I'm feeling hungry for a little filly’s heart!" She snapped at her. With a grunt, Fluttershy managed to push her evil half off,  looking at her with concerned eyes"Why?" "Because that's what I do!" Cruelty screeched. "You don't have to," Fluttershy said calmly, looking into the monster's eyes. "You have to hurt others or steal their hearts." "Yes, I do!" She shook her head,"Don't confuse me!" "No, you don't. You don't have to hurt others, pain only brings misery and that only brings loneliness and hatred," Fluttershy said, watching as the evil her stepped closer. "I am not trying to confuse you, I am telling the truth." Cruelty shook,"No, you're lying." "No, I'm not," Fluttershy said, shaking her head. " You have a wonderful life, friends you can spend time with, and a world to live in. It might be terrifying, but there is so much to explore and live with." Cruelty went back, her body shivering,"Shut up... please!" Fluttershy walked up slowly, putting her hoof onto her heartless's shoulder, "No, you need to hear this. Hurting others will get you nowhere, all it will do is leave you alone. You are more than just a mindless monster, you are a pony." "I... am a pony?" The heartless shook her head, stopping. "Yes, you are," Fluttershy said, looking into the eyes of cruelty. "You are not a trait, you are a pony with your own thoughts." Cruelty looked down,"I... am?" "Really?" Cruelty said. "Yes," Fluttershy smiled. Cruelty teared up,"Thank you..." She said as she faded.         Avarice walked slowly towards Rarity, bringing out her own rapier. Rarity said nothing, but calmly brought up her sword and looked straight down at the heartless. In her mind, she began to size her opponent up, letting her dressmaker side to kick in and look at a body for flaws and traits. Avarice pointed her sword at Rarity, her gaze trying to cut down the dressmaker. The two mares stood there for a moment, not moving, allowing the wind to blow through their manes. In a flash, Avarice launched into a thrust towards Rarity.Rarity parried the blow, and returned it, adding a slash to her attack. Avarice parried that, and went with a thrust. Holding her sword upwards, she blocked the thrust with a swipe of her sword and slashed at a low angle. The heartless took a step back to dodge the blow. Across the square, the two mares duel took them past ruined building after ruined building. Each thrust and slash was returned with a similar strike, as if a mirror was placed between them and they were just following each other’s motions. There was almost a faint smile on Rarity’s face as she blocked three thrusts in a row from her opponent. In return, she copied the move in perfect sync, with the heartless blocking in the same manner. Then, the heartless slashed across Rarity’s chest, causing her to wince from the blow, and just barely dodging the next thrust. From her crouching position, the dressmaker swiped up and then thrusted at Avarice left hoof, catching the other mare off guard. The other mare growled and sent a slash at Rarity, and Rarity managed to block that, only to get nicked in the leg by the strike from the heartless. Another swiped was blocked by Rarity’s upward strike, and then lowered her sword to block and then swiped in an upwards fashion, "Avarice, greed. Quite a detestable sin if I do say so." "Really? Quite a lot coming from you, considering that you skirt the line of greed." She jumped back and then did a horizontal swipe. Calmly, Rarity blocked the hit with her sword. She then did a diagonal swipe with her blade, " True, I admit to my flaws. However, I also remember to be as generous as I can be to offset it. For My friends, my sister, and my business, I would give it my all." Avarice parried,"Your all? Hmm, I'd say you haven't done enough!" She did a swipe downwards. "How so?" Rarity said, blocking the attack. "You need to give more of yourself, because that greed is all that your so called friends ever see of you!" She thrusted. Rarity narrowed her eyes, blocking the thrust with ease,"That is where you are wrong. They see how often I give my time, and how I construct my business. They know that, while I am generous, I am not an idiot. I make sure to keep myself in balance," pushing the unicorn off, she swiped, twisting her sword into a thrust. "But what does your sister think!?" Avarice felt the tip nick her body, and returned with a slash that managed to make a nick along Rarity’s chest. Rarity looked down as she sliced at Avarice, "She does think I am selfish, that is true. But, deep down, she also realizes the work I put into my career and respects that." Avarice backed up, and lunged at her. Rarity smirked, dodging the blade and swiped at the pony, only to watch it go through, "What?" Rarity blinked “... I hate you,” growled Anger. "Shame, because I like you! You look kind of funny," the pink pony giggles as she looked to her heartless. "You think this is funny!" Anger growled. Pinkie calmly nodded, the smile never leaving her face. Anger growled,"you annoying little snot!" Pinkie Pie giggled as she rolled out o the way and brought out a pie, "I think I am more energetic." Anger growled, and looked down at the pie,"Don't show me that.” She turned away. "Ok, how about this?" Pinkie asked shoin her a cuppy cake, with her face one it. Anger growled,"Stop it!" "I would stop, but I can't" Pinkie said, looking at Anger with a big smile. "What do you mean you can't!?" Anger screamed and stomped her hoof. "I can't, because you are still upset," Pinkie said, offering a sponge cake and then put a silly hat onto her opponent. "And I never leave a pony with a frown!!" "But... I always have a frown!" Anger said. "You don't have to!" Pinkie giggled. "You can have fun instead! Or, you could be thinking of a joke, or your favorite word. Mine is pumpernickel, because you can't spell it off the top of your head!" Anger frowned,"Maybe, maybe having fun again would be nice..." She said as she began to fade. Rainbow Dash looked at her imposter as she said the word poser, and could only smirk, “"Hey! At least I'm not a shadow bolt wannabe!" Dash said, growling at herself. Deep inside she could feel the anger boiling within her, like she wanted this version of her dead. "Wannabe!?" Treachery exclaimed,"I'm way cooler than a wannabe! You're lamer than I am." "Yeah, you're lame, and a bit of an idiot," Dash grin as she took off. "Because you challenged me. Now, come on, jerk, let's fly. "and with that she took of. Treachery flew after her in a rage, reaching out with her front hooves in an attempt to punch her down.Rainbow Dash flew just enough to keep ahead of her counterpart, turning her head to keep an eye on the heartless’s distance. After flying down a few streets of the city and through a few broken buildings, the cyan mare caught sight of a broken beam of wood. Slowing down just enough for her counterpart to almost get her tail, Dash flew around the beam before flying back to hit Treachery from the top and into her back. Treachery growled, as she felt the hooves strike her back,"That was low!" Turning around in mid-flight, she threw a hook at Rainbow’s face. Smirking, Rainbow Dash managed to block the hit to her face, but was unable to block the double jab to her chest.Dash gruted as she felt the blow hit her chest, " So, how does it feel to be a lonely old fogey?" she panted, delivering a few blows of her own. Treachery grunted,"I'm not lonely!" She swung at her, her attacks being blocked as much as they connected while they flew through the air and the city proper. Dash blocked the shot, "You betray ponies, yeah... that leads to loneliness." she then retaliated with a kick and punch. "No, that's Loneliness!" Treachery pointed to the heartless in question, blocking each strike," but I'm going to hurt ya anyway for that comment!" She flew up and struck at her again. Dash grunted as she felt the blow to her stomach, and stumbled in the air from the hit. Shaking her head, she grinned, "Yeah, not seeing the difference here." she then flew in a circle around the pegasus, creating a small tornado. Then the pegasus drove her leg into the back of the heartless. “You betray your friends, you lose everything and you probably run off from your own goals. I bet you can’t even perform a Sonic Rainboom!” Treachery howled in pain. She landed and looked up at Dash with her yellow eyes,"Oh, you'll see!" She flew up into the air and began to fly down, picking up speed. As Rainbow Dash watched her opponent fly up past her, she landed back down on the ground directly underneath and looked up. Smiling a knowing grin, moving her legs into a launching position and taking off in a streak of rainbow colors. Aiming herself straight at her heartless, the speedster thrusted her forelegs forward as a cone of air began to form around her, “Like I said, you can’t.” "Oh, yes I can!" Treachery flew down faster, a similar cone of air forming in front of her. "No, you can't, cause you see..." Dash smirked, her speed kicking up. "That little Rainboom of mine? Its special, because I can only use it on one condition." "And what is that!?" Treachery screamed, her voice drowned out by the noise of wind brushing past her. "That it comes from a need to do something you could NEVER do!" Rainbow Dash shouted her speed increasing. As she spoke, a killer look came to her eyes, wanting to drive her forelegs through the heart of her opponent "A need to be there for somepony else!!" Treachery was about to say something, and then she felt the hooves go through her. Applejack began to circle her opponent, "Ah don't really like liars." "Shame, 'cuz Ah do!" Deceit jumped at her. Applejack stood her ground, waiting for Deceit to come at her, and then uppercutted her with both fore hooves. Deceit stepped back from the blow, and sent two punches at AJ. Applejack let the two punches hit her face and shoulder, before smirking. Deceit arched an eyebrow at this and began to lay blow after blow onto Applejack, and still she stood unmoving with a smirk on her face. The only change in expression was when would wince from a particularly hard blow. The earth pony let out a roar of rage as she delivered a hard buck into Applejack’s chest, making the earth pony stumble a bit and spit out some blood. Deceit looked confused as Applejack stood by up with a cunning smirk, Deceit "What are you so happy about?" "Nothing," Applejack smirked, waving her hoof, beckoning for another strike. "Hit me." "Well, Ah won't hit ya," Deceit turned, then bucked at her. AJ took the hit, not flinching. Her smirk now turning into a cunning grin. Growling, Deceit laid a flurry of blows onto Applejack, only to watch in horror as it seemed to barely hurt the farmer. After another hard blow, the dark pony began to growl, "What is with ya? Not that I'm getting worried or anything..." Deceit stomped towards her. "Nothing," Applejack said, almost taunting. "Ah'm just gagging." Deceit cocked her head,"Gauging?" "Just how weak ya are," AJ said. "Ah ain't weak!" Deceit yelled,"Or am Ah?" She cocked her head. She growled,"Whatever, killing ya now!" She bucked at AJ. Aj took the shot, "Yeah, ya'll are kind of weak... because that shot was weaker than last." cracking her neck to the side, she smiled, "and that means, its time for ya to go down!" slamming her hooves to the ground, she caused the earth to shake beneath Deciet's legs. Then, she laid a series of punches into the body of her opponent. Lonliness brought out a sword,"Do... you know how lonliness feels?" She said, her breath visible. "I do." Twilight said, blocking a sword strike,"But you don't have to be lonely!" Twilight put a hoof out towards Loneliness,"We can be friends." She blocked another sword strike.Twilight walked forward,”You just need to embrace friendship again.” “Friendship? Have you seen where that has gotten me? The only reason we are together is to take the hearts of you and your companions!” Loneliness said, striking her sword down at Twilight. Twilight quickly blocked the blade and struck out with her own attack. Loneliness received the blade and stuck out with two strikes, following up with a fire wave. With a little clumsiness in her swing, Twilight blocked each blow with her blade. Then, when the fire wave approached her, she quickly put up a shield of frost; however, Loneliness took the opening and slashed across her chest and hit her chin with the pommel of her blade. Growling, the alicorn princess pushed Loneliness away with a telekinetic push and slashed at Loneliness, “Yes, friendship got me these.” she waved her wings for emphasis. “A title? Further separation from your friends? Was that your reward?” Loneliness demanded, slashing hard at Twilight. “Separation? No, not at all,” Twilight said, slashing at her opponent to block the blade. “If anything, they are still my betters.” Loneliness glared at Twilight, “How?” “My secret,” Twilight smiled softly as she struck out with three strikes, each of with were blocked. Flying over Lioness's head, Twilight used some mist to block her opponents vision and struck out with a thrust, cutting into Loneliness side. In pain, the mare struck out with a few slashes at Twilight.  Twilight winced as one sword strike connected, then she did a slash at Loneliness. Twilight flew above her double, and slashed down, as Loneliness blocked and struck with her own. Twilight and Loneliness' blades struck each other,"You know, all this is going to do is break the swords!" Twilight said,"Theoretically, this is not a good idea!" She pulled away and slashed again. Will looked up ahead of the path towards the castle, "There, the heart!" Then a blast of shadow and flame hit the ground before Sunset and Will as they approached the castle center. Sunset gasped as she saw two black alicorns guarding it,"Yeah, and there they are!" She pointed. “Remember Corona, we kill them and then I go after you,” Nightmare moon said, looking at the pegasus and unicorn. Corona just shrugged, “On that we agree sister.” she sent a wave of fire at them. "Aw, buck," Will said, trying to close her eyes against Corona's flames, "how many do you think you can take alone." "Well,"She shielded her eyes against the flames of Corona,"1/2, but I think I can try to manage." "Good,because with me, that should be one that we can take down," Will gulped as she looked at Nightmare Moon. She felt a small shudder as the black alicorn glared into her eyes and straight into her heart. "Yeah, and then the other one kills us!" Sunset said. She looked between the two. "Sunset, keep Will distracted, I have an idea." Mozenwrath said. Sunset turned to Will,"... Run to the Heart," She sighed, her horn glowing,"I'll try to keep them both off you." "Right," Will nodded and flared her wings out before taking off. “If I could just get this stupid lighting to work!!” "Ok, so Cornelia gets earth, Irma water, Hay Lin blows wind, and Taranee fire," Will said to the old mare before her. "Why do I shoot lighting?" "Lighting is the spark of life, what you are throwing is your quintessence manifesting in an elemental form. Life energy," Yan Lin said, looking human for a moment. "Just use the power of you heart" Will's eyes narrowed as she began to charge lighting in her hooves, and then threw it out at the two alicorns. With a grin, she moved between them before making her way to the heart. THe two alicorns put up shields to block the lightning. When those shields went down, they turned to strike at Will, but they were stopped by a teleporting Sunset. Sunset gulped,"Now what, Mozenwrath?" She thought,"I'm about to get myself killed and ruin your plan here! And while ruining your plan would be a good idea, I don't feel like dying!" A greenish black spark came from her horn and to the ground. The two alicorns charged at her, but they were struck back by a unicorn stallion with a curved red horn. The stallion turned to Sunset and bowed. "Oh, King Sombra!" Mozenwrath said,"I wasn't expecting to grab his body. Sunset, this is a Mamluk, he will distract one of them for you, until the others get here. He's already dead so you don't have to worry about him. Just protect yourself." Sunset blinked for a bit, then shook her head,"Distract her!" She said, pointing to Nightmare Moon. She turned to Corona, and was sent flying from the alicorn's hoof. "I said protect yourself, not get hit." Mozenwrath said. "Thanks, Mozy, how about I run from  the big monster like I’ve been doing!?" Sunset growled. Will walked to the heart, looking back over her shoulder, "I should go and-" she was interrupted by the light of her pendant glowing brighter. "Ok, we'll go with Sunset's plan. But, whatever you are, we are going to have a long talk about helping others!" she grumbled, walking closer to the heart and watching as the two began to resonate with each other. Sunset put up another barrier, as Corona fired a beam at her. Sunset gasped as the barrier shattered and the beam hit her. She got up slowly, and watched in horror as Corona walked slowly towards her. "Ok, now what am I supposed to do," Will thought to herself as she held the gem in front of the heart. Its glowing began to increase as she neared it. "I don't know what you're supposed to do, but could you hurry it up!?" Sunset yelled, dodging Corona. Sombra smiled, generating three crystal blades at once and sending them at Nightmare moon. Nightmare Moon blocked the blades and sent a beam towards the undead king. Closing her eyes, Will placed the pendant onto the heart, and her world went white.  At the same time, Applejack kicked a broken and beaten deceit into a building. Before she could walk a step further, the life seemed to fade from her eyes and she walked to the heart, dodging the battles around her. Slowly she placed her hoof onto the heart, and the Gaia boots began to glow a green color. Twilight cut down her heartless. The life then faded from her eyes. She turned and walked towards the heart, her magic pushing Corona away in front of her. She pulled Equinox out and placed it on the heart. Will slowly woke up, finding herself in a white void, "Hello? Is anypony there?" "What, where on Earth am Ah?" Applejack asked waking up slowly. "Twilight?" she asked looking to her friend. Twilight looked around,"I don't know." "Guardian of Harmony, Guardian of friendship, you are here to open the gate to the Heart of Worlds, correct?" an echoing voice boomed. Twilight looked up, trying to find the voice,"Yes, we're looking for the gate. Who are you?" The voice seemed to ignore Twilight, "Then, the bearer of the heart, step forward. Guardian of Friendship, you must watch." Will stepped forward slowly, "The heart? That’s what Valtor said this was, the heart of Kandrakar." she then looked down at her pendant. “ My memory has been jumbled up so much lately, I am surprised I can even remember my name.  “Is that what this is? A heart?" "The heart of Kandrakar bearer is the one who must help open the gate," the voice said. “What about my memories? Why can I remember being some sort of guardian and a hero sometimes, but in others I can’t even remember why I have this thing!” Will yelled. "Ain't Kandrakar that place Celestia told us about? That dimension with all of the magic and dragons." Applejack asked In a flash of light, four tan unicorns appeared before the three mares. Each one with manes of blond and green eyes, Will recognized them immediately, "CORNELIA!!!" She ran to them, but was blocked by a barrier. "Scion of friendship, you must complete the test as well," four Applejacks appeared before her. "You must pick which one of these four is your true friend. Honesty, it is your task to help them find the right one. Each pony will say something to you, and you must choose." "And if we choose wrong?" Will asked. "Then this world and everypony in it, will be swallowed by the darkness. This world will fade and become no more. Including your friends." "Okay, " Twilight gulped,"Will, I hope you really know your friend." She looked at the four. "I do too..." “Guardian or normal girl? Are you a mare who saved the empire time and again, helping the bearers protect Equestria, or a human superhero who has protected the multiverse, who are you?” a voice echoed in Will’s mind. “You forget if you are a guardian, but yet, you remember them. Who are you? What is real?” Will shook her head, trying to focus. The four unicorns looked to Will, the first one on the left huffed, "Will, I know you are the leader, but what kind of leader almost gets us killed! Next time, tell us your plans before you do something so foolish." "Will," the next mare sighed, "I am sorry that this happened. But, don't worry, we are going to do everything we can to help." The third mare held out her hoof, "Whatever your problem is, don't worry...I'll be right by your side." "Will," the fourth mare turned away from Will, crying. "I am fine, I don't need the help." The Applejacks looked to Twilight, "Twilight, Ah know you are pretty smart, but there is a difference between book smarts and common sense." "Twilight," the second Applejack said, pulling her hat to the chest. "Ah know you are going through a rough time, but don't worry about it. Ah'll take care of it, everything will be fine because Ah'll handle it." The third Applejack stood in front of them all, "You mess with Twilight, ya mess with me. And brother, you better not be messing with me!" The fourth sat down, "Twilight, it’s ok," she said, holding back her tears. "Ah'm fine, really." The real Applejack looked to the two mares, "Wait a minute... something ain’t right here." "Honesty, you will have one chance to help them with their choice... be ready. Twilight bit her lip as she looked around at the different Applejacks,"They're all pretty convincing. Come on Twilight! You're the Element of Magic, you should be able to figure this out!" Twilight said to herself. "That's easy, it's-" Will was about to say "Wait," Applejack objected as she walked to Will. "Ah just realized... can you really define your friend by one little trait or thing they do?" "What do you mean?" Will asked. "Ah mean, think about it," Applejack said. "Is your friend always helpful, or angry, or distrustful?"she asked, hoping Twilight would hear. Twilight overheard Applejack. Her eyes sparkled as her mind raced through her memories of the farmer. She looked up and said,"They're all Applejack. She is protective of her family and friends. She can be the sensible one, especially when I'm going through my own brand of crazy," she chuckled at that one,"She tries to put other ponies problems on herself, even she doesn't have to, and she always tries to hide her feelings.” "She's right! My friend isn't just one personality," Will said, looking around her. "She is a person, and people have different sides to them. We argue, yes, but she is always by my side. Because she is the type of girl to hold onto the pain for me." "You have chosen, wisely," said the voice as the light washed over them. Will found herself seeing a scene of a unicorn standing before a Will lying on the ground in pain,"You made a mistake," the unicorn said, standing in front of Will as she laid behind her. "You messed with my best friend. Now, you mess with me." "Twilight," aid an image of Applejack, placing her hoof on to Twilight's shoulder. "You will always have a place here, no matter what. Ah will keep you going when you fall." Will saw an image of her sitting in a car with Cornelia, as Cornelia finished isnging, "Light, of a true true friend," Cornelia smiled. "Our song. Whenever you hear that... you know we are close by." As the two images played out, a white earth pony appeared, "Why Ah do declare, I am so glad to meet you three. Honesty, Friendship and the bearer of Kandrakar. It is a pleasure to meet y'all. Oh, and you look just like your little ol ancestor," the earth pony smiled as she rubbed Applejack's cheek. "Oh, and my name is Truly Love" Twilight gasped,"Truly!" She walked up to her,"Amazing, I've never thought I'd actually meet a legend! Oh, there is so much I have to ask!" she squealed. "A legend? You mean little ol me? Well, Ah'm flattered," Truly smiled at Twilight. "Tell, what type of questions do ya need answering, sweetie?" "Well, what were Terra and Majesty like in their foalhood? How was the alicorn city? What was Mimic the Wise like? Why are you here? What was the world like? Did you fight any ancient evils?" "Well, Ah've never actually met Queen Terra and Mejesty when they were little foals, the alicorn city was fantastic, like nothing Ah had ever seen before, Ah am here because you girls have opened mah gate, the world wa a little more dangerous than this, and yes...  a few," Truly said. "You called me the Bearer of the Heart, what do you mean?" asked Will. “And what did Valtor mean when he called me a guardian? Why can I use lighting powers?” "Ah don't really know. When Mimic activated this spell, she set it so it would recognize the bearers of Harmony and the bearer of the Heart of Kandrakar," Truly said, looking at Will's pendant. "Beyond that, Ah am mainly here to activate one of the four gates." "So, I guess you wouldn't know why the key sent me a vision of the past, would you?" Twilight sighed,"Or why we went to this specific world." Then she had a thought,"I thought there were three gates!?" "I don't really know. Mimic said she set those up for the ones in the future so she could learn the secrets of the past. Ah'm not entirely sure," Truely said. "As for this world, Ah don't know that either. Ah guess it has something to do with looking for the Heart. Ah can only guess that you gals will be sent to another world like this. An of course there are four little gates. Didn't you hear the legend? The three gates will open the light to the fourth Where Faith must continue after Forgivenesses falls And some other little ol things that Ah can't remember. Ah was too busy fixing my mane to pay any attention." "But, why me? Why am Ah here?" Asked Applejack. "Oh, its because each of Harmony's chosen has to be there to help the bearer unlock the door," Truly said. "It's a failsafe. Harmony can't do anything without the guardian and the bearer can't do anything without Harmony. At least that's how Mimic described it." "I... didn't really see that part in the book I read, but I could've missed that part..." Twilight muttered. She looked up,"So the bearer of the heart needs the bearers of the Elements of Harmony." She smiled at Truly,"Thank you, Truly. I'm starting to understand what we have to do." “You are welcome, oh and thank you kindly, Honesty," she said, walking up to Applejack. "You were the best one to help get them through this." "Aww, shucks, tweren't no problem." Applejack blushed." "Hey, it’s what we Earth guardians do..." "Ah know Ah can seem a little small, but Ah promise you darlins...I  will get your through all of this. You can put all of your problems on my shoulders and I will help you," a memory of Truly said. That was when their dream worlds shattered. The heart in the real world began to glow brightly, the four lights on the weapons of the girls began to glow bright and hit the heart head on. The heart shone, causing a large wave to wash over the world. Everywhere that the wave touched, the damage caused by the heartless seemed to fade. Places where the innocent fell, now was restored with the noise of ponies celebrating their return to life. Sunset raised her hoof, but saw that Corona, Sombra, and Nightmare Moon had vanished. She turned and ran towards Twilight,"You did it!" Will struggled to her hooves, only to be helped up by Applejack and Fluttershy. Dash landed next to Twilight, "Did you see that?" "It was all like, whoose, and blast, and beam!!" Pinkie shouted. Twilight shook her head,"Wait, it's over?" "Mom!" Nyx shouted, running over to a purple unicorn body. "I guess it is." Twilight said,"Are you girls alright?" She looked at all of them. "Well, I'm a little banged up, but I'll manage." Sunset winced Fluttershy and Pinkie Pie noded. Rarity ran her hoof through her mane to how how she managed, while Rainbow Dash winced a little on her leg. Applejack moaned a little "A few hurt ribs, but Ah'm ok." Sunset went to Twilight,"And you?" "A few cuts and bruises, but I'll be fine." Twilight said with a smile. Then she was tackled by Nyx. "Thank you all so much! I thought I would go crazy in here! But you saved everypony!" She said with a grin. "Hey, it’s what we do best," Rainbow Dash said with a cocky grin. Pinkie then nudged Rainbow Dash, "Don't say that! That's usually when the big bad amps up the ante and we get hit with a giant Godzilla or a giant pony eating cake monster or a pony-turned pretzle or Trolls who like to riff on good fanfics. Fluttershy shuddered at the thought.Twilight chuckled as Nyx ran to the awakening forms of her friends,"I don't think that's going to happen here." She said as a large doorway opened behind them. "I think this is our cue to leave." Sunset said, looking at the doorway.  Will could only chuckle as the heart of Kandrakar began to dim, "So, I have name for you, huh? The heart of Kandrakar. A pleasure. Now,if I can only figure out what she meant by guardian, and that voice that called me hero." “Thank you, guardians. The heart is safe and you saved the kingdom,” Cadence said, looking to the five ponies. “No problem Cad-leon,” Irma said, switching from a pony to a human. “There it is again, a vision,” Will said. “Am I a guardian, a pony, or that wierd ape thing?” she whispered as she looked to the other ponies. > J is for Juxtaposition > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- As they stepped out of the gate, the light began to glow a dark green. After pulsating for a few moments, it shot straight up, through the waters and into the sky. At its apex, the light reached the constellation Truly, making the stars shine and firing a light towards two locations, Tauros and Saddle Arabia. A third light, the one on her cutie mark, glowed dimly and began to point. In Tauros, Valtor began his walk towards the castle, his servant walking close behind him, "Sire, look." "What is it...oh, I see," Valtor smiled as he watched the light hit the castle. "The three shall light the door to the fourth gate. Forgiveness’ fall shall foretell Faith, Loyalty will be tested. That's what some of the prophecy meant!" In Saddle Arabia, in a castle that sits in the land of black sand, a brown eel awakens from sleeping on an obsidian throne, "Master is awake, Master is preparing. Need to awaken guards, need to prepare. Master has returned, plan is ready." "What in the hey?" Applejack asked, watching as the light glowed. "Wow," Sunset said as the light shot up. "It must be leading to the other keys!" Twilight said with a smile,"The three shall light the door to the fourth gate, this must be one of those lights!" "Well, what are we waiting for, let’s teleport out of her and back to Tydal!" Dash said, flying up to Twilight impatiently Twilight nodded, and turned to Sunset,"Alright, I can't teleport you all at once, and the trip into that dimension took out a lot of my mana.” she said, letting out a tired breath, “but, Sunset, if you touch your horn to mine, we should be able to combine our magics to get all of us to Tydal's throne room." Sunset looked at Twilight,"Combine our magics? I've never done that kind of thing before..." She gulped. "That's okay, I've seen it done, and I've done it with a friend of mine before," Twilight went up to Sunset,"Just touch your horn to mine, and concentrate." She and Sunset touched horns. The group was encased in an aura of magic, and they were teleported to Tydal's throne room. Rainbow Dash stumbled for a bit, while Applejack shook her head to clear the dizziness. Rarity and Fluttershy held onto each other and as for Pinkie, "LETS DO THAT AGAIN SOMETIME!!" she said as she bounced around the group. Sunset and Twilight pulled away,"That was amazing!" Sunset said, holding her head with a smile. Twilight stood silent for a moment,'Something felt off' She looked at Sunset, giving a quick nod,"Yeah, you get that feeling with friends." Tydal got up from his throne,"You're back! I assume everything went well." "Yes it was, yer highness," Applejack bowed. "We," Will stepped forward. "Went through the desert and then we met up with the gate, where we met a spirit." "A spirit?" Tydal put a hoof to his chin,"Truly..." He looked at all of them,"You must be tired. My guest quarters are open to you." "Thanks Tydie-widie!"Pinkie cheered as a few capricorns wearing formal attire came to lead the bearers and their two companions to their rooms. Once inside, Pinkie Pie let out a cheer as she ran to the nearest bed, "DIBS!!! Oooh, fluffy!" the pink mare giggled as she grabbed a pillow. "My word, Tydal down know how to treat a guest, does he not?" Rarity said. Rainbow Dash said nothing in response, just lowered her head as she walked to the bed in a daze, “I wanted to kill her...I  wanted her dead” she thought to herself, as the image of her heartless laid dieing at her hooves flashed through her mind. Shuddering, she tried to shake the image off. Sunset ran to her bed,"Oh, I needed this!" She said as she yawned. Twilight lay on her bed, her mind in a different place,"I felt something in Sunset's mind. What was it?" She muttered to herself. Fluttershy laid on the soft bed, before looking over to Will, who was busy staring at the heart of Kandrakar. Letting her blue eyes look at the gem, she noticed that it had lost the shine that it had earlier and now back to the dull pink of before. Will looked to Fluttershy, who quickly turned away, "Oh, sorry... I didn't mean to look at your pendant." "It's ok," Will said, letting go of it. "I just want to try and know why was I given this, and why did it lead me to that-" "Boring!" Pinkie said, interrupting, "Discussions about mystical pendants later, talk about other worlds now! Because, Sunny," she said, rolling over onto her back and letting her head drop over the side of the bed, " I REEAAAAAALLLLLYY want to know more about other me! Is she as good as baking? Oh, what about Maude?? Oh, does the cakes have the twins yet? What about Mr. Quarry? Is he still alive? What about-" Rainbow Dash, hearing Pinkie's interrogation, quickly put a pillow over her head and grumbled "Oh, she is going to do this all night isn't she?" "Sombra? Or what about Sweetie Belle? Is she seeing Button? What about Scootaloo? Is Rainbow Dash her biological sister or just adopted? What about Apple Bloom? How is she? Did you meet a version of Mirage? Is there a version of Cheese? Is Lyra Bon Bon obsessed or just mythological creature obsessed?” Sunset looked at Pinkie and smiled,"Well, the other you is just as good at baking, I have met Maude, though I can't believe you both are sisters..." Sunset frowned,"I did notice that Mrs. Cake was a little pregnant, Sweetie Belle is a Freshmen, and hasn’t met Button; although me and Rarity did try to get them together. Scootaloo is Rainbow Dash’s sister, and Apple Bloom is doing fine. Mirage, I think you are talking about the crazy cat lady that lives a few miles outside of town. Yes, and we have gone to three of his concerts. Lyra is both, and she has been trying to get you to introduce her. Quarry?" Sunset shuddered,"Oh my Celestia is he huge... And well Sombra is a teacher at a rival school." “You mean to tell me Mirage is a crazy cat lady in that world?” Mozenwrath laughed,”I’d pay anything to see that!” Pinkie giggled, "Oh, he was big here too. And ain't Maude the greatest?" "-and then we nee-Oh, a party! After this is all one, I have got to throw you a welcome to Ponyville and thanks for not being a psycho-kill-me-mare anymore!" Pinkie giggled. "Was it something special?" Fluttershy asked Will, looking at her pendant. “Yeah,” Will sighed, letting go of her glowing pendant and letting it rest on her chest. “It is. This thing is kind of a promise between me and my friends, that we are always together.” Applejack looked to twilight, "Something on ya mind Sugarcube?" Twilight shook her head,"Uh, it's nothing!" she said,'At least, I hope it's nothing..." Sunset giggled,"I wouldn't mind that Pinkie. It would make me feel a lot better. "OH, and we got to invite your family over! Do you know where they are? Huh?" Pinkie asked. Sunset froze,"I- no." She sighed as she looked down with sadness in her voice."My biological mom left me at Celestia's doorstep. Celestia tried to find her, but her investigators came across nothing. I guess that was part of the reason I went crazy." Fluttershy flittered over to Sunset, and placed a comforting hoof onto her shoulder. A faint mumbling could be heard from Rainbow Dash as she held a pillow over her face as Applejack sighed, "So sorry to hear that sugarcube." She let out a sigh, looking down at the ground, "Can't imagine what it was like to be without yer ma. Ah mean, my parents were there fer a little while, but they-" "What are you talking about," Pinkie giggled, "She had a great mom growing up! One of the best, well other than my mom!" Sunset looked at Pinkie then sighed,"Yeah, the best mom ever, till I spat in her face and left." She hit the bed. Rarity, who was busy hoof filing, looked up, "Sunset, dear, I am sure she holds no ill will about that. And you weren't spitting her face, you were just... entering your rebellious stage." "Let me guess, you began to think your mom was too controlling, wouldn't let you do what you wanted when you wanted, and then decided to act it out," Will said, looking at her bed. A part of her could hear every argument she had ever been in with her mother, all of the times she thought she hated her. Sunset scoffed,"That's one way to put it..." She looked away,"If by acting out you mean wanting to take over the world..." "Ok I never did that..." Will sighed. "But, ran away, yelled at her, sometimes wished I never was there. The whole bit. But, taking over the world? That's a new one" “Come on, sugar,” Applejack smiled. “We all had our little rebel days.” Twilight chuckled a bit,"I bet you didn't hear of how my rebel phase went." Sunset turned to Twilight,"Excuse me?" "Well, at first I decided not to ace my tests, I would only get Bs, then I decided I wanted to worship the moon and started painting anything that was gold, silver and replacing suns with moons..." Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"Come to think of it, it wasn't that bad of a rebel phase..." Applejack laughed, "Are ya kiddin? Yours were tame!" Realizing that sleep was never going to come, Rainbow Dash rolled over onto her belly, "Ok, I’m curious, how did yours go?" "Well, Ah kind of did basically start selling carrots for Carrot Top, try to get mah name changed,and tried to disown mah little sister," Applejack joked. "Oh, mine was simply horrible, I...I..." Fluttershy began. "You told your mom that you weren’t going to bed one time and kept animals you weren’t supposed to keep and then apologized profusely for it. I was there Flutters," Rainbow Dash said, looking at her and shaking her head. Sunset began to laugh at this,"Okay, I gotta know, what was Pinkie's rebel phase?" "Welllllllll," Pinkie waved a hoof to get to everypony to come closer. "When I was seventeen, just a little bit before Twilight came to Ponyville, my rebel phase began. At first, it was the simple things, I started to change the orders, and making weird designs on the cakes. Then, I started to not obey the cakes anymore, and then I began to use Gummy as my secret weapon for scaring ponies. Then... on my last day of my rebel phase, I stepped out when I wasn't supposed to and found an innocent little purple unicorn. I figured, I was going to kidnap her, and force her to enjoy the best party ever!" She then laughed evilly, as only Pinkie could. Rarity rolled her eyes in exasperation, "And all I did was go goth." before beginning to giggle a little Twilight raised an eyebrow,"Uh, what?" her mind began to unwind at that. Sunset giggled at Pinkie and Rarity's statements,"I actually would've loved to see you being a goth, Rarity." She looked at Rainbow Dash,"Let me guess, you never quite left your rebel phase, did you, Rainbow?" Growling, Rainbow Dash threw a pillow at Sunset, hitting the red maned mare in the face. She then laid back onto the bed, "For your information, I am too cool for a rebel phase!" Applejack whispered in Sunset's ear,"Translation: No, she never did." "The point is, dear," Rarity said, looking up from her hoof filing, "We know you have done wrong, but we have all done horrible things in our lifetimes. We have done things to our friendships that would make you wonder how we have stayed together for so long. But, the ones who love you-" "Would love ya, even if ya turned nightmare," Applejack said, smiling at Rarity. "Or friended Chaos," Fluttershy smiled. Sunset smiled,"You girls... really are the best of friends," She looked down. Pinkie giggled, "And we are your friends too." she then rolled to her side, and then down onto back again. "You know, I think I get it now! Twin students, sisters! You and Twilight!" Sunset blinked,"Excuse me?" She cocked her head. "Well, you two!," the earth pony smiled as she laid on her back with her head dangling over the bed. "You two could be sisters with how you two are sitting together. And you are both students of Celestia, so... sisters!" Sunset looked at Twilight, who looked at her back,"Well, I guess..." Twilight smiled,"It seems to work for me!" She pulled Sunset into a hug,"After all, you need a sister." "And a good friend," Applejack said, getting onto the bed and hugging Sunset. Friends, sisters, and people who can be there for you. I hope mine are out there somewhere.” she then noticed that Fluttershy gave her a look that said, 'You'll find them.' she smiled at that. "Aw, how sweet, kind of almost makes you forget that there's a sorcerer living in your head planning on doing horrible things to them." Mozenwrath said. Twilight looked at the sleeping Dash,"She fell asleep quick..." She whispered to herself "Well, Ah'm heading to bed. Night girls, "Applejack said, getting onto the bed, as the other girls did the same. Rarity could be heard murmuring, "I am not, messing up the covers..." As she got herself into the bed, Will took one last look at the heart of Kanaar, "Where are they.?" Sunset, aged 6, looked up from her drawing,"Princess Mommy, look!" She said, holding up the picture of her and Celestia with a sun surrounding them. "That's nice, Sunset," THe picture was taken in the princess' magic,"If only you stayed this nice." The filly cocked her head,"What do you mean?" "If only you hadn't betrayed me, than you would still be loved!" Celestia's face turned into a skull with glowing eyes,"Then I would be alive!" Sunset took a step back in fear, only to bump into a body. She turned her head, her body turning into an adult's, and saw her friend's corpses. She looked down at a purple hoof attached to an alicorn skeleton. Twilight's voice come from the skeleton,"You are a monster, you don't deserve to live! You deserve to be like me!" The skeleton got up and lunged at Sunset. Sunset woke up in a cold sweat. She looked around, noticing that each of her friends were still asleep, except for one,"Twilight?" She got up and carefully sneaked out of the room. Twilight looked at the book in front of her, scouring the passages for an answer,"If I could do a more thorough-" Rainbow Dash woke up to Sunset's yell, and watched as she walked down the stairs. As she made her way to the library, she saw Sunset and Twilight talking to each other. (do it. Give it to them. Finish her) "NO," Dash said to herself, running up to a window and flying off into the ocean, swimming for a bit. "You should be asleep." Sunset said as she entered the library. Twilight squeaked as she put the book behind her,"Sunset! You're up early!" She gave a quick grin. "What are you reading?" Sunset walked closer. Twilight looked behind her,"Oh, I, um, I'm studying a few spells for the upcoming trip!" She gave a nervous grin. Sunset frowned,"Twilight, are you lying to me?" She gasped,"You're working on a reform spell for me, aren't you!?" "What!? No! That'd be crazy!" Twilight shook her head. She sighed as she pulled the book out,"Look at the author." Sunset looked at the name,"Sunshine Dawn." She looked at Twilight,"My mother?" Twilight looked around,"Princess Luna gave me a mission before we left: I was to look for your mother in Tauros where she was last seen. I was hoping that book would give me a clue. I didn't tell you, because I didn't know how you would react." "You know, Twi?" Sunset said,"If we do find Mom, I don't think it matters if she's alive or not. I didn't know her, so if she's dead, it wouldn't affect me. If she's alive, though, I think I would give her the yelling of her life." She smiled. "So, you won't feel too bad if she isn't there?" Twilight asked. "Well, I would a little, but I already had a mom. Princess Mommy." Sunset said with a smile. "... Princess Mommy?" Twilight snickered. "I was six when I called her that!" Sunset said. Sunset took Twilight's shoulder,"Come on, let's go back to bed. We'll find my mom when we get to Tauros." Twilight frowned,"You're starting to sound like my big brother. Never letting me stay up to study." she muttered "Well you need your sleep!" Sunset said with a chuckle as they went back to their room. "She's right sugarcube, ya need sleep!" Applejack said, standing against the doorframe with a smile. Twilight hopped back in shock,"How long were you there?" "Long enough to see you two being sweet on each other," Applejack chuckled. Sunset chuckled nervously,"Not that sweet..." "Yer right," Applejack smiled as she led the two upstairs. "It was adorable." "Not as adorable as Princess Mommy." Twilight said as she trotted into the room. "Again, six!" Sunset gave a mock frown. Twilight looked down at a bed,"Hey, where's Rainbow?" "Right behind you," Rainbow Dash said behind Twilight. "HA! Did I scare ya?" Twilight jumped,"Yes, yes you did!" Twilight said with a growl. Sunset looked at Dash,"Why was she up?" She thought to herself. "Perhaps she wanted to kill you." Mozenwrath said,"After all, she was kinda brutal to her heartless." "What were you doing up?" Asked Applejack, to which Dash shrugged as she went to bed. "Had to, you know." Dash said, walking into her bed and going to sleep. Sunset sighed in a bit of relief as she went back to bed. She laid with her eyes still open, almost afraid to go to sleep. "Don't worry, I'm here," She could almost hear Celestia's voice say as her eyes began to grow heavy. That night, a blue alicorn fought off some of the worst nightmares imaginable. Will rolled in her sleep, mumbling to herself, "Heart, friends, as one..." ("Ok, that was awesome!" Irma said, smirking. "Can you imagine it? A world where we grew up as sisters!" Hay Lin squeed. "You mean we aren't?" Asked Irma. Taranee smiled at Will, "Will... how is she?" "Who?" "Sunset...how will she come home? Sunset can't-" "Can't what?" "Oh, and here we are again Will," Valtor said, his voice a whisper. "You are seeing echoes of things that aren't. You are getting thoughts that may not be your own. Are you a hero? A human? A pony? o you even belong here? do you even have the right to own that heart?" "I... I" "You can't recall..." Valtor laughed. "By the way, I hope the minotaurs of Tauros are going to enjoy their hell." "Wbat?" At night a lone wagon reached the outskirts of Tauros. Inside, a young blue mare smiled, "Well, time to begin. Look out you wonderful minotaurs, Trixie is here." King Minos sat in his throne, watching as the last of the night court finished its rounds. As he stood to call it a evening, the mighty red minotaur heard, "Presenting, the last guest of the evening. Lord Valtor, of the black flame. Conquerer of the order of light, destroyer of the world of hopes, harbinger of conquest, and deliverer of the flames." The guard then stood to the side as the doors to the throne room opened. Valtor stepped across the threshold "Ah, King Minos, a pleasure to be sure." "VALTOR! I had thought you to be only legend," said the king, his red eyes glaring down at the black dragon. "Yes, and Nightmare Moon is but a foal’s tale. But, we are here to talk about my legend," Valtor said, bowing. "We are here to talk about, the key to the gate." "The key-" the king's eyes went wide. "No. Guards, seize him!" A small smirk came to Valtor's lips as he turned and breathed black flame at the doors, blocking the guards entry. Behind Minos, he felt a shock go through his body that forced him to buckle to his knees, and turned to look up at an old mare, "Good job, Servant." "I live but to serve," Servant said, bowing. " Now, about the key," Valtor said, looking into the minotaur's eyes. "Buck you," shouted the king, spitting in Valtor's eyes. "Now, that is wrong. Servant, we seem to be getting nowhere with him, suggestions?" Aske Valtor. "We can't hit him with the hate plague, the bearers know of a cure," said servant, running her hoof along her staff. "An, if we turn them against the bearers, the fact that you are here will be too obvious. So, I suggest... we do nothing." "Nothing?" asked Valtor. "We are here already, the king will now try and hunt us down. The fear that will permeate here will be enough to slow the bearers and Will down." Chuckled the servent as she left through a doorway. "Where are you-" "The earth guardian needs a push, and I will give it to her. A little fear for a loved one," Servant said, vanishing into a portal. The next morning, Will woke up to the sun outside, "You know, I wonder how they are getting the sun down here." Twilight got up next,"Oh, it's actually artificial light, you see the sea-ponies use magic..." She began to ramble. Pinkie Pie woke up, watching Twilight. She then giggled and walked to Applejack, "Twily's rambling. Place your bets." "50 on her trying to fly away. And it wakes up RD," Applejack chuckled, waking up. "I cannot believe you two, taking bets on such a thing...40 on 5 minutes for flying away, and Rainbow Dash wakes up screaming," Rarity complained. Fluttershy woke up, looking at a small cat fish. Calmly, she petted it, "Um...I  don't think I want to bet on that." "Ok Sunset, your go," Applejack said. Sunset shook her head as she woke up,"Um probably 60 on her screaming, flying away, and waking up Rainbow Dash and she screams a non-sequitur." Will backed away a memory passing through her mind of a brown earth pony speaking the same kind of nonsense and her friends walking away, "Um, I wonder if King Leo has prepared a feast!" and then flew away. Rainbow Dash woke up and looked at Twilight, "Oh great, egghead, you scared away the girl." Twilight frowned,"Some ponies just don't want to learn!" She glared at Rainbow before leaving. There was indeed a feast waiting for them. "Banquet!!!!!" Pinkie cheered as she wan to the table. Applejack saunter up and began to feed like a manticore. Fluttershy softly began to chew on some of the apples, while Rarity dainty began to eat her light salad. Rainbow Dash began to eat like a maniac while Will began to eat somewhat normally. Twilight and Sunset began to eat quickly. Leo laughed as he looked to Tydal,"My hungry, weren't they?" "I would be too, Leo." Tydal said with a laugh. Will looked at the food for a bit as she continued to eat, wanting to figure out just how did they get all of this other variety of food. Then one look at Twilight, and one memory of what happened that morning quickly threw that idea out the window. Applejack looked up at Leo and Tydal, "So, pardon me for asking your majesties... but what did Truly do while she was here?" Leo leaned back and smiled,"Truly. She helped bring my people together with her heart." Tydal looked ahead,"She helped me... change who I was." "You mean you weren't always a big capricorn?" Pinkie Pie asked, throwing a sea muffin into the air and chomping on it. Tydal shook his head,"I was always a capricorn, but I wasn't always this nice. In fact, I pretty much tried to kill everything I could find. Until Truly came and taught me how to be kind. I never opened my heart to others, and take on the help of others." "How?" Rainbow Dash asked, and then looked to Fluttershy. "What is with you girls somedays?" Tydal leaned back,"Let's just say, she knew just what she was talking about." The girls couldn't help but chuckle at this as they continued their morning meal. As will looked to Sunset, she began to ask a question, but was interrupted by Rarity, "So, Sunset, how did you manage to live alone all that time before coming here." Sunset looked down,"Well, at first I just seduced several guys in order to mooch off of them, but now... well it's mainly Pinkie or Fluttershy who let me stay in with them." "What? No place... this will not stand!" Rarity said, thrusting a hoof into the air. "As soon as we get home, we are going to find you a few gem deposits to take home with you." You would do that?" Sunset blinked,"For me?" "Why of course dea," Rarity smiled. "why wouldn't I?" "She doesn't know, even if she could come back, there might be a chance that her friends are all..." Will thought to herself. "Well, I just wasn't expecting you to do that for me, especially if there's a chance I won't be able to come back." Sunset said. “Before I left, Valtor destroyed the portal.”         "Aw, don't be like that, Sunny. You can find a way, especially if Twilight has anything to say," Pinkie Pie winked to her friend. Twilight nodded,"I even created a blueprint for a machine just in case I ever needed the mirror again!" "...When did you find time to do that?" Rainbow Dash asked, eyebrow arched. "Oh, you know, there are just times when I have a free spot in my schedule to do some planning, make some inventions, and create a list of what I should do if I ever turn evil!" Twilight said with a grin. Rainbow Dash coughed, "No life!" "Wait, if you turn evil?" Will asked, looking terrified. "Yeah, if I turn evil, I better make sure I do it right. As a matter of fact, here's a checklist of things I want to do if I turn evil." Twilight handed Will a list. 1) Turn my friends over to my side, see Checklist #44 2) Stage a coup to overthrow Celestia and Luna, see Checklist #45 3) Distract Shining Armor with a mind-controlled Cadance, see Checklist #42 4) Turn good again after realizing the downsides to being evil, see Checklist #46 "Oh, 'Downsides is even underlined," Pinkie Pie looked at the list. "Um, shouldn't there be an apologize to the princesses after that?" Will asked. "Oh, that's for the checklist in case I reform!" Twilight said with a wide smile,"It's right next to the checklist for the exact way to turn my friends over to my side!" "You know what I did when I was evil? I merely guessed on everything! My big plan was all based on what I found when I went through the portal, and just going on from there!" Sunset said, her hoof falling to her face. Pinkie Pie rubbed Sunset's back, "That's ok, you just aren't super extra super duper prepared like Twilight is!!!" "Yeah, she even has a checklist in case one of us becomes a Royal guard working for Celestia to find a cure for a poi-and how were you going to get me to come over?" Rainbow Dash asked with a raised eyebrow. Twilight pulled out another checklist,"Well, first I was hoping on relying on your undying loyalty to me to get you over, but if that didn't work out, I would agree to make you my Captain of the Royal Guard and Stunt Pony!" Rainbow Dash nodded, "Yeah, I could work with that." "I can't believe that they are actually talking about that," Leo whispered to Tydal Tydal shook his head,"Well, that's what friends do I'm sure." "Weird, but," he chuckled as he looked at the group. "It seems to have worked for them." "Ok, so I think we can confirm that Twilight has enough lists to prepare for anything," Applejack said. "Ok, Me, pick me!" Pinkie Pie squealed, "How would you turn me over." "Well, I was thinking of letting you have all the fun you want, plus I use your... Pinkiness to my own advantage." Twilight said. "Cool!" Pinkie said, taking another bite of her apple. "I would probably just agree without a fight... ," Fluttershy said, looking away a little. Rarity smiled, "So, for me it would be my nobility and Applejack?" "Yes and yes." Twilight said, looking at Fluttershy and Rarity," And Applejack, well, she's really stubborn so I would have to convince her that working with me would be beneficial not only for her, but for her entire family as well!" Sunset gulped,"Um, you guys wouldn't really do all that, would you?" Rainbow Dash looked evil to Sunset, "Who says we haven't already. Maybe this was just our way of luring you into our evil cabal." "One of us, one of us," Pinkie said, holding up a plushie of a turkey, "gobble gobble." Sunset backed,"No," She said,"No!" She shouted overdramatically. Pinkie Pie then used her turkey to tickle Sunset, laughing maniacally. Will chuckled and leaned to Twilight, "Does it always end like this?" Twilight leaned in to Will,"Yeah, it does." She smiled as Sunset giggled a lot “It feels familiar," Will smiled. Ok, which one of us will turn evil first?" Irma asked. "Wait, are we really doing this? Putting money on wich one is mostly likely to turn evil?" Cornelia asked." "Well, I just figured," Irma began. "You would be the most likely to turn evil, so no contest," Cornelia said only to be hit with a pillow Will laughed softly as the breakfast finished. Leo swam over to Twilight,"I assume you are heading towards Tauros?" Twilight nodded,"It's closest after here. Tell me King," She looked,"Do you know where the key is forTauros?" Leo shook his head,"I'm afraid I do not. However, you can seek King Minos, and ask him for the key." Leo looked outside,"I've already prepared the manta-hawk to take you there." "Thank you sir," Twilight said with a bow. Leo shouted as the group walked to the manta-hawk,"Be safe, my little ponies, there may more dangers ahead!" "Alright, Rainbow," Twilight chuckled as the group got on the manta-hawk The manta-hawk let out a small screech as it took off through the water. Valtor woke up that morning to look across the city from the abandoned building. His mind began to drift back through the past as he thought of the element bearers, "Friends, and a strong heart..." The woman in black walked with Valtor, passing by several photos, "Do you know who these are, my child?" "Your... friends?" asked young Valtor as he ran his hand along a picture of a snake becoming a genie. "No, they are failures, memories," the black fairy said plainly. "and a lesson." "What is that, mother?" asked Valtor. The black fairy smiled and hand her green fingertips under Valtor's chin, "To not underestimate the power of a heart, and the bonds that they have made. Look around you, this one underestimated a simple street rat's desire for redemption, (her staff pointed to an image of a demon) this one underestimated the heart of a hero, (This one pointed to a lion demon) this one believed that a boy's guilt would keep him at bay, and (points to a wizard standing fronnt of several emon masks) this one believed that the powers of darkness would keep him in power long enough to take become godlike." Valtor watch i awe as the fairy opened her cloak and revealed painting after painted of monsters, demons, and mages, "Did even Master Horn King fall like this." "Who said he fell?" the fairy chuckled. "Remember this, my sweet child, a heart alone is weak. Easy to destroy and crush, but when that heart has friends, or a reason to fight, then it becomes a force to be reckoned with." "Then, how do you beat that heart?" asked Valtor. "Simple, you use it. Now, I have to go and practice my own magic, you... look at the paintings, learn the stories of the fallen and learn from their failings," the fairy said. "Yes ma’am," Valtor bowed, before producing a flower. "Oh, and... happy Mother's Day." The fairy smiled as she took the rose and caressed it, "Thank you, child." Valtor smiled before looking back at one painting, "Once upon a time, there was...” "My lord, I have returned," Servant said with a bow. "Is something wrong?" "Huh, no, nothing. Why?" Asked Valtor. "You seemed to be crying, were you missing someone?" Servant asked, rubbing Valtor's shoulder. "No," Valtor said, resting his legs over the ledge of a building. "Ok, but remember, I am your friend..." As the manta hawk breached the water, Pinkie Pie let out a giant "WHOOOOOOOOO!!!" as the creature sailed through the water. Rarity quickly began to fix all of the girls manes as she soared, while Will sat back, "Ok, lets see what we got... My gem is called the heart of Kandrakar, my friends may or may not be in this world, and I may or may not be some sort of superhero. I wonder what else life can throw at me!" Twilight held on tight to her mane,"Hey, at least you're learning more about yourself!" Sunset screamed as she held on,"This thing is going too fast!" "Are you kidding," Dash remarked with a cocky grin, "It's not going fast enough!" Sunset whimpered,"This is just like when I was introduced to cars..." She said, her tears flying to the side. "What's a car?" Rainbow Dash asked, watching as everything flew by. Fluttershy, being a little more sympathetic, gave a hug to Sunset, "It's ok. As long as you aren't getting sick.' "Something that goes very fast, and it's something that I don't want to go on again!" Sunset yelled at Dash. "Well, Rainbow, it looks like you're prepared to go through the test. What do you think, Sunset." Rarity looked behind her at the young woman, who was curled up and crying about an old man in the way. A coy smirk came to Rainbow's lips, "Sounds like my kind of ride." Twilight's eyes opened wide,"Why did I do this? Why did I do this? Why did I do this..." Will couldn't help but giggle, seeing the group interact like this. She sighed happily as she thought back to her friends, and to how they have grown together. Walking ahead, she looked at the incoming city, "That must be the port town." "Wow, you're right! I hope Mr. Hawk is good at landings," Pinkie said from her binoculars. “I didn’t realize that you like to jump from the water, Mrs. Hawk,” The hawk let out a series of squacks, and Fluttershy nodded, "I see...eeep." Before any of them could ask, the manta-hawk hit the port suddenly, and literally, causing all of them to go flying off. Valtor walked to a dark cave, looking down the entrance with a cruel smile, "Why are we here, my lord?" asked Servant. "The bearers are going to be hunting for the horseshoes soon enough. This will something to play with," the black dragon said, his footsteps echoing in the cavern. "You mean, a distraction," the servant said, using her staff to light up the cavern. "Yes, a quaint distraction- "Who comes to my tomb?" whispered a voice. "And there we are..." > K is for Keeper > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- Fluttershy listened to the manta-hawk intensely, hearing the squawks coming from it, “I see... eep.” "Dear Fluttershy...what did he say?" Asked Rarity, looking down at Fluttershy. "Well, she said that while she was a fast flyer..." Fluttershy said, looking around at her friends. "Yeah?" Applejack said, eyebrow arched. "She was a horrible lander," Fluttershy said, looking down with a blush. "Well, at least we can take heart that she tries," Will said, looking up at Fluttershy with a smile. "Yeah, some ponies could have their wings for a year and still can’t land...huh Princess?" Rainbow Dash asked, frowning down at Twilight. Rolling her eyes, Twilight scoffed, “Nopony is perfect on their first try, Rainbow Dash.” She said in a muffled voice Pinkie Pie pronked down the street to look at the alleyway where her friends landed, searching for their voices. Upon reaching down the street, she saw her friends piled on top of each other: Fluttershy on top, Rarity below her, Applejack below the white unicorn, Rainbow Dash below Applejack, Will beneath Applejack, and a purple wing as the only sign of the princess of friendship. "There you girls are. I was just saying goodbye our Hawk friend,"she stated with a smile, she then jumped on top of the pony totem pole, "Pony pile! Hey... where's Twilight and Sunset?" A muffled voice came from the bottom,"Down here. I think Sunset's out of it, though!" Another muffled voice called out,"Stick it in, my friend!" Carefully the 8 ponies got off one another and to their hooves, "Are you alright, Sunset?" Fluttershy asked, holding the yellow mare's hoof. Sunset shook her head as she got up,"I'm... feeling better." Placing a hoof onto Sunset's shoulder, Applejack smiled softly, "Are you sure?" Sunset nodded,”I’m not seeing your twin sister, at least.” As the ponies walked away from the alleyway, Rainbow Dash turned to Twilight, "So, how are we getting to Tauros." "Well, first we have to find out where exactly we are." Twilight said, looking around. "Well, after I got off the sign post," Pinkie Pie said bouncing next to Twilight, "I think I saw the town called- "WELCOME PONIES!” Shouted a large blue minotaur, a black shirt over his chest that read 'Mayor 3:16.' "I am Mayor Stone COLD! I welcome ya to the town of Pectoralis! What brings you to the wonderful port town!!!" Twilight combed her hair,"Sweet Celestia, he's as loud as Iron Will..." She muttered,"Um, we're here to find your capital so we can talk to King Minos." "Ah!" said Stone cold, posing hard, "Well, our train that is leading into the capital is going to be here in a few Hours! Until then, you can have a fun relaxation in our bar!" "A welcome party?" Pinkie exclaimed, bouncing up and down. "That doesn't sound too bad..." Sunset said, looking at the bar called,'Macho Savage's Bar' "Great, Just go inside and they'll get you what you need!" Stone said as Rainbow flew past. "CIDER!!!" she squeed. "OH, YEAH!" The bartender, wearing a shirt of mustard yellow, said as the group went inside,"I'VE GOT MORE CIDER THAN YOU KNOW HOW TO DEAL WITH!" Rarity almost fainted at the sight of the minotaur and his weird clothes. She backed away slowly, only to bump into another Minotaur, "Oh excuse m-" "SKRONK!" The Minotaur wearing a rainbow facemask snorted. "You feel like Sauring Breezes, soon you two will erup with the power of unlimited destruction and strength. Thanks you will have the power, AHHHHHHHHHHH!" She backed up, unable to continue to stare at the minotaur’s rainbow facepaint and tassels, “Uh, uh...” was all Rarity could gasp out. “He said that he wants to know what you want to drink,” Pinkie said. Twilight raised an eyebrow, “You understood...that!” “Yep!” Pinkie nodded with enthusiasm, “Graduated top of my class at Destrucity U.” Suddenly, near a table, a minotaur slammed his fists into the table,"Warrior, stop messing with those ponies, Brother!" "Oh, shut up Hoak Hogan!!!" shouted Warrior as he to grab the drinks. “I will go to starships and end up flying in the mud. Crashing destruction will cause waves of power.” Twilight began to cry,"Why must he ruin linguistics!?" "The Hulkster doesn't know what you're talking about!" the minotaur said. Behind them, a black Minotaur sat looking down, "I guess its good that we are celebrating now, considering how the capital is right now." Sunset turned away as Rarity was comforting a crying Twilight,"What do you mean?" The black Minotaur sighed, "It seems like the city has become more distrusting of late. Especially after the king was assaulted. "Assaulted!?" Sunset exclaimed,"By who!?" "They haven't said, there have been rumors spreading," the black minotaur said. He then looked at Sunset, "Sunshine?...no, you're too young." "Excuse me?" Sunset asked,"What did you say!?" She trotted up to him "I said, you looked like Sunshine," the Minotaur said. "Ha, under taker is thinking of his little crush," A red striped Minotaur said, swigging down a tankard. "She wasn't a crush, just a mare who helped saved you, remember? Sorry, Kain is a little bit of an annoyance," Undertaker said. "And how did M- Sunshine help save you?" Sunset asked. "Kain was hit some sort of magical plague. It caused mild distortions in his face, slowly deteriorate his bones, and poisoned his blood," Undertaker said. "Then Sunny use some sort of magic t fix him.” "So, what happened next? Where did she go?" Sunset asked, stepping a little closer. "I don't know, never saw her after that," undertake said, with a sad sigh. "You know, you are the second pony who asked about her. There was another one, she said thank you and left. Can't remember what she looked like." Sunset blinked,"Somepony else is looking for her?" She looked down,"Mother..." She turned back, eyebrow raised as she watched Twilight still crying,"... Is Twilight still going crazy over that guy's language." Will looked at Twilight, and then to Sunset, "Yes." "Give her time, she'll snap out of it in a few moments," said Rainbow Dash. "What is wrong with that grammar? What was that noise..." Twilight rocked back and forth petting her tail. Sunset sighed,"I'll tell her my discovery later. Right now, I'm interested in some hot chocolate!" She said as she went to the bartender. "Ha! I knew it, these mares are lightweights," the Macho stallion said, smirking. Rainbow Dash growled, "Lightweights? How about you put your money where your mouth is? Free drinks for me and my friends if I can handle your toughest stuff without going under." the bar gasped as they all looked on in horror, "She dares to drink 'Alicorn Killer'? But, only the prince and Iron Will can drink it without fainting." said a minotaur with long fur. "Flair, I think we may have a brave, but stupid mare. Your friend is quite brave indeed," the minotaur with white facepaint said. "Yeah, let me have it, and if I faint... then you can put it on Twilight's princess tab," Dash smirked. Twilight's head went up on that,"Excuse me!?" Then she saw what Dash was trying to do, and smiled a little. Sunset gasped as she drank her hot chocolate,"Rainbow, you're not serious!?" "Oh, I'm going to enjoy this," Mozenwrath said. I am serious," Rainbow Dash said, looking at Sunset. "Twilight, aren't you gonna stop her?" Aske Will. "Ok, hit me big boy," Dash said as the Minotaur began to shake and mix the Alicorn Killer. Reaching behind his back, he pulled out some vodka, rum, and gin. Then he pulled out some Rainbow juice and a vial of a small blue liquid. Twilight turned to Will with a smile,"Trust me, she's just fine." She gave a knowing nod,"Twily's going to be drinking a whole lot of coffee tonight." She muttered. Sunset gulped,"But what do you think that Alicorn Killer's going to do to you!?" “Well, it might turn me into a princess or make me an easy target for every sex starved creature for miles," Rainbow Dash watched as the Minotaur began to lower his cup of steaming and moaning alcohol. "Well, wish me luck girls. See you on the other side." and with that, she took a slow drink of the screaming mixture. Applejack nodded, "Ah'll tell Scootaloo." "Good luck Dashie," Pinkie giggled. "I'll miss you," Fluttershy. "Oh, the poor ear!" Rarity swooned. Then, slowly, Rainbow Dash drank the beverage. Will looked away. Twilight nodded,"I guess I'll have to pick a new Element of Loyalty." "Why are you guys being so complacent!?" Sunset screamed. As Rainbow finishes the drink, she swayed for a bit. Then, she drooped, and then, got up with a smirk "Drinks are on me." The group cheered, Sunset was left with her mouth hanging open. Twilight ran to the counter,"Coffee, please." She smiled at Sunset,"I'll explain later." She closed Sunset's mouth. Rarity looked and smiled, “Green tea for me.” “Cider,” Applejack nodded. “The Mean Gean milkshake,” Pinkie said. “Another Alicorn Killer,” Rainbow Dash said. “Tea,” Fluttershy added, and looked to Will, “I think she will have some too.” “How did she? How...”Will said in a dumbfounded tone. Sunset, after getting her act together, turned to Twilight,"Twilight, I found out something about my mother. She passed through this town." Twilight took a sip of her coffee,"That's good to know." Pinkie Pie bounced back with her ultra sugary milkshake, "What is?" "My mom helped a minotaur in this town, then she left. Also, another pony was looking for her as well." Sunset said, taking a swig of her hot chocolate. "Another pony, who?" Applejack asked, sitting with a cup of apple cider. Rainbow Dash came in, three cups and a wide grin on her face. Will took a sip of her tea, " I don't think you've ever mentioned you mom yet." Rarity and Fluttershy came back with their own cups, taking their seats with the alicorn and unicorn. Sunset sighed,"He didn't say." "Her mom left her at Celestia's door when she was a baby for unknown reasons." Twilight explained,"I was tasked by Luna to help find her." "So, besides stopping Valtor from finding the heart of worlds, we also have to reunite Bacon-hair with with her mom?" asked Rainbow Dash, "Buck me..." "Oh Rainbow, don't be like that. Think of how sweet it will be when it happens," Rarity smiled. "If it happens." Sunset said. "Yeah, but first, we gotta get to the capital," Applejack sai, drinking slowly. Twilight nodded,"And we have to talk to the king." Sunset looked at The group,"I also found out the king was assaulted by someone, so getting to the capital might not be easy with some of the panic." "Now, who in tarnation would assault the king?" Asked Applejack. "Was he hurt?" Fluttershy asked, looking a little worried "He didn't say. I hope not." Sunset said. "There could be quite a few creatures that would try to hurt Minos." Twilight said, putting a hoof to her chin,"The Lava Demons of the north do have a bit of a grudge with him." "L-Lava Demons?" whispered Fluttershy. Twilight nodded,"Yeah, they're notorious for stealing magical artifacts, burning down villages, and just being plain rude." "Those thieves," Rainbow Dash rumbled. "How could they do that?" Applejack said. "Oh, rude! That is just horrible!" Rarity said. Will looked up from finishing her drink, "Anypony else?" "Well, none that I can think off. The only other races around here are the Flutter Ponies, but those are so shy and they’re so peaceful, they wouldn't hurt a fly. The Speeders of the South have good relations with the minotaurs, but that's about it." Twilight said. "Speeders?" Rainbow Dash quirked an eyebrow at this. "Weird little ostrich things. They're supposed to be some of the fastest things alive." Twilight said, then facehoofed,"Why did I say that?" "Ok, we need to find these things!" Rainbow Dash shouted, thrusting her hoof into the air. "You always have to beat something better than you?" Applejack asked. "Hey, gotta keep the skill sharp. Beside, who knows what tricks these things got," Rainbow Dash said. Rarity looked over to Twilight, "Twilight, how much did you read up before we left?" Twilight pulled out a book,"About as much I possibly could. There is quite a bit of history on minotaur civilization, so I didn't get a chance to read all of it before we got here." Applejack noded as she saw that there was a bookmark on the halfway page. At that moment, a voice rang out, "Yo! The train is coming." "Finally,” Rainbow Dash said, trotting out. "Wonder what kept them so long." "I am sorry, but I needed the rest before I could start the train again," a voice called up from above. "Well, that is under-oh my CELESTIA!!" Shrieked Rarity as she looked up at the towering minotaur. The minotaur, who towered over the large buildings that populated the port town, waved hi to Rarity, who nicely waved back. "Oh, hello. Mr. Cold not say that there were more passengers, he just said bearers," the minotaur smiled. "Hello pretty ponies." Sunset looked up,"Oh my Celestia..." Twilight could only gawk. "Please don't break us..." Mozenwrath said. The giant smiled at them,  eyes opening wide at Twilight’s wings,"Oh, I am sorry you majesty. My name is Andre, please to meet you!" he waved. "No need to call me majesty, just Twilight's fine." Twilight nodded nervously. "Um, why did you need a rest?" asked Applejack, staring slack jawed. Andre cracked his neck, “Because operating the train is hard work.”  The giant minotaur lead them to the train. Strangely, the train held no engine, but it still held four long and massive cars linked end to end. At the last car was a stand where a minotaur was meant to place himself being the last car. "OOOOOH, what do you think he is going to do?" Pinkie asked as they got onboard the train. Fluttershy let out a gulp as she looked behind her at the window as Andre walked to the back of the train, "Oh, I hope he isn't... "Dear Celestia and Luna in Canterlot, This guy must be ridiculously strong!" Sunset said. Reaching back with his fist, Andre aimed his balled up hand at the back of the train. Rarity, and Fluttershy's eyes opened in horror. Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie smiled with death defying grins, while Applejack held onto her hat. Sunset held on to her seat,"Not again..." Twilight gulped,"Oh, today is just not my day..." There was a sound that was heard from the back of the train, one that to the ponies, sounded like a sonic rainboom. To the minotaurs, it was just a normal sound that hits when a strong minotaur hit the back of the strain. The train, upon impact, hit the tracks at a speed that would seem unnatural for normal ponies or coal. The bullet train began to sped along the tracks at such speeds, that the area outside the windows seems like small blurs, "My word! Do these minotaurs go this way all the time?" Rarity asked. "WHEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEE!!!" Pinkie squealed. "This is awesome!" Rainbow Dash shouted. "YEEEEE HAW!" Applejack cheered. Straining, Rainbow Dash moved to a nearby Minotaur, "So, how fast are we going?" "About, 780 miles per hour," the blue minotaur said, sitting back and reading his newspaper. "Twilight, next time, find a way to teleport instead!" shouted Will. "Dear, mind telling us how are we going to stop? I mean who has the breaks?" Rarity asked, looking with a soft smile. The blue minotaur arched an eyebrow, "What are breaks?" Upon hearing that, Sunset began to scream wildly. As the train continued to speed along, it wasn't long until they reached the capital. At the end of the tracks, there stood another minotaur about the size of Andre. A boisterous smile came to him as he saw the train incoming. Slamming his feet down into the ground, the minotaur prepared for the train. As the speeding piece of metal neared him, he grabbed the front and stopped it with all of his might. Inside the eight mares rattled around in the car, "Oh my gosh... let's do that again!!!!!" Pinkie shouted. "YEAH!"" Dash agreed Sunset and Twilight both screamed at the same time,"NO!" "Fine," Dash rolled her eyes. Then whispered to Pinkie, "Later." Twilight clumsily stepped out of the train, and looked at the other minotaur,"I'm glad you were able to stop that. Who are you?" The minotaur knelt down to look at Twilight, glaring straight into her very soul, "Goldberg." Twilight gulped,"Oh, okay, hi Goldberg..." She said nervously. "Hi," growled the minotaur, before sitting back in his chair, bringing out a 'Space Queen comic (The one where she winds up in a post apocalyptic world where she has to help a little girl in spacesuit find her mother) and began to read. "I haven't read that one!" Pinkie giggled as she looked up. "Do you know where I can buy one?" "Comic store in the city," said Goldberg. "A comic store in the city? Spike does need a souvenir, plus if there's a comic store, a library isn't too far away. And my royal symbol does allow me access to extra stuff in libraries..." Twilight turned to her friends,"Everypony, we're making a trip to the library!" She said before speeding off. "Wait! and I thought I was the gal who likes to run off," Rainbow Dash said, flying after Twilight. "What's the problem, RD?" Applejack asked. "I just didn't want to spend my time in a library!" As Twilight exited the train station, she came to the sight of the city. Normally a very vibrant and exciting town. It was now quiet and barren, without many minotaurs in the streets. Even the sounds of the foundry were awfully quiet, "Where the hey is everypony?" "They were attacked Applejack, perhaps they are scared. And they are untrusting of us," Rarity said. "I hope Twilight doesn't get rudely attacked in the library," Fluttershy said. "I just hope a mob doesn't show up." Will said. Sunset shook her head,"If a mob were to show up, they would've shown up by now." “That, doesn’t exactly make me any less worried,” Will said, taking flight as they followed Twilight through the many bends that led to the library. As Twilight ran into the library, she encountered a large muscular librarian,"Hello, I am Princess Twilight Sparkle. Do you know where I can find books on the Heart of Worlds?" The minotaur looked at Twilight, growling, "Princess? How do you expect me to believe that!? That monster who attacked Minos was said to transform into other ponies." Twilight blinked,"Okay, but if I were a monster, why would I go to a library?" She asked "The monster came in with a pleasant face too," the minotaur said, before suddenly looking into a pair of magenta eyes. "Hey, if she says she's Twilight, then she's Twilight Sparkle. Now, help us out before I-OW!" yelled Rainbow Dash as she was pulled away by Applejack. The minotaur rolled his eyes, but then looked at Rarity, "Wait, is that Rarity Belle? The one who made the hotel chic line?" "Why, yes," Rarity said, then was shocked when he stood up, wearing a dress that she had made. His long curtain dress matched the pillow top that he wore on his body. "OH, I bought some of your line! I mean, making a dress out of curtains? I never would've thunk it!" He said, "Well, I guess you must be who you say you are. The books on ancient relics is in the ancient myths section." and then he opened the door behind him, revealing quite a large library. While not the size of the Canterlot archives, it contained no less the magnificence of the building. With a toss of her mane, Rarity smiled, "Well, he has quite the taste, I must say." "Why hotel?" Will sked, "Long story sugarcube," Applejack said with a chuckle. Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy began to fly above, trying to look for the book. while the unicorns began to look at the middle shelves. A few minutes grinded into horse as the mres began to look through each book. "Erebus: Fact or Fiction?, The Legend of Hilda, God of Smithing: How Tauros came to be." Twilight frowned,"All I'm going to read later, but they're not what I'm looking for." Sunset ran her hoof along the books, until she came across a title,"The Laughter of Fizzy." She pulled it out and looked through it,"Girls, I think I found something!" "Ooooh, what what what!?" Pinkie Pie squeaked as she bounced to Sunset. "This a story about Fizzy, who helped give water and laughter to the minotaurs!" Sunset said. "Of course! We met Truly's spirit in Aquastria, so it could be possible that one of her friends could be the key to finding, well, the key!" Twilight said, looking over Sunset's shoulder. "What else does it say?" Rarity asked. "It's talking about how, in thanks for helping the minotaurs, the God of Smithing, Buddy, created the four golden horseshoes: One with the power of flight, one with the power to control the weather itself, one to heal with a touch, and one to control the earth beneath. It is said that the four horseshoes were given to Fizzy to help her friend Mimic. A few years later, the horseshoes were given back to the minotaur king, Pat." Sunset said. "Do you think those shoes are the key?" Twilight said. "Could be. I mean, the first key was related to something good that Truly did," Will said. "Wait, the god of smithing is named Buddy?" Rainbow Dash asked. Sunset shrugged,"I'm sure there are gods with sillier names." "Or nicknames," Twilight gave a slight smile. "I was six!" Sunset said. "Anyway, I guess one way to find that out for sure is if we talk to Minos himself. If we can get past the guards." Twilight said. "Yeah, if only we had a-" "Hey, something is happening in the square!" shouted a minotaur as he ran out. "Distraction?" Applejack asked. "I wonder what's going on in the square?" Twilight asked as she and her friends walked out. As the minotaurs gathered around the square, a loud and brash voice shouted from the center, "Minotaurs of Tauros! Fear not of visitors to your fair town. Fear not anymore! For the greatest hero of Equestria is here. "Oh, is that-" Rainbow Dash began. "Yes... I think it is!" Squaled Pinkie Pie in excitement "The defeater of Mirage! The liberator of the Elements, and the guardian of the dream worlds! The most powerful mage in all of Equestria! At that moment, a flash and a loud bang is heard, filling the square with smoke. When the smoke clears, a simple wagon with a stereo stand in the center. Then the smoke twirls in a circle, before dropping off a blue unicorn with a hat and cape. The blue unicorn smirked, "For I am-" She then clicked on the stereo "Oh, my Celestia, her ego's just as big in this world..." Sunset muttered, her light blue eyes wide in shock. "Quick, let's use Trixie's huge ego to go to the castle!" Twilight said, noticing that the guards were too busy watching Trixie's show. "Did she rehearse that entire bit?" Sunset asked, listening to the faint singing. "Trust me, she did." Twilight shook her head, their trot leading them to the front gates,"Must she introduce herself with a song every time?" Rainbow Dash chuckled as they made their way to the castle, "With an ego that big, what you expect?" Applejack did her best to refuse to retort as they walked into the large castle. Twilight opened the huge double doors, which lead into the hallway that went into the throne room,"King Minos?" The king, sitting on his throne, looked up, "Who's there?" "I am Princess Twilight Sparkle of Equestria." Twilight said, standing upright,"I've come to ask you for a favor." "Princess, you grace my kingdom with your presence. I must apologize for how my people are acting. The attack has stuck them in fear," Mino said, bowing. "What is the favor you ask of me?" "Yes, I've heard of the attack." Twilight nodded,"I'm looking for a key to the Heart of Worlds, and I believe it has something to do with the four horseshoes of Mimic that you should have." "...I do not have the horseshoes," Minos said with a sigh. "What?" shouted Rainbow Dash. "Well, who does then?" Twilight asked. "Let us guess, they're scattered aren't they?" Sunset said with a frown "It is, an unusual story," said the minotaur. "After the horseshoes were given to my ancestor, times were peaceful. Then, a shark attacked the palace." "A shark?" asked Fluttershy, excited to hear about a new creature. "A treasure shark, a rare beast said to appear once every 500 years. His belly is said to be covered in jewels, gold, and valuable metals that could make Celestia seem poor in comparison," Mino said with a twinkle in his eye. "Tell me more!" Rarity said, her love for jewels kicking into high gear. "However, the beast is said to be ungodly strong and during his travels, he swam through our palace and ate the shrine that held the four horseshoes," he then pointed to a tapestry showing the beast. "Then, he swam away with the shoes." ..." Twilight blinked for a bit,"A treasure shark. Okay, is there any possible way we could find this guy and get the horseshoes back?" She asked with a hopeful look. "We have our best hunters on it for centuries, but no such luck," Minos said. "However, it is said that he should be making a pass around this kingdom around this time." "Right," Twilight looked up at the picture,"So, we just sit and wait for the treasure shark, and try and take the shoes from it!" She chuckled nervously,"Sounds... easy." "Well, it is just a giant shark that is capable of eating all of us inone bite!" Pinkie Pie giggled. “Yeah, that's comforting!" Sunset said with a frown. "And gems are Rarity's forte! So," Twilight turned to Rarity,"Is there anything you might be able to do?" "I've never tried to expand my gem finding spell that far before Twilight," Rarity said, looking up to King Minos. "But, If maybe I had a high enough tower I could try." "MY castle parapet is yours, my lady," Minos bowed. Will sighed, "I guess we just have to look around the town while we wait." "I'll have my guards send word that you are allies." Twilight gave a grin,"Good! I've always wanted to see this place!" Twilight said as she hopped out,"I wonder if I could find a museum!" "Leave to the egghead t want to find a museum first," Rainbow Dash said, rolling her eyes. "Ah think Ah'll go and find some better saddlebags fer us. These weapons are getting mighty heavy," Applejack said walking out. As the others began to talk amongst themselves, Mino called out to Will, "Wait, redhair." "The name is Will, your highness," Will said. "Lady Will, tell me... is that the Heart of Kandrakar upon your neck?" Asked Minos. "Yes, it is," Will said, holding her pendant, crestfallen at its lack of a pale pink glow. Minos smiled, "So, the guardians of magic have been chosen then. I assume that the others have the other elements. The unicorn is of water, the rainbow mane is fire, the orange one earth, and the pink one wind?" "No," Will said with a shake of her head. "They hold the elements of harmony, but not elemental magic. Wait, do you know who I am, or why I can wield magic?" "Only what I have heard of in legends, dear Will. I thought Celestia would tell you more about you, seeing as you are in the presence of her student," Minos said, with a hoof on his chin. "No,she didn't." Willi sighed. "She just told me the legend of how Kandrakar was born, nothing more." "Then maybe you are only to deliver the heart to the true guardians, or maybe your fellows have not been found," Mino said, staring down at Will. Looking up, Will then stated, "But, I do know that they are out there. I see these visions, of me and my friends doing things for ponies... sometimes we're these ape things, sometime we're ponies. We help others and I'm not-" "Perhaps you need some aid, there is a museum not too far from our forges. It has a tapestry detailing the story of the heart and its myriad of legends." Nodding, Will ran out of the room Sunset stopped before she left. She turned to look at Minos,"King, do you know if a mare named Sunshine Dawn passed through here?" "That I do not know, you might have to ask around town," Minos aid. Sunset nodded,"Thank you."she walked out. As she neared the entrance to the castle, she watched as the bearers and Will began to go their separate ways, Rainbow Dash Applejack, Fluttershy went to the city while Twilight and Will walked to the museum. Sighing and lowering her head, Sunset walked a little bit ahead, unaware of the presence of two purple eyes watching her. "Oh, dusty, dusty dust," Rarity bemoaned as she walked up the stairs of the tower. "Maybe he should've warned me about this,” the alabaster unicorn paused her talking when a pair of blue eyes appeared before her.”Pinkie what are you doing up here?" Pinkie Pie giggled, hopping to stand next to Rarity, "Didn't want you to get lonely, and besides," she then brought out a telescope. "I wanted to use my new telescope that Maude bought me.” Rarity took a look at the telescope that Pinkie brought out of her mane and then turned to continue the trek up the spiral staircase. While the walk was long and hard for Rarity, Pinkie Pie was taking steps by bounds. After several long moments the two ponies reached the top, "My word, look at all of this. You can see the entirety of Tauros from up here." "Wow, you're right!" Pinkie squealed as she pronked to a window. "Hey, look at this!" "By Celestia... this entire town is a...” the white mare trailed off as she gazed across the city. Pinkie let out a gasp of amazement as she looked at the twisting and turning streets below the tower, “A MAZE!!!!!” Pinkie Pie looked out around the tower, "So, ready with the spell?" "I am going to try at least," nodded the alabaster unicorn as she breathed slowly. Then, her horn lit up in a blue light. For a few moments, she concentrated bathing the room in her blue color , but then fell to her knees panting, "No use. I can only cover the city." "Aw, if only you had a way of boosting your signal. Then you could be a little like a radar!" Pinkie said. "Pinkie, you are a genius!" Rarity exclaimed, shooting back up. "How's your throwing arm?" Smirking, Pinkie walked over to Rarity, "Wait, Pinkie what are you doing!?" "I was going to throw you!" Pinkie giggled. "No, I mean," Rarity used her gem finding spell to find and gather various gems from around the city. "On this." she then began to charge her horn, allowing each gem o glow. “Twilight showed me a book that told of how to enhance gems with different type of spells. This is a spell amplifier enchantment. It will enhance the area of a spell, making a sort of... megaspell as it were. "Sweet!" Pinkie said, as she began to throw the gems over her shoulder in a series of pitches. Rarity began to charge her magic as the gems hit the ground. A smile graced her lips as she felt her her magical range increase by miles. As her magical wave hit each gem, her range began to increase mile by mile. She couldn’t help but feel an euphoria as her mind began to feel all of the gems that her magic touched. After a few minutes, she felt a large creature full of gems swimming just northward, “There, it’s about-” “Rarity, look!” Pinkie Pie shouted, pointing at a billow of smoke and a small tornado appearing at a foundry. “Oh my word-” As Rainbow Dash, Applejack and Fluttershy began to walk around the marketplace, Rainbow Dash took to the air, while Applejack began to look up and down the streets, "Let's see, saddlebags, saddle bags." she muttered as she began to walk away from the group. "Oh, I wish this foundry wasn't so loud," Fluttershy muttered, walking past the various minotaurs working at the bellows and furnaces. Her ears then perked up as she heard a minotaur complain.  Turning towards the sound, she began to trot t the sound,looking at a minotaur. "Come on, little guy, come on," the minotaur said, looking at a little armadillo. Fluttershy looked at the coughing creature with worry and sat down with the fire armadillo, "There there, it going to be all right. When did he start up like this?" her nervousness forgotten as her medical side began to kick in. The bull shrugged, "I think about yesterday. It been hitting a lot of the fire armadillos, like some sort of plague." "That's horrible!" Fluttershy said,"The poor things." she looked at the fire armadillos. Walking own, she saw a few symbols on each that glowed but vanished, "Valtor," Fluttershy whispered. Looking down at each animal, she lifted up one neck, "swollen lymph nodes. Coated tongue... Ok, I think I know what to do," Fluttershy said, "that all of the fire armadillos for me." The minotaur nodded and ran to the other bellows and rolled the creatures to the pegasus. Fluttershy then flew to the furnace and grabbed a pair of tongs with her wings. Turning away from the furnace with a coal in the tongs, she put it into a small bowl. Then she grabbed one of the hammers, and lifted it up to crush it into small pieces. Once done, she reached over to the oil chamber and dripped a little onto the orange rocks. Carefully she began to mix the two in the bowl, “They are fire creatures, so, they need to be stoked.” smiling she began to rub her hot oil on the backs of each armadillo, watching with a smile as how each symbol disappeared. “Do this for the others and they’ll be fine.” she said, just as she watched a explosion take place, “Oh my goodness!!” Rainbow Dash flew amongst the clouds of the city, when suddenly she got hit by a bellow, "HEY!" "Sorry," one of the bulls said. "We don't usually get a flyer around here," a cow said to Rainbow Dash she landed. "What's the big idea hitting me with... a cloud?" the pegasus asked as she watched the bellows shoot up another cloud. "Yep, the Taros bellows. It's kind of like how you pegasi make clouds," the bull said, smiling. "The engines take groundwater and seawater from the ground and shoot them up into the sky as steam thanks to our heat." Rainbow Dash looked on at the broilers, "But, how do you make it rain without pegasi?" "Well, after we let the clouds out, we let them do as they will," Red Bull said. "So, the weather's unpredictable?"Dash asked. "Well, we do guess. But we have weather scientists that help out," Red smiled. Rainbow Dash watched in awe, keeping an eye on the bellows, "This is so cool." "We have an accident in chamber 2!" Shouted a bull, causing Rainbow Dash to fly in. "What is going on?" Rainbow Dash asked. "Our heaters were powered by fire armadillos. But, since ours is sick he couldn't keep up the pace and..." he looked back at the cloud machine, which was beginning to launch a tornado. "MAZE!!?" Applejack shouted to the Minotaur. "Yes, every town in Taros is a maze," the red minotaur said, looking about. "Unless you have a good knowledge of mazes, you could get lost if you ain’t a minotaur." "But why-" Asked Applejack. "Inate sense of direction," the red minotaur said. "Now, to get to the satchel store, you are going to have to make two lefts, two rights, two ups, two downs, and then start a right on AB street. Applejack made her long trek to the store, "Ok, now, saddlebags, where are they?" "Saddle bags? You've come to the right place!" said the minotaur as he welcomed Applejack in. "Ok, now, this is going to be something unique," said the bull as he walked Applejack into the room. "You are going to make your own." "Make mah own?" "Surely you know what your friends like," said the Minotaur. "These are special made cloth...” Without thinking, Rainbow Dash flew in the opposite of the tornado and began to fly opposite. At the same Time, Fluttershy began to administer some medication to the Armadillos. "Ok, so what Am Ah supposed to do?" asked Applejack. "Just begin to push that wheel, and then tell me about your friends," the bull said sitting on a chair. As Applejack began to speak, Rainbow Dash flew into the tornado, flying in the opposite direction as fast as she could. As Rainbow Dash kept the tornado under control, Fluttershy ran in and saw the sick armadillo. Moving quickly, she began to help the animal. "Well, Fluttershy is soft spoken and Rainbow Dash is impulsive. But, Ah know that deep down, they are very dependable. Heck, Rainbow has a big heart, she doesn't show it to anypony else and Fluttershy? Well," Fluttershy held her mane as Dash continued to move, the winds increasing. "She is probably the bravest mare Ah met. "Then Rarity is good at being a frou frou gal, but..." Rarity ran into the weather factory, seeing how Fluttershy and Rainbow Dash were trying to fix it. Levitating some of the gems, she began to help protect them. "The gal isn't afraid to do what she can to help, and Pinkie is only insane on the outside. When you get to know her though-" Pinkie then put a pie in Fluttershy's hoof, the yellow pegasus smiled in return. "she can be real smart." "And what about you, Lady Applejack?" asked the bull. "Me, Ah'm just a simple farming gal who likes to... wait, how did ya know my name?" "Don't you know," smiled the minotaur as he finished making the satchels. "I am BUDDY, GOD OF FORGE!" "What, but Ah thought-" Applejack began "AH my dear little pony, while other gods are content to be rulers and princesses. I prefer the forge of my homeland! Making gifts for those who find me!" Buddy said, flexing his pecs. "Uh, well, Ah didn't find ya on purpose. It was an accident," Applejack blushed. "HAHAHAHHAH! Honest as well as hard working! That is good," he said, handing the satchels to Applejack. "These will hold your weapons, as well as any food you may need. And tell Twilight that she makes a fine mage!" "Uh, thanks, but what do ah owe ya?" Applejack asked. "Just agree to come to my forge when you are done. I wish to make something for the holder on honesty," smiled Buddy Twilight looked around the town as she trotted for a museum. Will flew up next to Twilight, " Hey Twilight. Found the museum yet?" Twilight turned,"Yes, over there!" she said, pointing to a Museum of Ancient History. Smiling, Will walked to with Twilight to the large doors of the white museum. Twilight opened the doors and looked around,"This place... is a literal maze. . I should've known..." "How in Equestria are we supposed to figure our way around here?" Will asked. For a few moments, the blue pegasus began to pour over the map of the museum. "Oh, I get it. It’s kind of like a hexagon." Will began to trace her hoof along the trail through the rooms. Twilight turned to Will,"What do you mean?" Will walked a few inches to the left to the edge of one hallway and then the next, "The maze is in a hexadecimal, with smaller rooms like it. It's kind of like a bunch of littler circles in one," the blue mare then smiled. “Ok, why are you so good at this? “Irma asked. “Well, blame Narissa. She kept with all of those mind games against us, I kind of wanted to get some practice in,” Will smirked. Twilight's eyes opened wide,"Wow, I didn't think you would be so good at mazes!" Will chuckled, "It’s a hobby." an then she began to walk down the path leading to "Heart and its keepers." "Wow, this place even has an exhibit on the Heart!" Twilight said. “The heart you say?" said a cow walking behind them. "Oh, I am the curator of this place, Soft Heart. A pleasure, princess and a hello to your friend." "Oh, no! It's a pleasure to meet you, ma'am." Twilight bowed. "Tell me what brings you to our heart exhibit today?" asked Soft Heart "Come then," Soft smiled. Twilight gave a big grin as she followed the cow. With a slow trot, the trio walked by a large tapestry that depicted a large dragon sitting in a circular room, "When Kandrakar was formed by the dragons of old, they were strong enough to protect the worlds on their own. However," the cow walked by a picture of five olden dragons, weak looking. "age has a way to affect us all. Soon the five knew the ha to pass on their power and the job of guardians of magic. So thus, they went on one last quest." the next picture was of the Heart of Kandrakar on a pedestal, surrounded by five gems. "A last quest..." Twilight muttered as she looked at the gems. "To find the heart of Kandrakar," she smiled as she moved. "Once found, the five dragons put their elemental energies into five orbs known as Aurameres: Water, Fire, Earth, Wind, and Quintessence. It was then written that once a generation, the heart would be given to a keeper who would watch over the Heart of Kandrakar and protect the realms of the multiverse and the magic that lies within us all. The heart of Kandrakar would bestow upon these chose  five the powers of the guardians and the powers of the five elements. These would be known as the guardians of the veil," the last photo showed five ponies with fairy wings floating in a pink space. Across their bodies, their respective elements flowed. "Wow!" Twilight said with a wide smile,"Think, Will, you could be part of this!" Will looked down at her pendant, "I know, but... why am I getting visions of the guardians in my dreams?" "Maybe, the heart is waiting for you to guide it to its proper bearer," Soft said as she walked away. "Do you think so, Twilight?" asked Will. Twilight thought for a bit,"It's probable." She looked around,"I wonder if this museum has an exhibit on Fizzy?" "Let's see!" Will cheered. Twilight grinned as she found a directory,"Oh, look! It's over here!" She said as she led Will. Will quickly followed Twilight, admiring all of the exhibits. Twilight looked around,"Look, Buddy the God of Smithing! And he's crafting Queen Majesty and Queen Terra's armor!" She pointed towards an image of a minotaur creating a suit of armor for two alicorns. "Wow!" Will said in fascination. Twilight pointed to another tapestry,"Fizzy and the four horseshoes!" The tapestry showed a unicorn being handed four horseshoes. "Maybe there is something written on it," Will said. Twilight looked down at the writing,"Buddy, on the request of the Queens of Harmony, gives Fizzy the horseshoes for her friend." "So, they were close. Though, I wonder why the queens did it?" Will said. "Maybe it was the right thing to do?" Twilight said,"Mimic was a sickly unicorn before she became the Wise." "she was?" asked Will. "What was wrong with her?" "Well, I don't know all the details, but from my vision back in Aquastria, I heard that she was having strange visions. Another thing that I heard was that, well, she was too powerful for her body." “Can that even happen?" Will asked. Twilight nodded,"It doesn't happen often now, but back then pony bodies weren't as well developed. The most powerful pony at the time before Mimic's birth could only do simple telekinesis. When Mimic was born, thought, she began to exhibit the ability to teleport long distances, lift entire boulders with ease, and she was able to do realistic illusions." "And was that the reason for her horseshoes?" asked Will." "Yep!" Twilight nodded,"You know, I wonder what those horseshoes would be like, added on to somepony like me or Sunset..." "Probably godlike," Will said, looking at the horseshoes. "Hmm, I don't think I would like that power." She gave a sigh,"I'm having trouble holding back myself as it is." "You look like you are handling yourself well , though," sai Will. Twilight sighed,"Yeah, for the most part." She walked up close to Will,"Do you know what it's like, being me? I once turned my own parents into cacti, and caused Spike to grow into a large dragon, accidentally! It was only because of Celestia that they were turned back to normal!" She turned away,"I've never forgotten just how powerful I can be. Sometimes, I worry that if I let go, I break something. Sometimes, I'm afraid of what exactly I can do!" She looked at Will,"Celestia didn't just teach me to improve myself, she taught me to control myself, because I live in a world of cardboard." Will quickly gave Twilight a hug. "Thanks, but I've made peace with that." She smiled,"because I know my friends will help hold me back." "Hey, that's what friends are..." she trailed off, seeing the vision of four friends holding their hooves out. "For." "You okay?" Twilight asked,"You kind of spaced out for a bit." "Yeah, I just saw," she smiled softly. "My friends." Twilight smiled,"Good, at least you won't forget them." She said, before turning around,"Come on, let's go see what the other's are doing." Will noded, following Twilight out. Twilight looked at a minotaur,"Hey, have you seen a yellow unicorn with a bacon-colored mane around here?" "Yeah, I saw somepony grabbing her and taking her into that bar over there," he said pointing to the nearby bar. "Grabbing her!?" Twilight exclaimed,"Oh no, someone's trying to do horrible things to her in a bar!" she ran towards the bar. Somewhere, behind Sunset, an invisible mare began to walk up behind her. "We're being followed." Mozenwrath said. Sunset looked behind her,"I don't see anything." Suddenly, a flash of smoke blocked the yellow unicorn's vision, "SUNSET SHIMMER! Trixie has come for you," the blue mare shouted, pointing her hoof at Sunset. Sunset gasped,"B-But I've changed!" "Oh, it is not for your theft of the crown that Trixie has come," Trixie growled a she stared into Sunset's eyes. "It is for a far worse crime that Trixie has directed her ire!" Sunset stepped back in fear,"And that would be?" Pointing a hoof against Sunset' chest, Trixie furrowed her brow, "You stole Trixie's title as the princess's rival! She was gonna let that slide, but then she saw you out with her and that just restock Trixie's fire." "But I-What?" Sunset cocked her head,"But I'm nopony's rival!" "Oh yes you are!" Trixie argued. "You were a student of Celestia's, you had the potential to be the Element of Magic, in terms of mana usage you are somehow more powerful than Trixie, you have similar traits, and you can match her in strength. You are perfect RIVAL material! That was once Trixie's job and title!" "But I'm not Twilight's rival! I'm not even that strong!" Sunset said,"I mean, yes, I can balance all my mana pools so I never run out of mana, but still!" "... You just proven Trixie's point," Trixie said dryly. "She's right, I mean you've just said you were stronger." Mozenwrath said. "Well, I'm still not her rival! I don't want to be her rival! You can stay as her rival for all I care!" Sunset yelled. "What? You just gave Tixie the title, like that... no... struggle or magic duel?" Trixie asked, rather dumbfounded. Sunset nodded "You... don't want to fight," Trixie asked with an arched eyebrow "No." Sunset shook her head. Trixie growled and then walked close to Sunset, "You don't know how this works do you? I am the challenger and you are the... oh, never mind!" Trixie then took Sunset by the shoulder. "Trixie is going to take you with her while she goes on her mission, and then she is going to teach you on how to be a good rival, and then we will meet up with Sparkle." "A mission? Rival?" Sunset blinked as she was pulled,"But I don't want to be a rival!” "A mission given to Tixie by Luna, and yes, you are going to be a rival. If not to Twilight, then to me. Now come, we have a bar to hit!" the blue mare smirked as she pulled Sunset into a bar. "But I don't want to be a rival to you either!" She screamed as she was pulled into the bar. "Not Trixie's problem, now... if you excuse her. Barkeep, bourbon and what do you want?" asked the magician. "Oh, hot chocolate." Sunset blinked, and turned to Trixie,"Bourbon!? Won't that mess up your magic!?" "Trixie thinks better with a slight buzz," Trixie said. As the drinks were brought out, she looked to Sunset, "Now, before you become a good rival, you need to straighten up! You don't need to be like Trixie, just strong enough to growl with confidence!" "But- Oy!" Sunset shook her head as she drank the chocolate,"Fine. Growl with confidence?" "Like this," Trixie growled with a flair. "That shows how strong you are, but that you are willing to see your rivals side." "Okay, grr." Sunset did simply. "Good, now- excuse Trixie," she smirked as she walked up to one Bull. "Word is, you met Sunshine Dawn." "Yeah and," "Trixie wants to know where she went," Trixie said Sunset blinked,"You're looking for my mom?" "Princess Luna gave Trixie the quest to hunt her down," Trixie said, then back to the bull. "Why was she here?" "She was doin some investigation on something she called 'the Street Rat's' Legacy. She mentioned it was a secret that she had been investigating," the bull said. "Why would a powerful spellcaster care about rats?" Trixie said. "Street Rat could be a name." Sunset suggested,"Twilight's also on this quest, maybe you two could help each other!" "Street Rat. Even in death you are an annoyance..." Mozenwrath growled. "Trixie has plans to do so. But first, we need to work on your rival side a little more," Trixie smirked. Sunset sighed,"Fine..."She shook her head. "Good, but first," Trixie smiled. "We are going to drink a little more and you are going to tell Trixie how much better she is than that other Trixie." "Well," Sunset thought for a bit,"She is a lot like you in the ego department. "Of course," smiled Trixie. "and in terms of stage magic?" "Well, I haven't seen much of her stage magic, but then again she's still in high school so she can't do a whole lot." "Ha, and that is why Trixie will always be superior," Trixie smirked. "Well, to be fair, magic doesn't completely exist in that world." Sunset said. "Bt there is enough," Trixie said. "Remind Trixie to meet her counterpart one day." Sunset shook her head,"No, I'm afraid you'd destroy the world with your ego." she narrowed her eyes "Trixie knows her limits!" Trixie said with a smirk. "That's why you're drinking your second glass of bourbon?" Sunset asked. "Nope, Tixie is doing this because she likes to drink after a good show," Trixie smiled. "As long as you don't overdo it..." Sunset gulped. "Trixie is not speaking Prench yet?" Trixie asked. "Uh, no?" Sunset said. "Good, then she has hit her limit," Trixie chuckled. "Wait, don't you want to at least be a little coherent when, uh, teaching me!?" Sunset asked. "Yes, which is why, you are here," Trixie smiled. "Excuse me!?" Sunset exclaimed. "Trixie said, you are here to help make sure that she can keep coherent," Trixie said/. "Oh, that gives me hope!" Sunset rolled her eyes. "Of course it should you give you hope, Do you know who it is that you are speaking to?" Trixie asked. "You are speaking to the mare who single hoofedly saved the bearers of the elements!" Before Sunset could ask, Twilight burst into the bar,"Unhand my friend, you cad!" She yelled, firing a beam of magic at Trixie. She blinked when she noticed the unicorn next to Sunset,"Trixie?" Trixie yelped as the beam flew at her, ducking beneath the table as the blast hit the wall. This caused the shelf behind her to break, and the glasses to slide off and onto a minotaur. As another Minotaur laughed, the previous minotaur growled and punched his friend. Two minotaurs growled and began to punch one another, "Um, maybe we should go," Will said as she peered into the bar. Twilight grabbed Trixie,"I am so sorry!" "Apologize later, we gotta get out of here!" Sunset said as she and Twilight ran out with Trixie in tow. "Trixie is sorry that you are such a lousy shot!" Trixie ribbed as she was pulled out. The bartender smiled as the four ran out the door, "HAHAHAH! This was fantastic! Come start another brawl in my bar again!!" "Trixie thinks everybody is...," she said as she panted. Once they were out of the way of the bar, the blue mare looked to Twilight, "Mind telling Trixie why you shot at her?" Twilight gave a nervous chuckle,"I kind of thought you were an evil kidnapper, and you were going to do horrible things to Sunset..." Sunset muttered,"Not too far from the truth..." "Trixie was not kidnapping any pony. She just needed to tell her other rival what was what. She needed to remind her that the only mare who is your rival is the Great and Powerful Trixie," Trixie said, pointing a hoof to her chest. "You have a rival?" Will asked. Twilight sighed,"Yes, even though we know who's somewhat stronger." She looked at Trixie,"Look, Sunset is not my rival. You know you're the only rival for me." She put a hoof on Trixie's shoulder. "You, mean that?" Trixie asked, smiling softly. Twilight nodded. Trixie smiled softly back at her, "Um you two need a moment?” asked a raspy voice. Down the road were Twilight's friends, Dash smirking as she asked. Twilight blinked, and coughed,"Um, well, uh, everypony!" She turned,"How did everything go?" "Well, we-" "TRIXIE!" Pinkie Said, giving Trixie a giant hug. "As I was saying, Twilight," Rarity said. "I may have had to use some of the gems around town, but I think I have located our wayward Shark." "Ah got some saddle bags, and Rainbow," "Totally stopped an out of control weather machine," Dash said. "Ah, business as usual!" Twilight said with a smile,"Where is the shark?" "About two days away from here. About a little aways to the south," Rarity said. "So, what brings you here Trixie?" Applejack asked. The old zebra walked along Valtor, standing in front of the ancient cave, "So, you say that the horseshoes of Mimic are there on the shark?" "Yes, my dear friend," Valtor smiled. "Long have I desired to have those shoes, to feel them on my own hooves," he turned to look at Valtor, his staff glowing slightly. "But, why guide me to them? You must know of their power." "Oh, but my dear sir, it is as I said when my servant resurrected you. I seek only to have the greatest magicians of the world walk Harmonia once more," Valtor said bowing. "Is that why you are to leave me to kill this shark on my own? Because you care?" asked the shaman. "Oh no, I am just making sure not to take away the credit from you," Valtor said, bowing. "She was sent by Luna to help find my mom." Sunset said. "Wow! What did you find, Trixie?" Twilight asked. "Well, so far. Mostly nothing," Trixie said, looking beaten. "All she could find was that Sunshine was here looking into something called Street Rat's Legacy. Trixie has never hear of such a thing." Twilight blinked,"Street Rat's legacy?" She looked at Trixie,"I've read about Street Rat after our second encounter with Mirage," She said, emphasizing the name with a hint of venom,"Street Rat was a stallion in Saddle Arabia who's known to have fought Mirage, Mozenwrath, and many more threats." She put a hoof to her chin,"Though why would she look here?" "Mirage," Fluttershy said, looking down and away in a little bit of anger at the mention of her name. "Trixie has no idea, the other minotaurs just know she went to the library to check it. Maybe Street Rat came here once," Trixie said. "Wait, its a name!!!!?" Twilight looked at Trixie with a frown,"With names like Fancy Pants and Night Light in Equestria, you're shocked at Street Rat?" As the small band walked through the maze like streets, Trixie commented, "Well, yes! Trixie means, she thought there would be some different names here. Didn't know Sale arabians went by a similar naming conventions Twilight nodded,"It's been said that an early equine civilization went to Saddle Arabia in prehistoric times, which is why Saddle Arabians and Equestrians have similar features and naming styles. As a matter of fact..." Twilight pulled out a book on Saddle Arabia. "Oh Celestia, here we go!" Sunset put hooves over her ears > L is for Legend > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         Normally, the loudest noise that could be heard in Taurus would be the sound of hammers hitting anvils. This was not a normal day as it was graced by the presence of Twilight Sparkle, Equestria’s newest princess and avid bookworm. Sadly, she was in her lecturing mood, and this meant that her voice rang loud and clear with extensive knowledge that was able to drown out the sound of the foundries, “Saddle Arabians also had been known to-”         Trixie gulped, before covering her ears, "Anypony have a sound dampening spell?" "Don't worry, I got this," Will smirked. "Hey Twilight, I think there is a book burning going on in the library. We better hurry." Twilight stopped,"What!?" Sunset blinked,"Why didn't I think of that?" Will giggled as she flew up and ahead, "Helps to have a friend who is also a bookworm." "Be as it may, we better get over there and stop her going mad," Rarity chuckled. As the group of eight made their way to the library, they could hear Twilight trotting to the front desk. As she looked at the body of the minotaur, she raised her hoof and yelled "I, Princess Twilight Elizabeth Sparkle, demand that you stop this madness!" The minotaur, who was sitting at his desk, looked back at Twilight, "I am sorry, but I am trying to write a review to this one fanfic book about how horrible their story was before I even read it because it is in a genre I don't like!” Twilight blinked,"But I..." She turned to glare at Will,"You just don't want more knowledge..." She muttered as she walked off. Sunset walked up to the librarian,"Um, where do you keep your books on Street Rat?" "I hope she isn’t too upset," will said, a small bit of guilt coming over her. "Check legends and myths, down that way," the minotaur said, going back to his book “Thank you!" Sunset said, turning and heading for the section. As she walked, she smiled at Will,"Don't worry, if she can forgive me for all the things I did, then she won't hold a grudge for one little joke." Rainbow Dash grumbled, "Can't freaking believe that we're back here.” Twilight perused the shelves,"I know, isn't it amazing!?" She looked at a title,"Street Rat's Legacy." And pulled it out. The book read: "In the early times of Saddle arabia, much of it was under siege by cruel and heartless ponies. As opposed to the harmonious magic of Equestria, full of light, the land of Saddle Arabia was darkness. Many sorcerers, warlocks, demons, and monsters roamed the land. Causing devastation and murder in their wake. It was only through the arrival of the diamond in the rough, the one they called Street Rat. He bravely defeated the darkness that covered the land and brought the light to the world. Over his many battles and heroics, he met many foes, one was named Mirage." The picture showed an image of a cat-woman sitting on a throne, ponies screaming behind her. Twilight growled,"Must you continue to haunt me, monster?" She muttered to herself as she flipped the page. Fluttershy put a hoof on to Twilight's shoulder in understanding. "Another foe that he faced was name Mozenwrath, a powerful sorcerer. Not much was known about him, other than rumors. It is said that Street Rat left behind many treasures after his many adventures came to an end, including a object known only as Street Rat's Legacy, an unknown gem that he discovered on his last adventure. "Oh, that is a nice painting!" Mozenwrath said as Sunset looked over Twilight's shoulder at his painting. "It's a gem!" Twilight said,"Though why would Sunshine be looking for it? And where is it?" She flipped the page again. "The location of this gem has been lost in the sands of time, surrounding the lands of Saddle Arabia." "Sands of Time..." Twilight frowned,"That might mean that Sunshine could also be lost." Sunset sighed,"Does that mean our search is over?" Twilight shook her head,"No. We'll find a way to search the Sands of Time. But that'll be later." She got up,"We have a shark to find! Fluttershy, you're the animal expert, prepare yourself!" She said with a grin. "What?" Fluttershy squeaked. Twilight put a hoof on the pegasus' shoulder,"Fluttershy, I know you can do it. After all, one of your animal friends is a fierce bear! I think you can handle a shark." "Well, it is just a large shark. But I never talked to a land shark before," Fluttershy said, shaking her head a little. "And this is our chance to see if you can't talk to one!" Twilight beamed,"I mean, it's a new specimen! A life form we have never seen before!" Her eyes began to twinkle,"Oh, think of what we could learn!" Fluttershy hid back a little, too shy to admit that she was excited to see a land shark as well. Rainbow Dash just scoffed, "So, are we just gonna sit on our flanks for two day?" “Nope, we’re going to actively hunt for it,” Twilight smiled. “So, we are actually going to actively hunt a giant shark that can and will most likely kill us?” Sunset sighed, “You go on some weird adventures, Twilight.” Twilight did not hear Sunset’s remark as she turned to Applejack and Rainbow Dash, “Your job, and AJ's as well, is to actually round up the shark, so Fluttershy could talk to it." "Sweet!" Rainbow Dash said, high hoofing her friend. Twilight looked at Will,"Will, you and the others will join me in trying to surround and trap the shark." Will nodded, and Trixie looked at Twilight, "And Trixie assumes you have a plan for trapping it?" Twilight nodded,"Since it's a treasure shark, we might be able to bait it out when we get near it with some treasure of our own. If we hold it up in the air and watch as it soars overhead, Trixie, you and I will use our magic to hold in place." "We could us some gems from the state treasury room. I don't' think Minos will mind," Will said. "Well, what are we waiting for, let gt this plan on the way," shouted Rainbow Dash as she began to fly out of the room. "Of course he won't mind, I mean, we do plan on giving the gems back." Twilight frowned as she watched Rainbow leave,"I really wish she'd stop running off in a hurry." "Don't worry Twi, give her a few moments and she'll realize that she has no idea where she's going," Applejack said, putting a hoof on to Twilight's shoulder. Twilight chuckled,"Yeah, that does give me comfort." She walked out of the library. "Though I wonder how long it will take?" Sunset asked. Rainbow Dash flew back, carrying the gems but a blush on her face as she rubbed the back of her head, “So... where are we headed?” this caused the girls to laugh in return. The mares walked to the north of the city, where the vast plain of the rest of Tauros spread out before them. For countless miles, it was like somepony had painted the very land green, with the afternoon sun over head giving the land a soft golden hue. The wind blew softly through the green grass to make it look like wave of the ocean. Rarity looked on in awe, "My word, its so lovely." "So... beautiful." Sunset said in awe. "Wow." Twilight could only say. "Amazing," Will said. "We got to find the shark, in all of this?" Rainbow Dash asked. Rarity smiled, "Well, I can use my gem detecting spell. Now that I know the area, I should be able to find his general location." "Yeah, but even so, it could take us weeks we don't' have," Applejack said. At the mention of this, a dust cloud came up from the distance. Twilight's eye's widened,"Or we could find it now!" She shouted, pointing towards the dust cloud. Rarity arched an eyebrow at this, "Wait, I don't feel any gems." Before Rarity could say anything more, the dust cloud passed them by and suddenly stopped. Once the dust cleared, a small group of ostrach creatures appeared before them. Feathers slicked down, colored blue with white tips that ended in a swirl, and with long white legs that ended in red claws. Their combs were all spiked, with little white tufts on their breasts. Rainbow Dash stared at the birds in awe, "Twilight... are those, Speeders?" A Speeder turned to Dash,"Ya got that right! We're the fastest things around!" His shiny necklace bounced as he nodded. "That is so COOL!" Rainbow Dash said, but then smirked, "But ya got it wrong, I'm the fastest thing." "Pardon me, sir, but what is that lovely necklace you're wearing?" ased Rarity. "Oh, this? This is my shark bait!" He leaned in to Rarity,"I heard there's a treasure shark in the area, and I want to catch it!" He turned to Dash,"Oh, really, you’re the fastest?" A confident smirk on her face, the cyan mare leaned up, "Yeah." "Want to test that theory?" The Speeder went up in her face, a smirk slowly crawling up his face. "Heck yeah!" Rainbow Dash said, pushing her face against his. "Um, excuse me, my. Speeder?" Fluttershy asked, walking up to one particular speeder. "But, um, why are you looking for the shark?" Another speeder smiled at Fluttershy,"Simple, the thing's dangerous, and we love danger, right boys!?" The other speeders nodded vigorously. "You won't hurt him when you catch him will you? He doesn't seem that dangerous," Fluttershy said, looking at the Speeders. "Flutters, I think they will. I mean look at them, they look fast and unbelievably badass," Rainbow Dash said, looking at the head speeder. "What's that insinga on your wings, the RR?" Applejack asked. "Oh, not too badly, we'll just catch him just to say we did!" The lead one smiled,"And this symbol means that we are the Riders of Ramon!" They all said in unison. ‘ "Oh, that' good," Fluttershy smiled. "My dear gentlebirds, me and my companions are looking for the same shark. Perhaps you could help us?" Rarity asked. The speeders looked at each other, then back to Rarity,"First, she must race me!" The leader pointed to Dash. Will looked shocked, "But do we-" "All right, bring it on!" Rainbow Dash smirked as she landed in a crouch. ".- ave that kind of time." As Will facehoofed, Sunset put  hoof on to her back, “Forget it she’s gone.” The lead speeder smirked,"Alrighty then!" He crouched and wavered,"We go to that mountain and back, ready?" "Ready," Rainbow Dash said, crouching with the ostrach, spreading her wings. "Go!" He sped off towards the mountain. Smiling, Rainbow Dash took off, flapping her wings as hard as she could. For the briefest of seconds, it looked like they were on equal footing when it came to speed, but the Speeder quickly pulled ahead. The cyan pegasus's eyes opened wide in shock at the bird, and then narrowed her brown in determination as she began to flap her wings with stronger and harder flaps. The rider turned his head, and smiled warmly as he watched the rainbow pegasus catching up. If one could look, one could almost say that he wa impressed with the speed that she was putting on. Deciding to amp up his speed, he ran just a little faster at that point, his legs running so fast that they resembled a figure 8. Being a little shocked at the extended run that the speeder took, Rainbow Dash reared up and began to fly just as hard, pushing herself to the limits. she smiled as she saw the ostrich coming into view and their halfway mark with him. Grinning she flew a little faster, the anger and rage that she had been feeling the past few days vanishing for a moment as she flew hard to catch up with the blue ostrich. As they reached the mountain, the two gave each other a look that said that neither was at their limit, and turned and began to run even faster. Sunset gasped,"That speed..." "That's our boss. Samard never gives up!" One of the ostriches said. "Neither does Rainbow Dash." Twilight said, with a confident smile. Rainbow Dash looked at the rival ostrich, a look on her fact that said that she wasn't even done yet. Looking ahead, she put her head into the mindset of what the others needed this win for, what they needed her for. With that in mind, a cone began to appear in front of Rainbow Dash. The ostrich opened his eyes in shock and then pointed forward, a similar cone forming over his beak. "Here it comes!" Pinkie jumped in excitement Will looked at Pinkie Pie with a raised brow, “What is?” “Watch,” Applejack said. The intense speed flrw the wind harshly against both of their feathers and fur, causing small little ripples in their bodies as they reached the sound barrier. With a smirk from both of their eyes, the both shattered the barrier with a large boom. Sunset gasped as the boom happened,"Holy Celestia!" With a laugh coming from both runners, they pushed themselves through the speed barriers as they became blurs to the viewpoint from the cheerleaders. Rainbow's own prismatic orb spreading out from her boom Within a few scant seconds, they arrived at the finished line, Dash panting as the sweat rolled down her face, "HA!" Samard collapsed,"You... win." The others gasped, and then one of them went to Rainbow Dash,"My friend, since you have beaten our leader, you will now be given a great honor!" He used his wing to hand her a RR badge,"You are now a Rider of Ramon!" "SUHWEEET!!" Shouted Rainbow Dash as she pumped the air. Samard panted as one of his men picked him up,"Alright, we'll help you." He looked to the right,"I do believe that the shark was seen that way." The girls nodded, each getting on top of the ostriches, "Oh, this is going to be fun!" Pinkie exclaimed. "Thank you so much," Fluttershy said. "No problem, little one!" The ostrich said to Fluttershy as they sped off.         On they sped through the majestic plains of the minotaur homeland, making the ground past beneath them in a blur. Trailing behind the speedsters was a giant and powerful dust cloud, making them look for all who saw them to be nothing more than a moving cloud of smoke. For the riders that rested on the backs of the fast moving ostriches, their world became a menagerie of color and loud whipping air. Intermingled with the fast moving speeders were the various yells from the nine riders  "EEEEEEEEEE!" Rarity screamed as they sped through the wide open plains. "YEhaaaaaa!!!" Yelled Applejack. "Wheeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeee!!!!" Pinkie squealed. Will smiled with excitement, "WHAOOOOOOOOOOOOO!!!!!" Rainbow Dash stuck her hoof out in excitement, "YES!!" "Twilight you and your bright ideas!!!" Trixie shouted, staring at Twilight. "Yeah, why did I end up going through this three times in one daaaay!" Twilight screamed. "Because it's awesome!!!" Rainbow Dash replied. "You know, I rather liked living!" Sunset screamed. On the side of the group, Pinkie Pie began to notice the beat of the steps of the birds. Slowly, she began to bop her head to the tune of the slow and steady rhythm, allowing the continuous thumping to give her inspiration. The wind and the breeze seemed to add to the song as she began to smile. Pinkie Pie giggled, moving side to side on the neck of the ostrach, " Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Rawhide! Rollin' Rollin' Rollin' Though the plains are biggen Keep them ponies rollin', Rawhide Applejack laughed loudly and joined in, bringing out her banjo to join in. Rain and wind and weather Hell bent for armor Wishin' my sis was by my side Rarity shook her head, taking a deep sigh and looking ahead as she tried to fix her mane All the things I'm missin' clean seats, soft bumps, and soft cruisin Are waiting at the end of my ride Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy sat side by side and sang in unison Move 'em on (Head em' up!) Head em' up (Move 'em on!) Move 'em on (Head em' up!) Rawhide! Sunset and Twilight sat side by side ad smiled at each other, letting their voices into the beat Cut 'em out (Ride 'em in!) Ride 'em in (Cut em' out!) Cut 'em out Ride 'em in, Rawhide! The riders chuckled as they joined in, the song getting them pumped Keep movin', movin', movin' Though they're being bumpin' Keep them ponies movin', Rawhide Trixie shook her head as she tried to keep her hat straight on Don't try to understand 'us Just keep ridin on on on Racing on through day and night Will smiled, taking a deep breath to join with the others My heart's calculatin' My friends will be waitin' Be waitin' at the end of my ride Together, the entire group sung together. Move 'em on (Head em' up!) Head em' up (Move 'em on!) Move 'em on (Head em' up!) Rawhide! Cut em' out (Ride 'em in!) Ride 'em in (Cut em' out!) Cut em' out Ride 'em in, Rawhide! Yah! (whip crack)         Off into the distant plains did the riders ride, a journey that could’ve taken days vanished in a few seconds. Through the many grassy plains and small hills the travelers made their way. Before long, they had reached a part where their gems began to glow softly. For a few moments, the area was deathly quiet, until the ground began to shake hard beneath them. Twilight grabbed on to one of the ostriches,"Whoa!" The ground parted as the Shark breached land, letting out a howl of pain and agony, "Wait!" yelled Fluttershy as she watched the shark appear. Looking closely, she could see red fluid leaking out of the shark's body as it laid on its side, "no," she whispered a she flew to the fallen beast, its breathing shallow. Her blue eyes tinged with a look of worry for the poor animal, she began to hover around the creatures bleeding body, looking over each wound. As the shark moaned and gasped in pain, the blood seemed to drip faster and a new wound seemed to open up. Twilight gasped as she ran towards it, taking a quick look at Fluttershy,"Is there anything we can do for it?" Samard walked up to the shark,"Such a shame, we didn't want it dead..." "I’m going to try and save it." Fluttershy looked at Rarity, "Rarity, if you please!" Without a second word, the white unicorn lifted some of the clothes she bought and handed it to Fluttershy, winching when the pegasus and Dash began to tear it up, "Fluttershy, I don't think you can-" "NO!" she softly shouted, putting up as much as she could, "Twilight, Sunset, Trixie, could you please hold these gauzes to the wounds. Riders, could you help?" she then heard the growling, "No, please stop talking like that sir. I am going to save you..." she looked to her wings, "Maybe..." The unicorns used their magic to push gauzes in, while the riders did the same. Rarity continued to offer up what pieces of cloth and clothes that she could to the other ponies for the gauze. As the ponies began to patch up the wounds, Fluttershy looked at Mediena, and flew to them, putting them on her wings. She tried to flap them, using them to see if they had a healing spell," Come on, please... work, let me save him." the shark moaned in pain. "No, I don't care who did this, you are going to be alive, then you can tell us all you want," Fluttershy said, tears flowing down her face as Rainbow Dash flew up and put a hoof to her back. "Flutters-" "No..."  Fluttershy denied, shaking her head as tears came to her eyes. Pinkie looked down, wanting to go up to Fluttershy. As Fluttershy continued to plead with the wings and cry, the others could only watch on in helplessness as Fluttershy continued to push herself to the limit. As if they could hear her, the wings began to glow softly, pulsating with a little pink light. With each beat of her wings, the pink blades began to send out small little mites of yellow dust that covered the large beast. The wind from the wings flowed over the shark, causing it to glow a similar yellow to Fluttershy. the wounds on the monster shark began to slowly dissipate, the blood disappearing. Twilight sighed in relief,"Good. Does it know who did this?" She looked at Fluttershy. Fluttershy landed and began to talk to the shark, "Ok, I see, yes. I understand." she then turned to the others, "It was attacked by a zebra shaman who wanted to grab the magic horseshoes. He but up a fight, but he lost. The shaman apparently wanted to prove his power so he tried to kill him. "How horrid," Rarity said. "The poor thing..." Twilight said. "Zebra shaman...? Ask about the horseshoes." Mozenwrath said. "Of course you would only care about those." Sunset growled. "Think: If the zebra has those..." Sunset gasped,"Did he manage to take them?" The shark growled weakly,"Yes, he did." Fluttershy nodded. Rainbow Dash punched her hooves together, "Ok, who's up for a shaman whoopin!?" Samard nodded,"Does he know where this zebra was last spotted?" "In a cave, about the west of here," she looked to the shark, "Um your welcome... oh no, you don't need to do that!" "What did he say?" asked Rainbow Dash. "He said in gratitude, he is going to name his first ten children after me," Fluttershy blushed. Twilight shook her head,"Yeah, him and about half of Equestria wants to do that." She muttered as she turned west. Rainbow Dash chuckled, "And how many wants to name them after you? Twilight frowned,"Too many." Will slowly got onto her rider and her mind was flooded with another memory. "This is will, irma, Taranee, Cornelia, and Hay Lin," Elyon smile as  she took them to to a day care. "Uh, hi?" Will said. The blonde shook her head, "I wasn't talking to you, I was introducing the kids to you,. The people of Meridian hae taen to naming some of of their kids after you." "Awww, how adorable," Hay Lin said, watching as the five kids played together. "So wich one is Cornelia?" asked Irma. "The boy," Eleyon said, much to the dismay of her unicorn friend. "His twin sister is Irma." the three other girls began to laugh at this as Irma and Cornelia shook their heads "Right. C'mon, Riders, Let's ride!" Samard yelled as they sped north. Valtor smiled as he stepped away from the cave, "And here they come. Have fun with them, my dear friend." "You are not going to help me stop and kill them? Doesn't one of them have a Heart," asked the Shaman. "Why yes, one does. But, you see my problem is that a heart has to be given to me. I think I will wait until you have her begging for mercy before I take the heart," the black dragon smiled as he walked away. "You are just going to await the outcome, aren't you, my lord?" asked Servant. "Yes. Either he will kill them and leave me with the Heart of Kandrakar or they will kill him and opened the next gate,” Valtor said as he walked through the portal. The ostriches stopped in front of the cave, allowing the others to climb off. "Be careful, if he's wielding the horseshoes, who knows what he could do..." Twilight said. "He could become like a god." Sunset said. "Please don't let him say that..." Twilight muttered,"I've had enough of villains saying that!" The shaman chuckled as he stepped out of the cave, "Fine then, I will dispense with the cliche, and just make a simple demand. The unicorns and alicorn, hand them over." he held out his hoof and flashed a toothy grin. "Why?" Rainbow Dash asked. "Did you know I have\ a way to absorb an unicorn's magic?" asked the shaman. Twilight gasped,"You can steal magic!?" "And what makes you think we're just going to walk over there?" Sunset said, emphasizing herself with a stomp. "Why yes, I can," the zebra chuckled. "Its a simple recipe. I just cut the alicorn off, grind it down into a fine powder, and rub it along my staff. It allows me to absorb an unicorn's magic. Though, unlike some, it doesn't allow me to absorb cutie mark talent as well." "What kind of monster could do that?" Applejack asked. "Pray you don't meet him," growled the zebra. "And you are going to come here, because I will make you." he then lifted a hoof to cause the ground to shake, the hind hoof glowed and made him float. Twilight stepped back, her horn glowing,"We're not giving in!" Sunset looked up,"Any plans on how to get those things off?" Trixie looked up, watching as the clouds over head began to merge and create a storm, "We need to trick him somehow." Rainbow Dash moved to the side from a lighting bolt, and then swerved to move from a jutting piece of ground, "Open to ideas!" "If this is what he's like with the horseshoes, Ah hate to see what he's like with your power Twi," Applejack said, kicking a stone block. Twilight put up a shield to block another bolt,"I don't even want to think about it!" "Any ideas, Mozy?" Sunset said as she blasted a beam at the zebra. "Sorry, I've only heard of this guy, I've never faced him." Mozenwrath said. The zebra stood to the side, barely dodging the bolt, "Hmmm, now, let’s see what other spell I can conjure." his staff then glowed, making the ground slowly rise and causing some skeletons to rise. "Did you know there was an unicorn who could manipulate the bones of  a pony body?" "Oh, buck me!" Applejack said as they were getting surrounded. Trixie looked to the cave where he stood and then back to Sunset,"Sunset, how is your precision?" she then looked to Fluttershy. Sunset looked,"Pretty good, why?" “Just trust the Great and Powerful one,” Trixie winked as she began to hear the sounds of mud being moved. From behind Rarity, a muddy hand touched her shoulder, "Ugh! MUD! " she shrieked as she cut into it with vorpal. Turning to her let, she jumped at the sight of three mud monsters rising from the ground. Soon they became surrounded by skeletons and mud men.The shaman then smiled  as his horseshoe glowed bright, summoning a large storm cloud to attack the group. As the storm began to rage, Rainbow Dash and Will began to handle the clouds.  As the number of monsters and obstacles rose, Trixie looked to Twilight, "Trixie apologies, but she is going have to borrow Fluttershy." Twilight looked at Trixie, before slicing a mud skeleton in half,"What are you doing?" "Just trust her," Trixie then whispered to Fluttershy her plan. Hearing this, the yellow pegasus squeaked, "B-but I." "Do it," Trixie said, Looking to sunset," when she goes invisible, levitate her behind the shaman.” Sunset nodded,"Okay!" Trixie turned to look at Fluttershy and pointed her horn at the buttery yellow pegasus. Igniting her horn with a faint blue aura, she began to envelop Fluttershy with her illusion magic. With a soft shimmer, Fluttershy vanished in an instant, leaving behind only a faint shimmer of where she was. Sunset then nodded, igniting her horn and carefully lifted up Fluttershy into the air, “She can fly you know,” Sunset commented as she lifted her up.         “Yes, she can. But, she won't because she is afraid to and her skill is lacking. Besides do you want to trust the suicidal one to this trick?” Trixie asked, much to Sunset’s giggling. Fluttershy landed behind the Shaman, watching him cast his spells, "Oh, I do hope that you don-" she squeaked as the shaman turned to face her. "Nice try trickster. But It takes more than that to fool me," he sneered as he used his hoof to enlarge the storm and then generated a rock slide to block the entrance. "Princess, I hope you have fun with my pet. Don't worry, I'll kill Kindness slowly." the ground beneath the bearers and the riders began to shake as a mud giant slowly rose from the ground, his fierce eyes on the young ponies. "FLUTTERSHY!" Rainbow Dash screamed as she punched the rock wall. Twilight turned to the rock slide, and then to the mud giant, a look of fear mixed with leadership in her eyes, "Applejack, you and I go help Rainbow get to Fluttershy, everypony else, try to handle the giant-" "We, will handle the giant!" one rider said,"You all focus on saving your friend!" The ostriches squawked as they charged the giant. Twilight nodded as she turned and used her magic to tear open the rocks. Applejack and Pinkie Pie leapt onto the slide and began to punch at the rocks alongside Rainbow Dash. the three unicorns began to pull the rocks away while Will began to blast  holes with her lighting power. As each mare struggled to get through the rocks, the shaman looked to Fluttershy, magic flowing off  of his staff as he stared at her cruelly "You know, I was always curious as to Kindness's point. I mean I have heard the legends of the bearers, but Kindness always seemed to most pathetic. Loyalty inspires, Generosity can give for the greater good, Honesty earns trust, heck, even Laughter brings out hope. But Kindness," he blasted near Fluttershy. "Kindness is weak." Fluttershy crawled out of the way of the next shot, trying to find a way to hide until her friends get there. her hoof then hits some bones, "These..." "The inhabitants, a small tribe of rodents who betrayed me some years ago," the shaman chuckled. "You killed them," she whispered, remembering how this was the same shaman who almost killed the shark. "Why? Why did you do this?" "Because I require power, and power is what give me meaning. Kindness such as you, would never understand," The Shaman smirked as he fired a fire blast, that deflected off of Mediena. "I know, I am weak, I know I am afraid of so much, but," Fluttershy looked at the shaman,trembling. "I do understand monsters like you."  Twilight growled as she heard flames,"Oh no you don't!" She yelled, her horn gripping every rock she could find and pulling them all out. “Please don’t die! I won’t forgive myself if you die,” Trixie growled as she forced another rock off. Sunset grunted,"Come on, I don't want to lose you, Fluttershy!" She pulled more rocks out as the sounds of fighting became louder behind them. Inside the cave, Fluttershy's shield held strong, before she used the wings to cut off the blast "Monsters like you think you can hurt so many because you have the power. But, this isn't power, you are just weak!" "And you are any better? What can you do little one?" The Shaman asked. as he prepared to fire another blast. As the fire blast launched from the shaman’s staff "Beat you without having to hit you," Fluttershy whispered as she flew up to the rocks above on the ceiling. the Shaman threw a wind cutter at her, causing one of the rocks to fall, and Fluttershy to dodge. Getting on the ground, the yellow pegasus doge each shot rolling and fluttering. The shaman took a menacing step forward, causing the ground rumble beneath her and tripping her to the ground.         Before she could take to the air, the zebra leaped at her, slamming his staff hard onto her back. As she yelped in pain, the zebra began to launch another strike at her prone form. Using an instinct that she never knew she had, Fluttershy lifted up her wing blade to block the hit. Moving as fast as she could, Fluttershy used her wings to block several of the shots from the zebra. There was a scowl on his face as he backed her against the wall, one of annoyance and rage. Leaping back, he fired a fireblast at the pegasus. To his shock,Fluttershy flew out of the way of the blast.         With a cruel smile, he activated the weather shoe, causing a small tornado to begin bellowing in the cave. This caused Fluttershy to tumble and buffer against the harsh winds. Rocks everywhere began to cut into her body.Her ears twitched, and she managed to correct herself to handle the harsh tornado. Finding a safe spot, she waited until he was done. Looking behind her, she flew out of the way of his next strike. She barely managed to dodge the last hit as she neared a small mound. Looking at it, she sighed and then looked back at the shaman. "You never knew what animals live here, do you?" Fluttershy asked. She began to walk slowly towards the the shaman. "What do you mean, there are...AHHHHH!" he screamed as he began to feel bites along his his fur. Looking along his body, he saw thousands of little dots running along his body. Another scream erupted from his throat as he saw a green snake bite on his hind leg. "Fire ants and snakes," Fluttershy said calmly a she walked to the shaman. Bats began to fly around her, helping to remove some of the dust and lick her wounds, “Bats too. They helped me with your tornado.”          The shaman swiped at Fluttershy with his staff, Fluttershy just barely dodging each hit. On shot managed to cut into her left shoulder and another managed to hit her in the legs. Wincing she blocked the next shot with her wing blade, "You have been a very VERY NAUGHTY MAGE! You killed without needing too and you hurt too many others, not you will go and think about what you did!" she said, her eyes bearing down on him. Her stare seemed to burrow into his very soul, and he began to back up. He found himself unable to move, unable to blink as he continued to stare into Fluttershy’s harsh stare. Trebling, the stallion let out a blood curdling yell. This caused the magic spells to fade away and the stones to disappear. Sunset blinked at the sound,"What was that? It sounded like a little kid crying for his mom." Twilight smirked,"Maybe Fluttershy used her secret weapon." She smiled as she watched the rocks fell apart,  and saw the Shaman sat in the corner, crying like a small child. Next to him sat Fluttershy with the four horseshoes and patting him comfortably with a gentle hoof. When she saw the others, she quickly flew over to her friends, "Oh, hello girls ." Will stood there in shock, "How, I mean, I knew what she could do with animals, but... “ Sunset could only gawk as the bearers of the elements ran in for a hug with the pegasus. Trixie closed the unicorn’s mouth and snickered, “You should see it when she’s trying.” Twilight gave Fluttershy a hug,"That's Fluttershy for you!" Then she screamed as she felt something crawl by her. She hid behind Fluttershy as the snake went back to it’s home. Samard went towards them,"Indeed, I have heard legends of the Stare before, but I never thought I'd see somepony who uses it!" Fluttershy blushed and hid behind her mane, “Oh no, it was nothing really.” "Nothing!?" Samard picked Fluttershy up,"What you can do is magnificent! Do not be so humble!" Twilight walked over to Yhe Shaman,"Thank you for the horseshoes!" She said as she used her magic to grab the horseshoes from Fluttershy. Then a flash came over her. Once again she was in the body of the alicorn known as Friendship. She looked upon a small unicorn,"Fizzy..." Twilight said as Honesty spoke up. “What are you doing here, young one?" Fizzy gulped a little nervously at seeing the sight of the six alicorns, "Um, well, you see. Gee what was I here for?" "A little light headed isn’t she?" asked Loyalty Twilight looked at Loyalty,"Sounds like a certain Queen," She looked at Laughter. She turned to Fizzy,"It has to have something to do with your friend Mimic." Fizzy laughed, "Oh yeah, silly me. I can be so silly sometimes. Mimic was telling me how it feels like the Heart of Worlds is in danger. You know, ever since Mozenwrath was defeated and Street Rat disappeared, it just seems like everything has gotten a, little worse," Fizzy said, looking down. Kindness walked over to Fizzy,"How so, little one?" She draped a wing over the unicorn. Fizzy looked down, "Well, there has been some of my friends disappearing lately, and I've heard that Majesty has been feeling weaker lately, but... Ok, its Mimic!" a few tears began to slide down Fizzy's face, "I think she's dying!" "Oh my!" Kindness exclaimed,"You poor thing." "Yes, we've seen Mimic." Twilight said,"But Majesty?" "Perhaps there is something the elder Queen didn't tell us." Honesty said,"We should talk to her." "Later, but first," Twilight looked down at Fizzy,"Why do you think coming here will help?" "I thought you six coming here might have a way to save Mimic. Please, she's one of my best friends and I would do anything to keep her safe!" the green unicorn cried into Kindness's wing. "Hmm," Twilight thought for a moment,"I think I have an idea, but you'll have to come with us. Loyalty, get Speed to send a message to Majesty's little sister, Princess Terra.” “Where are we going?” Fizzy asked "In the land of the minotaurs, the God of the Forge awaits." Twilight said,"He should be able to give your friend a set of magical items to sustain her magic." "However, Buddy may also need your help before doing so." Honesty said,"His land is dying you see." "Dying? from what?" asekd Fizzy. "Well, there is a bit of a blight on the crops in their land, and they require someone to help them with it. Plus, their king is... really too serious and really needs a good laugh." Laughter said with a giggle as Twilight began to fade away back into the present. As the dream faded, Fuzzy smiled and ran off. "Is it wrong that I want to put her in silly poses when she does that?" Samard asked as Twilight slowly came back to consciousness. Twilight's eyes fluttered,"Please don't do that." Pinkie Pie was already near Twilight with a mischievous grin on her face, "Awwwwww." Twilight shot a look at Pinkie before looking at the others,"I had another one of those visions, with Fizzy this time." "What was it about?" Rarity asked. "Visions?" asked Trixie, looking at the others. "Yeah, the last time we did this, Twilight got all of these crazy visions about all of us as alicorns and seeing some old dead mare," Rainbow Dash said. "Fizzy was talking about how Mimic was sick and after Mozenwrath's defeat, everything seemed to go downhill, like how Queen Majesty's health began to fail." Twilight sai "Queen Majesty?" Dash asked. "Isn't that just repeating yourself?" Trixie asked. Twilight frowned,"Hey, I don't come up with these names!" "Queen Majesty? Oh, she really got on my nerves." Mozenwrath growled. Applejack looked at Twilight, "So how was everything going downhill?" "Well, from what I've heard, some of her friends went missing, Mimic went sick, and of course you know about Majesty." Twilight said. The girls listened, Dash cocked her head to the sie, "So, did that vision of yous said where the gate is?" "Gate!?" Samard exclaimed,"ARe you speaking of the gate of Fizzy!? Why we know where that is! 'tis in the land of the Flutter Ponies! Dash smiled, "So does that mean..." "Oh dear sweet Celestia, not another ride," Trixie moaned. Fluttershy then looked at the zebra, "But wait, what are we going to do about him?" One of the speeders grabbed him,"Oh, we shall take him to our city to put him on trial!" Samard grinned,"Hop on! We shall take you as far as the Flutter Ponies' forest!" "Whoo hoo!" Pinkie cheered and leapt on top. Fluttershy painted the zebra on the foreleg in comfort and got on to her Speeder. Trixie shot Sunset a look that said, 'see you in the next life'. Sunset whimpered,"Here we go agaiiiiiiiiinnnn!" She shouted as the speeders sped off towards a large forest. Within moments, the nine ponies arrived at the forest. After getting off, Fluttershy gave hers a hug, "Thank you for taking us here and putting the shaman on trial. Excuse me, mr. Shaman, just what was your name?" "Alex Large." the shaman said, as the Riders of Ramon left. Applejack looked into the forest, "I wonder if the Flutter Ponies are still here." "Oh, I hope we can meet some!" Pinkie exclaimed. Then she felt her tail twitching. "I hope so too, though I don't think they're going to make it easy. Flutter Ponies are rare to find." Twilight said, then the sound of screaming could be heard as a pony with gossamer wings landed on Twilight. “Twilight!" the girls screamed. Applejack and Rainbow Dash pulled the pony with gossamer wings off of their friend. Pinkie Pie skipped over to the alicorn, "Are you alright Twi-Twi?" Will looked at the pony as Fluttershy tended to her, "Who are you miss?" Twilight got up,"You know, I'm starting to think my head is a magnet for these situations!" Trixie chuckled, "Well, it is fun." The pink coated pony shook her head, and then looked at Fluttershy,"Oh, my gosh!" She fluttered over to her,"A pegasus! A real live pegasus! I'd never thought I'd see one!" The white maned flutter pony stopped herself,"Oh wait, I forgot! My name is Lily!" "Um...Fluttershy," squeaked the pegasus below a normal sound level. "WOW A REAL LIVE FLUTTERPONY! I DIDN'T THINK WE WOULD SEE ONE! I Mean I ALWAYS HOPE THAT I COULD MEET ONE TODAY! OH MY GOSH I HAVE TO INTRODUCE YOU, MY NAME IS PINKIE PIE! THAT'S RAINBOW DASH, FLUTTERSHY, RARITY, APPLEJACK, TRIXIE, WILL, SUNSET SHIMMER, AND THE PONY YOU KOED IS PRINCESS TWILIGHT SPARKLE!!!" Pinkie Pie said, bouncing like a maniac. "Oh wow! An earth pony! two of them! And another pegasus! two unicorns! and an alicorn! This is so amazing! I can't believe I got to meet all of you, oh I have to get you to meet my friends-" "Oh Celestia there are two of them." Sunset muttered. Will whispered to Sunset, "Remind me to show you Hay Lin." "This is nothing, we had 20 of them once," Rainbow Dash said. "Oh, you should. Come on let's go! I really love meeting new ponies!" Pinkie said, smiling. "Okay!" Lily turned to the others,"But you're going to have to be careful, they don't like outsiders very much." Fluttershy gulped, "How much don't they like outsiders." "Well, it's kind of hard to get them talking you see," She looked at all of them,"An outsider kind of summoned Erebus on them, and they've been a little miffed at that ever since. Queen Rosedust has said that only one outsider has ever been allowed in our kingdom: Fizzy. If they saw an outsider, they would looked at them with scrutiny." "Why did this outsider summon Erebus on those guys?" Applejack asked. "An why only Fizzy?" asked Will. "Well, I'm not sure of the details, I kinda fell asleep through those parts, but I do know that Fizzy was considered one of the most diplomatic mares in existence! I think she may have been brought with the Queens of Harmony's blessing..." Lily said with a thoughtful look. Dash looked at Pinkie and then to Lily, "Diplomatic, really?" Fluttershy saw something look at her from the corner of her eye. With a little eep she backed up to Twilight. Twilight blinked as Fluttershy bumped into her,"Something wrong?" “I thought a I saw," she squeaked when she saw a flash of white again. Tuning he watched as a little white creature walked before her, turned its head to the side, and then pulled back with a rattling noise. Twilight heard the rattling noise and blinked when she saw the thing. Lily nodded vigorously"Uh-Huh!" She turned to the thing,"Oh, a Kodama!" "Hello, Mr. Kodama," Fluttershy said, watching as the little guy disappeared. "They are kind of cute." Sunset said. "If we're lucky, we might meet the Great Forest Spirit on our way!" Lily said. “Great Forest Spirit?” Rainbow Dash asked, rolling her eyes at the sight of something cute. "Oh, it's this really big guy that watches over and protects us! It's said that when he gets mad, he becomes a horrible monster!" Lily said with a smile. "What?" squeaked Fluttershy. "Just making sure, but this great feller aint one to get easily mad, is he?" asked Applejack walking next to Lilly. "Oh of course not! Unless you do something really bad of course." Lily said with a smile. Rainbow Dash immediately shot a quick look at Sunset. Will nodded in understanding. As they walked, Fluttershy noticed a large beast with giant antlers, who looked at her and deep into her eyes. Softly, he smiled before fading away into the forest. They soon neared a large clearing. "Halt!" A flutter pony in guard armor flew down in front of them,"Go no further." Pinkie skipped to the head ot the group, "Hey there! why did you stop us?" "Excuse my friend, dear Flutter Pony," Rarity said with a bow, "but we are traveling on a mission to meet the Flutter Ponies, is this their kingdom?" "You can't meet our race." The guard hissed, then turned to Lily,"What were you thinking bringing outsiders here?" "Well, sis, they are nice ponies!" Lily said,"What harm could they do?" "Considering our company, plenty," grumbled Rainbow Dash beneath her breath. "I keep telling you, no outsiders!" The guard said to Lily. "Aw come on! These ponies really need to go in," She leaned in with a pout,"Please let them in?" "Uh oh, its the little sister pout," Pinkie said. "No big sib can resist that!” The guard began to fidget,"Oh, the boss is going to have my hide..." She shook her head,"Fine, just stop giving me that look!" "Told ya,"Pinkie giggled. Applejack shook her head, "That would've never worked on Big M is for magificence > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- “Nobody?” What’s a nobody?” asked Sunset to herself as Mozenwrath’s words played in her head. "Princess?" Rainbow Dash asked, looking at the hooded version of Celestia with a look of confusion on her face. "Sugarcube? Something wrong? You look nervous," Applejack asked, looking at Sunset. "N-nothing," Sunset shook her head,"It's just a little weird seeing her like this..." "Queen, actually, and Celestia was a name I had long left." The cloaked pony said. Trixie looked at the cloaked pony with an eyebrow, "What do you mean?" "I am no longer Celestia, I am Iaxselect." The pony said with a bow,"Tell me, what are you doing here?" "We're looking for where the heart is so we can fix whatever this is," Rainbow Dash said. As the two ponies continued their talk, Pinkie Pie began to feel her knee pinch, "Pinchy knee, pinchy knee," squeaked Pinkie Pie, beginning to look around her. Sunset turned to Pinkie,"Pinchy knee?" "Something scary about to happen," Pinkie whispered. "Something scary?" Sunset asked, then she gulped as she looked at the cloaked version of her mother and mentor. "The heart!?" Iaxselect had a smile on her muzzle as she came closer,"I think I may be able to help you with that." She pointed to the white fortress behind her,"Go to that fortress, and find the pedestals of the six. The six chosen must stand on them, and thus will allow a compass to appear to aid you." She looked at Rainbow,"There is no fixing this world, though, I'm afraid. It will never be completed." "What do you mean, never completed?" Rarity asked. Iaxselect turned and walked to one of the travelling shadows, and placed a hoof through it,"This world is a place where stories go to die, a place where ideas go incomplete. This are where ponies without hearts or souls go, because there is nowhere else for them." "How is that, possible," Applejack said, looking at one of the shadows. "How... sad," Fluttershy said, feeling a pang in her heart for the ponies. "Is there anything we can do ?" "I'm afraid there is nothing you can do to give them hearts." Iaxselect said,"The multiverse is a wondrous thing, filled with mysteries you cannot comprehend. I must take my leave now." She disappeared in a portal of darkness. At that moment, ghostly images of ponies began to surround the group, walking alongside them. Some of them held their heads in sorrow, while others smiled. "Told you, something scary," Pinkie said, looking at the ghosts. "Ok, yeah, that was just creepy," Rainbow Dash said, looking back up to the white castle. "So, guess we're heading up there?" Twilight nodded,"We have nowhere else to go," She looked around, noticing that every other direction lead to stars,"Come on." She walked, and then gasped as she walked through a shadow. "I can't wait to meet Bon-Bon..." A voice rang out. "Lyra?" Trixie asked as she stuck out her hoof to feel the spirit. "I hope Trixie is all right" "Raindrops?" Trixie ase, pulling back. Rainbow Dash backed into one, "Wha-" "So we just use these little pokemon guys and then we can get you home Flutters," Dash said. "Was that me?" Another voice rang out, "Rainbow Dash, my little girl" Celestia's voice spoke as Dash bumped into another spirit. Sunset looked around them as she touched another,"Come on, Sunset, you can't get anything done by being lazy..." Sunset blinked when she heard Twilight's voice. "Twilight?" Applejack asked and then shuddered as she felt one walk by her. "Applejack, dear, you need to be warm." "Mom..." Applejack whispered "Rarity, can me and big sis Rainbow Dash go and play?" "Pinkie, you are a demon" Rarity was a aghast by the voice, while Pinkie took a step back. Fluttershy looked shocked as the spirit touched her, “Rainbow Dash, thank you, big sis.” Will looked to the one she touched, wonder whatshe would hear. “You do not exist, Will Vandom!" A voice growled. Will became pale at this, backing up and trembling, "N-no. But, I-I...” "Will?" Twilight walked towards her,"It's probably talking about somepony else, okay?" "How can you be so sure," the blue pegasus said, backing away from the stairs."My memories have not been clear, I haven't been able to remember anything and my friends may not even exist. How can you be so sure that I'm real? Twilight put a hoof on her shoulder,"Look, from what we've been hearing, these are just shadows of creatures from other worlds. And besides, you look pretty real to me, but if it'll make you feel better, I'll scan you with my magic." "P-please," Will sai with a shudder. Twilight used her magic to scan over Will, a light blue aura shined forth from the pegasus. As her magic went over Will’s body, Twilight could see an unusual black spot in her figure, "Well, you look normal to me.” she frowned at the spot,”I’ll check that later...” "Look?" Will asked, but was hugged by Pinkie. "Well, you feel real, you talk real, and you," she licked Will, "Taste real!!!! So, you must be real! Well, at least to me and everypony else. That's all that's important." with a giggle she then pressed her hoof to another image "Is she alway this blunt?" "We did it, we found our seventh sister. Welcome to the group, Sunny!" "Sister?" Sunset blinked as the group stepped towards the white fortress. "Hmmm, a world where the six of us are sisters... Ah think Ah ca get used to that," Applejack smiled. "But, then who of us would be the oldest?" Rarity said as they walk up the steps to the fortress Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"Well, it could be Applejack." "What? Why not me?" Rainbow Dash asked. "Well, Ah mean, you are kind of stubborn and hard headed and... what's with the snickering?" Applejack raised an eyebrow The doors opened to a long white hallway that would lead to a large circular room. The large center made the place echo with their footsteps as they trotted in. Soon they entered the room with six large pedestals, "Anypony else feeling like this is too easy?" asked Rainbow Dash, looking up. Sunset frowned,"Please don't say that." "Well, I don't see anything that could be a trap." She then noticed something on the pedestals,"Those have our cutie marks on them!" Dash looked around at the quietness of the room  and yelled, "HEY TRAP!!!!" Applejack jumped and held her hat, "Try that again sugarcube and Ah am punching yer wings off." "Well, shall we go touch them, Twilight," Rarity asked. Twilight nodded as she went to them,"What's the worst that could happen?" As Twilight touches the pedestal, a light flashed, giving Twilight purple metal boots, a breastplate with a star on it, and a shiny purple helmet. Purple metal gleamed across her wings and electricity surged on her horn. An image of a purple alicorn absorbing magic through her chest showed through her eyes. As Fluttershy touches the pedestal, a light flashed, causing vines to grow over her as a yellow leather armor appeared on her hooves, and a leather helm came on her head. Vines breathed on her wings. An image of a yellow alicorn using her boots to command the trees flashed through her eyes. As Rainbow Dash touches the pedestal, lightning surged around her, causing a cyan suit of armor to come onto her, with rainbow boots and a plate of cyan on her breast. A helm of flowing rainbow energy adorned her head as lightning surged around her wings. An image of a cyan alicorn becoming lightning itself flashed through her eyes. Applejack touched the pedestal, and a orange energy appeared as orange plate-mail appeared on her entire body. The mail seemed to breath as her helmet came onto her head. An image of an orange alicorn taking the brunt of several meteors without flinching came through her eyes. Pinkie touched the pedestal and several streamers flowed around her body as pink armor appeared on her hooves. Balloons caused a piece of armor to appear on her barrel, and a pink helmet appeared on her head. An image of a pink alicorn ripping holes in the universe and then making chocolate rain flashed through her eyes. Rarity touched the pedestal, and several diamond gleamed around her body as diamond armor appeared on her hooves. A plate of armor appeared on her chest as a single helm appeared, making her horn glitter. An image of a white alicorn creating diamonds out of thin air appeared before her eyes. An opening appeared in the center of the room and a pillar rose, showing a small book "My word, that was," Rarity stepped back to admire her armor. "AWESOME!!!!!" Dash exclaimed thrusting her hoof into the air. "Look at this, it is so so... YEAH!!!" Fluttershy looked at the breathing vines, and could only gasp in astonishment, while Pinkie Pie giggled up a storm, " Look at you! Look at this! Oh, and look at me! This is fantastic." Applejack arched an eyebrow at the helmet, and then pulled out her hat and put it on to the helmet, "Better." Trixie growled a little, "Next place we go to, better have something for the Great and Powerful Trixie. A little Faith Blade or something!" Will shook her head and looked to the book in the center, "Twilight?" Twilight gasped at her armor,"Amazing..." She turned to look at the others Sunset shook her head at Trixie’s remark. Twilight noticed the word,'Forgiveness' on top of her head, as Sunset explained, "Sorry, I think these gifts are only meant for them." Trixie growled, "Fine, but Trixie expects to have something from all of this." Twilight saw the other’s elements on top of their heads. Each element blazed with their individual color, with the exception of Dash which was beginning to blur.  She then went over to the book and opened it, and saw the Crystal Heart,"Heart of Love?" She flipped the page,"Heart of Nothingness, Heart of Happiness, and Heart of Despair." Each one was in the shape of a heart, but black, pink, and dark blue respectively. Will looked over Twilight's shoulder and read the page, "Hearts? Like what we found back in the empire with Nyx?" "So what? Each gate has its own heart to find?" Dahs asked, playing with the lightning that her new gear provided. "Apparently, and from the descriptions here," She took the book and placed it in her saddlebags,"The Heart of Nothingness belongs to the World that Never Was. That could be talking about here! And it's supposed to be at the top of the Fortress of Nobodies." “What about the other hearts?” asked Will. “The heart of Despair seems to lie in the world of never ending night, while the heart of happiness is,” Twilight raised an eyebrow as she flipped to an empty page. “It... doesn’t say.” “What?” asked Applejack. “It’s just blank,” Twilight said, flipping back. “It just has information about two of the hearts. Like the one in the world of nobodies.” "And we're in the middle of that, aint we?" Applejack asked, looking up. "So why are we getting these cool weapons and armor in the past two worlds we went to?" Twilight nodded, and then flipped the book,"I... don't see the reason. My only guess is that the Queens left these here for us, but that would mean that they could see into the future..." "Then they would know about us," Applejack said, looking at her boots. "Then how didn't they know about valtor, Will, and all of that other stuff?" Pinkie asked. "Perhaps they didn't get all the information?" Twilight shook her head,"Or they couldn't stop it otherwise it might break time or something." She looked out the door,"In any case, we'd better go find the Heart. The girls nodded, following Twilight out the door. They walked up a flight of stairs and towards a door marked with the Element's cutie marks. The marks glowed and opened the doors. The group walked in as several sounds of portals appeared behind them. "Thank you for opening that for us." Twilight's voice came from behind them. "You're welcome, Twilight," Pinkie said, then looked behind her. "Or is that another Twilight?” "Uh, that wasn't me..." Twilight turned to see six black cloaked beings standing before them. One had diamonds on her cloak, another had a cowpony hat, and a third had colorful stripes adorning her cloak. The pony with the colors bounced up and down,"Wow! Other Us! I have been waiting so long to meet them!" Lixtwight, the mare who spoke with Twilight's voice shook her head,"Yes, Pinkxie, I know, and I rather you not talk with your other." She smiled at the Bearers,"We, for some reason, couldn't get through this door, so we had to wait until someponies like you opened it." She took off her hood to reveal Twilight's face,"Now, Pinkxie, get the Heart." Pinkxie nodded as she suddenly appeared in the center and grabbed a black heart in the center of the room. The bearers took a step back as they saw the ones with cloaks. Pinkie Pie giggled, "Pinkxie, Lixtwight? I like their names and-" she was interrupted by the speed of Pinkxie as she ran and grabbed the heart. "Hey, what do you think you're doing with the heart?" Rainbow Dash demanded. Rarity looked on, "And where did you manage to get the idea for such horrible cloaks. Seriously, black is not very you." "Wait, other...us?" Applejack asked. The one with the diamonds scoff,"I know! I mean, I at least managed to vary mine, and I tried to modify the rest, but they won't let me!" Pinkxie giggled,"It's ours now! We're going to-" Her muzzle was zipped up by Lixtwight. The pink mare happily ran away from the group and out of Dash’s range before she could make a move. "We have plans for the Heart of Nothingness." "What kind of plans?" Will asked. "We ain't gonna say." The one in the hat said. "We might tell you, if you catch us!" One flew in the air with cyan wings. "Oh buck, not a stupid riddle!" Trixie moaned. "Space when you leave, so we must be at the spot where we left. Twilight, we need a time travel spell and..." As Trixie began to ramble of ingredients, Applejack walked up to Twilight, "What do ya think she means.” "I... am not sure..." Twilight put a hoof to her chin,"I think she's talking about the stars around the Pseudo-Ponyville for space. The spot where we left..." "Great, I'm being reminded of Celestia's teachings..." Sunset frowned,"I wasn't very good at those, I prefered the more hooves-on ideas." "So, I guess we better head out." Twilight said Will began to think as well as the others left  "...and then we need to find a megaspell, which might risk decimating the timeline of this world and end up making all of us-Hey Wait up!" Trixie shouted as she followed the others. They left the castle, only to find themselves separated by a black wave of energy. As their senses returned to each one of them, the bearers found themselves alone and in  a place that was familiar to them. Applejack walked through the empty orchard as five shadows began working on the trees. Applejack began to look around frantically, quickly remembering the last time her friends were separated. Then, she noticed the five shadows, "Who..." One of the shadows picked up a filly and placed her on his back as he began to walk home. He was wearing a hat similar to Applejack's. "PA, MA!!!!" Applejack shouted ("Pa, did you see, Ah bucked 2 apples! All on mah own!" A little Applejack said as she hopped up to her dad. "Did you really? Amazing, little apple," her father said snuggling her. "Maybe we should start putting her to the plow now. What do you think Big mac?" "Nope," Big mac squeaked. "But Ah can move things just as much a maw can." Applejack protested.) Applejack reached out with her hoof, wanting to touch them again. "Ah miss them a little myself." Applejack's voice leaned on a tree,”Do you?” "With all of mah heart, " Applejack said, wiping a tear from her eye and then turning to look at her nobody. "You lost them too?" "Of course Ah did. Ah'm, well, Ah was you." She took off her hood, and put her hat back on almost immediately. "How was that possible?" Applejack asked as she walked to her nobody, and laid next to a tree, and pulled out a piece of grass to put in her teeth. "Well, Lixtwight didn't explain it all too well, but what I understood was that, well," She looked at Applejack,"You went to a world full of Heartless, right?" "Yep, and stopped a lot of evil us along the way," Applejack noded. "Yeah, we're the result of those things." Applejack's nobody tipped her hat,"The name's Jackppaxle, and Ah'm your Nobody." "Applejack, but guess ya already know that," the farmer said, looking at her nobody. "So, how did ya came to be?" "Well, according to Iaxselect, we Nobodies are created when a pony with a strong heart becomes a heartless. So, Ah came from you, Lixtwight came from Twilight, Iaxselect came from Celestia, Naxul came from Luna, Pinkxie came from Pinkie, Trarixy from Rares, Fluttxerysh from Fluttershy, and Raixbown from Rainbow. Of course, when we came out, we didn't have names, we didn't even know where we were! Then a stallion came, and helped us out." "A stallion? His name wouldn't be Valtor would it?" Applejack asked, putting her hooves behind her head. Jackppaxle leaned back,"Ah don't rightly know. He never gave us his name, just told us that we were supposed to stay here and wait for ya'll." "And here we are," Applejack said, leaning back. "So now what happens? Ah know Ah can win and you know you can win. But we are just two hard-headed ponies who really don’t like to give up." Jackppaxle shook her head,"The thing is, Ah don't want to fight ya, because AHh'm not like the other nobodies." "How so?" Applejack said. she pulled out an apple and handed it over. The nobody took the apple and ate it,"Well, every nobody thinks that they don't have a heart, and they don't really like the idea that, well, ya'll are running around having lives we, supposedly, can't have! Ah don't see that though. Ah'm pretty sure Ah have a heart, and Ah don't mind seein' ya'll having these lives." "Neither do Ah," Applejack said, smiling. "And that fact you want to live and be here, proves ya have a heart. The way ah see it, if you want to live you life to the fullest, then you have a heart. You are your own pony and ain't nopony gonna take that away from ya." Hoofington revealed itself before Trixie as she stood on a stage, overlooking several shadows. Luna's voice came over the crowd,"Trixie, isn't it nice to be home again?" "Yes, it is. Trixie has longed to see the sights of her hometown once more, but why is she here?" Trixie asked "You are here, because you are meant to be here." Luna's voice said. Meant to be-" Trixie asked, looking at Luna. "What do you mean?" A cloaked form appeared and laid a wing over Trixie,"You were meant to be on stage, and yet you forced yourself all around the world, because you had something to prove." "To prove?" Trixie asked Luna. "Trixie is on her journeys because she wants to. Because Luna has sent her there! There is nothing to prove, because Trixie is already powerful!" "Really? You mean you aren't feeling a little jealous of Twilight Sparkle?" 'Luna' said. Trixie looked down, "A little. But Trixie thinks we have come to a... mutual trust." "Really? A mutual trust? Do you believe that?" Luna's Nobody said. Trixie looked at Luna, "Yes, she is. Twilight has told her before. Heck, Trixie has saved her twice... that has to count." "Indeed? and you don't feel weak compared to her?" Naxul asked,"She will always be stronger than you." "Not always," Trixie smiled. "Trixie won once." "Once?" Naxul asked. "Yes, once," Trixie smiled and her horn began to glow. Images began to play as she started her story. "Not too long ago, the princess was caught in a nightmare world. Trixie, with her friends, stormed into the nightmares to fight and free her mind. Trixie was alone in her world, but, she won. She used her method of defeating Twilight with her own flaws.” "But that can only work once." Naxul said with a frown. Trixie frowned, "Yes, her method to defeat Twilight is gone now. That just means that she will think up a new way. A better way that is flashier and more powerful than the other!!" Naxul scoffed,"Such... willpower. I commend you, Trixie." She said as two rainbooms came overhead. Trixie smiled, "I have a wonderful rival. An Trixie would never trade her for anything. Shadow ponies pass by Rainbow Dash as Cloudsdale appeared before her. One group of shadows stood out, however: Two pegasi holding a small pegasus filly, looking at a Wonderbolts poster. Rainbow Dash let out a growl as she shouted, "Girls! Where-" she stopped when she saw two shadows and a little filly. Walking closer, she began to hear “One day momma, I am going to be a Wonderbolt. Then I'll be so fast, no one will ever have to say goodbye!” Rainbow Dash said, hopping around her parents. "Interesting, isn't it?" Dash's own voice said from above. Rainbow Dash looked up at her nobody, "What is? What do you mean?" "How hopeful you used to be, until you let something happen to you." Her nobody landed next to her,"You won't tell them, will you?" (Rainbow Dash shuddered,”Don't do it, I'll... go with what you want”) "Won't tell them what?" Rainbow Dash asked, growling lowly at her. "And what the buck are you talking about, am as hopeful as I have ever been." "Don't lie to me, I smelled it when I saw you." the nobody, Raixbown, said,"You're hiding a piece of despair within you." "No I'm not!" Rainbow Dash denied, growling, feeling the armor flare up. "I'm hiding anything, not from you, not from my friends, not anypony!" her magenta eyes began to glow red. "It looks like you are!" Raixbown stepped back,"You're becoming a danger to your friends, and yourself!" "Say that again," Rainbow ash growled, her eyes focusing on her nobody. "You are dangerous, I see it in your eyes." Raixbown stepped back a bit,"I know you are going to attack me like an insane nut who can't acknowledge her own faults!" "You want to see my faults, you want to know who I am!?" she yelled as she pounced at her nobody, her wings blazing lighting as she charged. Raixbown grunted as she kicked Dash off,"You're only confirming my suspicions! You're making yourself out to be the bad pony!" Her hooves became electrified. The nobody landed on a cloud, then got up,"Will you calm yourself? This is giving up!" She fired electricity at her. (“Please... I'll do it.” "Loyal to the end, and that is the chink in your armor,” An old voice said.) Rainbow Dash said nothing, generating her own lighting bolt to block it. She then began to create her own tornado and kick it. Raixbown flew into the tornado and began going in the opposite direction to dissipate it. She looked up and flew into Dash. Rainbow Dash let out a grunt, and began to knee her nobody in the stomach, "I don't give up. You wanna see giving up?" Spinning around, she threw her counterpart into the ground. "Oh, yeah!" She kicked her off and flew up,"That's giving up! How about I show you what real loyalty is?" She flew down, creating a cone around her. "Go ahead, I perfected it, you nobody!" Dash growled flying up to create her own cone of air. Rarity looked to the sounds of whimpering inside a small riverside home in Ponyville. Rarity began to walk closer Rarity looked at her old house, her eyebrow arched, "Home?" The giggling became louder as soon as Rarity spoke. “-nd then, I'll introduce her to the finer arts, and then make her famous and the-" "Now, hold on there, little gal," Cookie said. "We just brought her home, now's not the time to start planning her entire life, don't ya know." Magnum smiled as he patted Rarity, "Ah, the little gal is just excited to be having a little sister there. Just wait for her to start dressing her up in her little outfits." "Oh, can I, Daddy?!") Rarity felt some tears run down her cheeks. "Stay away from that shadow, Other." Rarity's voice said. "Why?" Rarity asked. "You don't deserve her." Rarity's nobody appeared, her cloak shimmering. "What do you mean? Of course I deserve Sweetie Belle," Rarity said, feeling insulted. "I know how you treat her, your friends, and everyone else! It seems all you care about is yourself!" "What are you talking about," Rarity said, looking shocked. "I have never thought about myself. I have alway tried to do things for them." “Really?" Rarity's Nobody walked around,"It seems that all you think about is leaving this little pile of dirt to go to the big city, the wide, wonderful, clean, Canterlot!" "Just because I have big dreams and aspirations to move up in the world, doesn't mean that I think little of my friends and family," Rarity said. Trarixy scoffed,"Really? Or are you just justifying yourself?" "I don't have to prove myself to anypony," Rarity said with a huff. "A lady lets her actions speak for her. My friends know me for who I really am." Trarixy thought for a moment,"I suppose you have a point." She pulled out a rapier,"But isn't your self-image important for work?" Rarity brought out Vorpal, "Why yes, it is This is why I struggle to keep my image up." "Well, then I admire that part of you!" She thrusted. "Thank you, Aren't you like that?" Rarity asked, blocking the rapier. "No, I'm not. Because I'm not you! I want to be you!" She shouted, swiping at Rarity,"You have a heart, real emotions, but I don't!" Rarity blocked each shot and thrusted back with her own, thrusting and slashing, "Well, you are definitely not me. Because I would NEVER want to be exactly like another person. I tried that once, and it ended badly or me." Things were drab and dreary as Pinkie looked upon a rock farm, where six shadows slowly stepped around the rocks. "Girls, this is no time for hide and seek, there isn't enough stuff around to hide..." Pinkie stopped when she saw the shadows. Looking closely, she saw one of them having a familiar mane style, "M-maude? Mom, Dad, Inkie, Blinkie?" The shadows began to leave one shadow behind,"Do you like them, other me?" Pinkxie said. (Pinkie solemnly pusha rock, then squeaked when she felt something poke her. She began to whimper, and was ignored by her parents. Then she felt a pair of lips on her hoof, and smiled at Maude. Then her parents came back with some bandages, a teddy, and a hug from her sisters) "I don't like them," Pinkie smiled. "I love them! Why, don't you love them?" "Well, I kinda do, I kinda don't." Pinkxie said,"I've seen many worlds where our parents aren't very nice." She leaned in next to her. "Not nice?" Pinkie asked her other self "Yeah, for some reason, our parents are portrayed as mean!" Pinkie's nobody said. "Well, they can be sourpusses," Pinkie giggled. "It's why I was always so close to Maude, she understood me the best." "But, do you care about them? What do you say about them when they're not around?" Pinkxie said. "That they need to lighten up sometimes," Pinkie aid. "I know they care about me, but..." "But what?" Pinkxie leaned her head forward. "Sometimes, they just don't get me. And I could feel lonely," Pinkie looked down Pinkxie sat beside Pinkie,"Well, you are a little different, but that's what makes their raising of you so special!" "I know, and I wouldn't trade them for anything," Pinkie smiled. "And it's that idea that makes you, you!" Pinkxie gave her a cupcake. "And then there's you. You are a me too, though a me with a silly name, but a me!" Pinkie giggled. A big cloud home went beyond Fluttershy's eyes as Cloudsdale opened up, with several shadows trying to fly, but failing. Fluttershy gasped and tried to fly up The other shadows turned as they watched Fluttershy fly. Moans came from them. (“Fluttershy Fluttershy can-" "Now, don't you listen to them. No Firewing I know is a weak pegasus," said her mother. Her brother smiled and hugged Fluttershy, "Just you watch sis, you are going to wow them!" "H-how?" squeaked Fluttershy" "By being better at something other than flying.") Fluttershy tried to back away from the moans, "Why are you moaning?" "They're jealous." Fluttershy's voice said. "Of who?" Fluttershy asked, looking around as her nobody appeared. "Of you." Fluttershy's nobody pointed a hoof towards them all,"Perhaps you haven't figured it out yet." "Figured what out?" Fluttershy asked. Fluttershy's nobody touched a shadow. "I don't deserve these wings... I wish I was an Earth Pony..." Fluttershy's voice came out. Fluttershy backed up, "Is that... me? But, why would I say these things?" "Because you were a terrible flier." she looked down,"You even thought a couple of times that you should've been born an Earth Pony." "You're right, I have," Fluttershy said. She looked up, "When my wings were taken from me, I was actually kind of happy. But..." "But, you felt like something was missing?" Fluttershy's nobody said. "Yes," Fluttershy nodded. "That's... nice." Fluttershy's nobody smiled,"I wish I was more like you." "You can be," Fluttershy said, putting her hoof onto her nobody's shoulder. "By realizing you don't want to be like me." "But I do! Because I am you!" The nobody said, tears welling up in her eyes,"But I'm not real, just a fragment of a whole." Twilight looked around her past home at Canterlot,"My... old library..." She looked and saw several unicorn shadows run pass her. Lixtwight teleported behind Twilight,"Nice place, isn't it? At least, I thought it was. Not sure about you." "Hey, I liked it here!" Twilight said. "Then how come you've never once come back to clean it up, or sell it?" Lixtwight said. “Because..." Twilight stopped herself as she looked away,"Because I never thought about it..." "Of course. You've never thought about any of your family members, or the rest of your home!"Lixtwight said with a growl. "I... I..." Twilight stammered. "You don't care for anyone you met here! You don't even acknowledge your real mother, only Celestia! You don't even bother to contact your dear brother Shining Armor!" Lixtwight shouted, pointing a hoof at her. Twilight looked down, her eyes going back and forth. "Do you even remember the last time you spoke to your mom? And I'm not talking about Celly!" Lixtwight produced a white version of Equinox and pointed it at her,"All the things you do, and you hardly remember where you came from!" She thrusted, only to be blocked by Twilight's shield. Twilight pulled out Equinox,"You're right, I should care about where I come from." She swung at her nobody. Lixtwight gasped as she dodged an attack by Twilight,"I'm glad you realize it, but why are you still standing!?" "Because I acknowledge my faults, and I don't let myself get discouraged by ponies like you who think they know me!" Twilight pushed her back with a shield spell. Canterlot Castle showed itself around Sunset. Sunset gasped as she looked at a few unicorn shadows staying stagnant. "Welcome home, Sunset." Iaxselect said as she stood on a throne. Her hood was removed showing her pink maned head. Sunset looked around,"Iaxselect, why am I here? Where is everypony?" "I am here to, well, I believe you need my help." Iaxselect began to walk towards her. "You feel so lost, so alone, I can help alleviate that." She draped a wing over Sunset. Sunset blinked,"But I have something to do..." "You don't have to worry about them, they're safe, just like you are, my dear Sunset." Iaxselect said. "Why are you doing this!?" Sunset stepped away,"You're not Celestia!" Iaxselect frowned,"You're right, but I am trying to help you." "You... you're trying to distract me aren't you?" Sunset said, backing away. Iaxselect sighed,"I'm hurt, Sunset. You're treating me like I'm trying to hurt you." "Yes, because I know you are!" Sunset yelled,"Like you usually do! You've never cared about me, you've never cared about what I wanted to learn, you were always busy and always... always..." Sunset's eyes widened. Iaxselect laid a hoof to Sunset,"It's okay, Celestia still loves you." Will was on a small, empty road, with a pathway leading to the Heart. Will looked at the heart and smiled. She started to take the step, but stopped, "Wait, where is everypony else" "There is nopony else." A voice said to Will. "What do you mean? the others were right here?" Asked Will "They never existed, they were all in your head!" "No, that isn- you're wrong. You have to be!” Will screamed, “They are real!” "No they aren't, you're lying to yourself!" Will shook her head, "I'm not-right?"Why would they befriend me just because they met me. Why haven't they noticed me. Why haven't I told them of my problems. "You want friends so badly that you made them up in your mind!" "No, I-" (Will sits alone in a park, looking at the school she once went to. Her friends admittance of who they are still hurt her deep inside, “They were only my friends because they felt pity for me”)  "No..." (Will looking around the fountain of her middle school and finding it empty.) "That's right, sit there, and wh-" "No!" A pegasus shadow ran past Will,"Will, you do exist!" "Who?" Will asked as she saw the pegasus. "Silly, don't you know?" She sent her hoof into Will. Hay Lin took Will by the hand,"Come on, there's a really good rollercoaster over here!" Hay Lin, I just-Whoa!  "H-Hay Lin?" An earth pony stood in front of her, "Back away from her!" (Ok, so you see this problem, Will are you asleep?” Taranee asked Will.) "Stop! What are you doing!? You are supposed to be mindless, heartless shadows!" An unicorn stepped forward, growling, "Who do you think we are?" "Ok, so we have been to the dressers, the jewelry, the build a bear... Will are you ok? You look like you are tilting,” Cornelia asked. A blue earth pony showed up, "We would never just let ourselves be sitting back while our friend is in trouble!" (" Come on Will, just charge it up! I really need your lighting power!” Irma asked.) "This... This is impossible!" The voice wailed Hay Lin giggle, "No it isn't! We are always where we need to be!" "In here," Irma pointed to the pendant on Will's neck. "But-no, no, NO!" The voice raged,"This is impossible, you should be broken!" "But I am you! Or I was you, or-" She shook her head, tears coming out,"I- I just want a heart like yours!" She yelled as the sound of two rainbooms echoed. Rainbow Dash landed, looking at her nobody. She growled, but there was an uneasy calmness to her as she walked away. Raixbown growled,"Don't walk away from me!!" She flew after, then she felt her hoof cracked. "It's over," Dash said, no emotion in her voice "You idiot! You have to tell Twilight! Trust her! Trust her!"She growled as she watched her hooves disappear,"No!" She shouted, willing the pieces back for a moment as she flew off. Fluttershy gave her a hug, "No, you are... Shutterfly. You are real, because I can touch you. You are crying and you are sad. You feel like me. You cry and want to be with others like me because you feel alone. But you know that there are so many ponies who will be with you." "Other ponies? With me..." She then whimpered,"But I don't have a heart..." Two rainbooms cried overhead. Fluttershy looked up, "There's your heart. Your friends, they will be your heart." she then felt herself walking away. Shutterfly smiled softly as she watched her other walk away, her body cracking. Naxul smiled as her body began to grey out,"Good. It's that will that will help you in the next few days to come." "Thank you. You know, Luna told Trixie how to use Twilight as a rival like she has been. It's helped Trixie a lot. When she felt weak... I have always told myself, don't fall, you can't disappoint Twilight now. You have to prove yourself. And somehow... I’ll win." Naxul smiled as she faded,"Good." "Exactly!" Jackppaxle smiled as she got up,"We should tell that to mah other friends!" She then heard something as she looked up and saw two sonic rainbooms. Applejack smiled as she looked up, "You know, that mare has a way of putting things together, don't she?" Jackppaxle looked at her hoof, and smiled sadly,"Well, Will won out." She let a tear go to her eye as her hoof began to gray out crack,"AJ, do me a favor and tell Twilight to do a magic check-up on Rainbow." "Wait, what do ya mean? W-wait! Stop, don't go!" Applejack said, running over to her friend and hugging her. "Stop this. You don't have to die! Don't... stop!" tears began to flow from her eyes. "Ah'm sorry, AJ." She smiled as pieces began to fall away,"But this is what happens when a Heart is activated. It's... reversing certain things, and that includes me." She leaned in,"But Ah'll be beside you, always..." "No, No NO DAMN IT!!!" Applejack yelled as she began to cry. "Just like ma and pa." Pinkxie giggled,"Our names are kind of silly! But that's what the Mystery Stallion did!" She then looked up as two rainbooms came overhead. Pinkie Pie smiled, "Hey Dashie!" then her eyes went wide as she began to walk away from her nobody. Pinkxie blinked,"Where are you going, silly?" She then looked at her cracking hoof,"Uh-oh." Pinkie whispered as she looked behind her, "Don't worry, I won't forget you." Pinkxie smiled,"Thanks..." She said as she disappeared. Sunset sniffled,"What about you? Do you love anyone?" Iaxselect smiled,"I do, and I hope they understand what me and my sister have begun to understand." “What’s that?” Sunset asked as two rainbooms went over head. Iaxselect smiled,"I think she's won. Go, congratulate her." Sunset looked up,"You're just going to let me-" She gasped,"Your body!" She watched as the nobody began to crack. Sunset cried,"Please don't do this! Please don't leave me!" Iaxselect smiled as her body began to turn to dust,"I'll never leave you..." Sunset began to sob as she took the dust and began to try and piece the nobody back together. Trixie walked next to Sunset, and then placed a hoof onto her should, "Trixie is... sorry." “She... she was so much like her....” Sunset curled up into a ball and began to sob. "I know, I know," Trixie said, hugging Sunset. "But I do know you! Every waking hour, I resent you for having something I couldn't have!" Lixtwight shouted. "And that would be?" Twilight asked with a raised eyebrow." "A heart." Lixtwight said, as two rainbooms came overhead. Twilight took a step back,"A heart? Well, you act like you have one." She looked at her nobody,"You don't need to be exactly like me," Then she gasped as she watched Lixtwight get up, the nobody's body slowing graying out. Lixtwight gasped,"No, I don't want to go!" Twilight ran to her nobody,"Tell me what's happening so I could reverse it!" Lixtwight frowned as she watched herself disappear,"Idiot... there's nothing you can do..." She sobbed as her eyes went. Twilight's hoof fell as she watched the nobody fall,"Twilight!" She heard as she turned to see the Rainbow Dash nobody fly to her,"Something's wrong with Dash! You need to-" She shouted before her body disappeared. Twilight looked down and a tear fell across her face as she got up and walked towards the heart. "You do have one, a beautifully unique one, you don't need to be me to prove that," Rarity said. Trarixy stopped and sobbed,"But..." Her body began to crack. "Wait, what's happening?" Rarity asked as he watched other self crack. "No, don't do this darling." "I... can't stop it. I-I'm sorry, I don't know what to do!" Trarixy began to fade away. Rarity could only watch on in shock, and whimpered in cold silence. Taranee helped Will up, "She' not broken and he will never be broken." "But I don't know if you-" "Look, we may not exist in that world ,r all of your memorie are in your head," Irma said looking into Will's eyes "But look into your heart and tell me, what do you know i realy." "That I-" ("I am Will, please to meet you Twilight" " Get me off of this bird!!" "We are all here for you) "Stop, stop, stop!" The voice faded as the path to the Heart opened to the sound of two rainbooms. It shined, waiting for Will to come. Will smiled, and flew to the heart, her heart glowing bright as she heard the heart. Taking her heart she placed it onto it and her eyes glowed white. Twilight, Fluttershy and Pinkie put their weapons on to the heart and their worlds faded. Twilight blinked as she looked around a void. "Where is everyone!" Twilight shouted. “Welcome, scion of magic, and bearer of the heart," A lighter voice boomed from the heavens. "Have you been brought for the door to the Heart of Worlds?" Will found herself in a white void, "Twilight? Anypony?" she yelled, but stopped when she heard the voice. "Where is everypony?" The voice said nothing, but instead, Irma appeared, "Hello, Fake." Pinkie Pie tapped Fluttershy on the shoulder, "Flutters,  hey Flutters! We're here!!!!" "Oh! Hello Pinkie," the yellow pegasus said with a smile. She then looked around the white void. "W-where is everypony?" "I don't know, but look at this void!" Pinkie squealed as she ran as far as she cloud. Once she was nothing more than a speck in the distance, she yelled, "You could run for miles!!!!!" "Uh, Pinkie-eeep!" Fluttershy said as she wa suddenly met with a pink face. "We have got to bring Rainbow Dash here and see how far she can go!!!" Pinkie giggled as she bounced back. The voice chuckled as his light voice began to speak, "Laughter, Kindness... it is good to have two strong sources of light in the test." "HEY!!!!! Hi Mr. Voice!!" Pinkie waved to the sky. "But you got it wrong, my name isn't Laughter, it’s Pinkie Pie. And this is Fluttershy!" "Hello," Fluttershy said, trying to hide from the booming voice behind Pinkie. "Hahahahahaha!" laughed the voice. "How interesting. Laughter and Kindness found their bearers in two ponies who are the most opposite of each other. How peculiar friendship is." "Thanks," Pinkie said, giving Fluttershy a hug. "Speaking of which, where are our other friends?" "They are beginning their tests. The ones which you will have to help them with. You must help them pass each one, no matter how hard it is," the voice said, his tone becoming more serious. "And, what if we," Fluttershy gulped, "Fail?" "Then the fate that fell your nobodies, will befall them," for emphasis, he showed an image in their heads of Will and Twilight crumbling into dust. Fluttershy put her hoof to her mouth, "No." "But, you can't do that," Pinkie whimpered. "What's more, your memories, your friends memories, and her friends memories of them will be wiped from your minds. You will forget everything you have done together, every experience that you have had together, and the world will forget that they had ever existed. Whenever someone asks you, you will only draw a blank. There won't even be an empty feeling where there spots in your hearts lay, or an empty chair in a throne room that was once occupied," the voice boomed. "Silly voice, Twilight doesn't have a castle," Pinkie said. If a voice could smirk, he would, "Regardless, fail... and you will leave here never knowing that they existed." Fluttershy trembled at the thought, while Pinkie Pie bounced and saluted, "Don't worry sir, we'll do this test lickety split!!" "Good, because it is starting..." Thorny vines appeared from the white void and surrounded Twilight. Then a fiery circle appeared before her, with a hoof slowly emerging, "Hello Twilight," the voice chuckled. "Shall we talk?" a horn with holes in it appeared as she slowly arose. "What's going on? What do you-" Twilight was interrupted by the vines and the ring of fire. She turned towards the voice with a glare. Slowly the body appeared from the ring of fire, "Hello, Twilight. Shall we discuss your friends’ failures?" "W-what are we supposed to do?" asked Fluttershy as she turned and saw the ring of vines. Inside, she saw Twilight, standing in front of Chrysalis. She gasped when she saw the queen’s horn glow a soft green. "Oh no." "Help her, help your friend," the voice said. He then made Will appear in the distance. "Fake, Irma, I have been through this, I'm-" Will was interrupted by the auburn earth pony's remark. "You're A Will, from A Equestria. How can you be so sure that you are who you say you are. You've seen that there are multiple versions of ponies," Irma said, walking up to Will and pulling her mane. "You could be just a Will who is a nobody, taken the heart from the real Will of this universe and is taking her place." Twilight blinked,"Failures!?" She glared at Chrysalis,"What are you talking about!?" Fluttershy flew to the ring of vines and tried to fly over it. She gasped when the vines began to raise higher and higher. The higher she went, the more the vines vines to meet her altitude. With a defeated moan, she laned back down and looked to her side, sighing at the lost of her wingblades. Taking another look at the vines, she reached out a hoof to touch the thorns, and pulled back when it pricked her. She looked down at the drop of blood that pooled from the point, "Will you walk through the fire and the vines to help Twilight?" Fluttershy said nothing, instead took another step forward. Her first scream went unheard, despite of how loud it was. "Why, the failures of their lives of course," Chrysalis said. "Now, I know you six have gotten over what they did at the wedding. Focusing on me, brilliant, saying that I am the bigger picture, you're right. And I know how you six had a sickening and sad forgiving talk with each other in the hotel before you went back to the reception. I know all of this. But, I want to talk about how they fail as ponies, as heroes, and as friends." her horn glowed softly. "Let's start with Applejack, how long do you think she's gonna live?" "Laughter, you must help Will," the voice said. Twilight took a step back,"Applejack? Well, I guess she should be live to be around as old as Granny Smith, at about 90 or so." "Wrong, her element is a pure conflict with her personality. She has to lie in order to hide her pain and misery. That mare will take on the pain and the anguish of everypony. She will never tell you the pain she has because it will be her responsibility and hers alone. She has 10 year at most with the way she acts. Of course, that is nothing to say of Rainbow Dash, how long until she goes away with the Wonderbolts or something else. You know, I bet she is still angry at you for so many things you have done. They all are, but we are focusing on their failures right now." Fluttershy let out another scream of pain as she felt a thorn stab into her leg, while her wing got entangled in another vine. Whimpering and struggling, she pulled out the feathered limb from the vine. For a few moments, she looked behind her, and then turned her head forward, taking another step. Pinkie Pie walked to the two, listening to their talk, "Hey Will! Remember what we said, you're you! You're the you that we know, and that is what is-" Will did not hear Pinkie, just the sound of IRma yelling at her. "The ponies know you, and you might think that is enough. But, you know what? That isn't the truth. All you are is just a little pegasus with a gem, that is all the facts you have right now. That groups of guardians you've seen, they are just versions of a group the might have a connection with you." "What!?" Twilight shook her head,"That's wrong, AJ keeps a lot of stuff bottled up, but I know we've been helping her keep her pride in check! And Rainbow Dash probably doesn't care about whatever I've done! I know she'll go away to the Wonderbolts, but we can still see each other!" "Do you really believe that?" Chrysalis asked. "Do you really believe that she puts away her anger so easily. That is like thinking Rarity will give up being so vain that she ignores the basics of life or Pinkie won't be such an insufferable twit who hurts more than she helps. Did you see her actions? How she gets? that pink pony is a menace. You are logical, you must see it like that." Fluttershy took slow step after slow step, wincing at every thorn and vine that cut into her body. A painful gasp escaped her lips as she felt another thorn slice across her cheek. She let out a painful hiss as another fine cut into her wing, this one burning with acid. "Rarity is not vain! And Pinkie, while she has her annoying moments, does help a lot!" Twilight shouted. "All those defenses, and for what? Ponies that will die on you? Run on you? You say that failing their elements make them more like normal onies, and I say that is their failures. They are wrong, but you... you are right. Well, except that you have had everything taken from you. But you have always been a blank slate," chuckled Chrysalis, her horn glowing more. Fluttershy let out another scream and then began to gag as the vines wrapped themselves around her throat. With a growl she began to push herself further breaking through the vines as she could feel the warm blood trickle down her body. Pinkie could only listen as she watched Will collapse to her knees at the insults from Irma, "Hmmmm, she has an interesting point but..." Twilight shook her head as she began to kneel down,"Blank? N-no, they will never turn on me. They are not their elements, I-I know I'm not always right." "Tell me, are you angry with me right now?" a sword appeared at Twilight's side. "Because you know I'm right, I'm the one who is representing your failures, your rage. You know that your friends are easily beaten. Each one is a pathetic weak mess." "Yes, I am very angry with you," She looked at the sword at her side, and began to think. "Then you know what you should do, because I am going to kill you," Chrysalis raised her blade and struck at Twilight. Twilight blocked the blade, and glared at Chrysalis. She fired a bolt of magic from her horn. Fluttershy opened her eyes wide at the fight, struggling through the vines as each one cut deeper into her flesh. The vines began to catch on fire as she started to cough. Twilight swung her sword at Chrysalis with a scream of rage. Chrysalis screamed as the blade cut deep and fell to the ground, awaiting the final blow. Just before Twilight could raise her sword, Fluttershy jumped on top of the bug queen, "Twilight, stop!!!! Please, don't kill her." Twilight stepped back a little, her eyes losing their anger,"Fluttershy!?" She looked at Chrysalis, and looked at her bloodied sword,"Oh Celestia..." "You know that there is better way than killing, that everypony needs a chance... even her. An even if they can't change," Fluttershy sighed, "It should be a last resort." weakly, Fluttershy began to fix the wounds of the bug queen, and she looked to Twilight, "Help." Twilight looked at Chrysalis and threw her sword away in disgust,"You're right, I wasn't thinking straight. " She said with a smile as she knelt down and used her magic on Chrysalis. As Chrysalis was being treated, her body slowly changed, to Fluttershy. The yellow pegasus let out a gasp, "Wh-" she froze as she looked down at herself laying on the ground as Twilight helped herself. "You were kind to an enemy, because you never know when one might become a friend," the voice said. "WILL!" Pinkie shouted, trying to be heard, "That will not work, her friend is too busy drowning out your voice with her fears," the voice said. "But she isn't her friend! She knows that, right?" Pinkie said, looking over her shoulder. Will's heart began to glow as she heard Pinkie's whisper, "She's right." "What?" Irma asked. "You aren't my friend," Will said, getting up. "You may look alike her, but Irma- ("Yeah, it looks bad, why do you think I am joking. It helps get my mind off the bad.) "Irma-" (Come on, cheer up, you can do this. You outsmarted Nerissa!) "She-" (I don't care how bad it looks, I won't lose the faith that I can kick your can.) "She would treat my fear like a joke. She would laugh it off and make me do the same. She would look at me like a new playmate, that is who she is," "How can you be so sure? You might-" "I don't know if I am Will, or some alternate reality Will or just some pony with her body. But I can feel in my heart that I have four friends who mean the world to me, that would never leave me. I WILL see them one day, and if I am just some fake... then I will make friends with them. That is what Irma has taught me, to always have hope," Will smiled. Twilight chuckled as she looked at Fluttershy,"Thank you” Fluttershy smiled as she felt her wounds begin to heal, and then turned to hear the sound of hoofsteps. Looking behind Twilight she spotted Will flying to them. As Will laned, she looked to the two mares, "Where's Pinkie." at that question, everything with dark for a few moments. "Do you know Laughter's strength?" the voice asked. "Well of course!" Pinkie said, and as she began to talk, a blue light began to shine in the darkness, guiding the three ponies. "Being laughter is all about laughing at those dark moments and making you smile. It about looking at a really bad day and laughing at it, knowing you can make it better. It's looking at an accident or your fear and laughing about how silly it was. Then smiling about a brand new day. It’s why I always like acting silly, because somepony has to brighten," the pink pony then went over to Twilight, Will and Fluttershy and hugged them tightly, "their day...even if it doesn't always work The white shown a bright star as a dark green unicorn appeared with a little bubble po. As she looked at Twilight and the others, she gasped, "Oh wow! I was hoping I was going to meet the bearer of Laughter again. and now I did! Please to meet you all!" Fizzy jumped up and down in excitement with her soda pop cutie mark showing Twilight blinked,"Again!?" "Well, I met the alicorn of laughter so yes, I meet Laughter again/ OH, isn’t spirit and time travel so much fun? You meet so many ponies! Like I was telling Wind Whistler... I forgot." she sighed. Twilight blinked at the mare,"Oh, Celestia..." She shook her head. She then grinned,"So, is there anything interesting you can tell me about way back when you were alive!?" Will looked on, "But first, why did Pinkie and Fluttershy take the same test?" "Because, because... oooooh how did Windy put it. She relayed the message that Mimic said," her eyes popped up, "OH! now I know. Because Kindness and Laughter are connected! A kind laugh born of happiness is easier to have than one out of meanness. And when you are kind you have an easier time of laughing. As for interesting tales... Uh, let's see. OH! There was a time when I was making this extra large bubble and trapped Windy in it. She rolled around for ages in there, and then there was this- Twilight opened her eyes wide in anticipation for more stories about a long time legend, even if they're a little weird. "-Then I didn't know that soda was supposed to be used that way, live and learn..." ******* "-Then Firefly threatened to kill me if I ever tried to mix those two again. I said I was sorry, but no she got all huffy *************** "The Big Brother ponies looked so scared when I had rounded them up in my little bubble, you’d have thought I was going to do something nasty to them- *********************** "And that was the first time I ever wondered if Paradise's head was going to explode. I did my calculations and I was pretty sur- ************************************** "I thought Gusty was going to kill everypony by that point!" "Wow, history is so fascinating!" Twilight squeed. "This is history?" mouthed Will. Fluttershy noded while Pinkie Pie brought out marshmallows "I feel like I should ask something..." Twilight's logical side then kicked in,"Wait, you said that Mimic gave that message out? Could she see the future or something?" "Well, my memory's a little fizzy," said Fizzy. "I get it!" Pinkie giggled. "But sort of. It all started back when Mimic was having another one her spells, she got them a lot and we hoped that this would pass like the rest. It didn't this time, it just got worse. Our doctor didn't know what to do. That was when she started to tell us about how the Heart was in danger of 'the darkness without heart and body, the one of the past who corrupts while bringing the two toned sun to light, the one who will black out worlds." Fizzy shed a tear. "She kept shaking, couldn't catch her breath, and wouldn't eat. She told us to seek out the queens of harmony and warn them. She picked me, Wind Whistler, Gusty, and Truly to go out. We thought that it might have been Mirage, or that black dragon that had been growing in the east." Twilight's mind began to go over the details,,"The one who will black out worlds... the one of the past who corrupts..." She then gasped,"Black Dragon!? You couldn't be talking about Valtor!?" "Valtor? Was that what his name was? I think it was him, but we never saw him in our time," Fizzy said. "The alicorns only saw a black spot in the multiverse, something that was beneath their notice. They," she smiled softly, "Wanted to focus on saving Mimic first. I'm glad they did, because that was when the planning started. I guess that's why they left their weapons and armor behind. for the next bearers." "Planning?" Twilight asked. "Yep but I wasn't there," Fizzy calmly kicked a rock, "I was busy with the Flutter Ponies and the Minotaurs. One of them was nice enough to give me the shoes that helped save Mimic and made her ultra strong, like really powerful. Then she told us to..., and then we....You know, I completely forgot that part. But it was really special because we all did it together and Queen Majesty knighted us with this huge  knife." Twilight gave a heavy sigh,"Okay, I'll ask another spirit about that later..." She looked around,"Are we done?" "Ye, I think soon you should wake back up in the world," Fizzy noded and gave the four a hug. "I'm sorry this is the only chance we get to talk to one another." Pinkie hugged Fizzy tightly, "It’s ok. Who knows, maybe next vision we and see all of you! Twilight hugged Fizzy as well,"Don't worry, I'm sure there'll be another way..." She gave a knowing smile. "I hope so. Oh, almost forgot," Fizzy said. "They told me to let you in on a little more of the prophecy. They said it’s what helped them a little. Twin students of the sun will bring the heart To love, despair, nothingness, and happiness The gates of wind, water, and earth will open fire Faith will stand where Forgiveness falls And I think something else. It led them to the gates, and told them to give you their armor." Fizzy said as the world went white. ------------ Fizzy looked up and smiled at the minotaur "We need to talk, I think you have some problems.” “And you think you can fix everything?” The king asked “Yep,” Fizzy smiled ------------- Twilight awoke,"More and more, the pieces seem to come together..." She said to herself. "You're awake! Thank heavens," Rarity said with a smile. "What do ya mean, the pieces are coming together?" Aplejack aked. "I've learned a little more about this prophecy." Twilight said as she got up,"Apparently the alicorns saw some sort of black spot in the multiverse and left the armors here for us. Also how the twin students of the sun will bring the heart to Despair, Nothing, Happiness, and Love. The gates of Earth, Air, and Water will open up Fire." She looked around,"Where's Sunset?" "I am dreadfully sorry Twilight, none of us have seen her," Rarity said. "Who cares, probably ran off upset that she didn't get a chance to kill our nobodies," Rainbow Dash said. "Rainbow!" Fluttershy admonished, looking stern. "You shouldn't think that about ponies." "Awww, don't be a louse Dashie," Pinkie said, hopping up to Rainbow Dash. "Look, all I'm saying is that she probably saw her nobody die and-" Dash then looked around. "Where's Trixie?" Twilight stared at Rainbow for a few seconds, the sight of what Dash's nobody told her still fresh in her mind..."Let's go look for them." She trotted off. Nearby, they could hear the soft sounds of crying. "Sunset, I," Trixie sighed, and then turned to look at the incoming septet. "What Trixie means is...” She shook her head as she got up,” your friends are here." with that, the blue mare walked to them. "You should talk to her, she has been like this ever since..." "Ah get it sugarcube," Applejack said. She then looked at Trixie, "Are you alright?" "Of course! Trixie was no where near as close to Luna as someponies might get with their mentors. Trixie is fine and she will be! She is the Great and Powerful one after all," Trixie said, walking away. Twilight watched as Trixie walked by,"You're sure? We can still help." "Of course Trixie is fine," Trixie chuckled. "She has no need of help from anypony, unlike Sunset. She will be waiting nearby while you help out the lesser powerful unicorn." Rarity looked to Twilight, "You know she's lying.” Twilight nodded,"Yeah. I just wish she'd open up." She walked over to Sunset and put a wing over her. Sunset gasped,"Why couldn't I save her... I was always afraid... afraid that she would leave me just like my mom..." she sobbed. "Sunset, dear, I don't think Celestia would ever do that to you," Rarity said, putting a hoof onto Sunset's shoulder. Applejack walked to Sunset, and took off her hat. She then put her hat onto Sunset's head before looking at her friend in the eyes, "Ah remember, when mah Ma died. It was right after Paw died making a delivery run. When that happened, Ah was so afraid that Ah would lose Big Mac that I wouldn't let him go. Ah was so afraid that Ah would never see him again, so... Ah can understand Sunset." She smiled at her. "But, Celestia isn't like yer mom. She wouldn't leave you." "That's just it..." Sunset sniffled,"I've seen Celestia hurt before, and I always, always clinged to her, afraid that she would die on me..." "You've seen her hurt before?" Rarity asked. "I've seen her trying to stop a monster. She came back with so many..." She cried,"I saw the doctor, and I couldn't look at her." Twilight leaned in to her,"I know. Celestia does a lot of things for us, that we have taken for granted. Though I can't imagine your pain. I would've just lost a mentor, but you would’ve lost a mother." "Ah can," Applejack said. "It's like a black hole that you can never get it out of. You do something amazing and you and to tell her, and you find out that you can't anymore. You just want to say, 'Hey Mom, look at what I did." "Mom, there was something frightening, help" "I love you, Momma." Applejack began to choke back a sob. : Ah know why you're afraid, Ah just wish Ah could tell you that it would be ok. But it won't, it'll always hurt. But you know what will help with it?" she then offered a hoof. Aj looked down, " you’re always afraid to leave your eyes on her, because you are afraid that one day you'll wake up and she'll be gone. Right?" Sunset sniffled as she looked up at Applejack's face, and then took her hoof.Applejack's hoof was soon joined by a white one, a pink one, a blue one, and a purple one. Sunset shakily placed a hoof on theirs. Rainbow Dash watched from one of the buildings, her wings drooping for a moment. Timidly, she reached out, placing her hoof where she knew the others were. Then she felt a twitch, and pulled away, "I'm sorry." she whispered. "Darling, if the worst were to ever happen," she looked into Sunset's eyes, "We'll be there for you. Always." A tear came to Pinkie's eyes, "Yeah, if you need a shoulder to cry on, or hoof to hold." "All of us," Will then hugged her friend. Rainbow Dash smiled softly as she landed behind Sunset, and then placed her hoof, though it was shaking, she then looked into Sunset's eyes, "I-I-I'll come for you, just say it." As the others began to comfort Sunset, Fluttershy looked at Trixie and flew over to her, "Trixie..." "I said I'm fine!" Trixie denied. "I know that wasn't Luna, I-I know that she isn't her mentor, the one who finally did w-what nopony else did and gave me a chance," she then took her hat and held it down. She began to sniff, " I mean, sure... Luna was only the princess who saw Trixie' show and thought, 'she had potential' while everypony else saw a washed up showmare who had no chance. But, I have no connection with THAT Luna, because, she isn't my Luna." Fluttershy then walked over to Trixie and hugged her. Trixie tried to pull away from Fluttershy, but began to feel her tears beginning to break, "Sunset, she lost a mother figure, what have I lost but an image of a mare who never lost faith in me. The only mare who had ANY faith in her after she lost her grandpa. I...." Trixie whimpered. " I remember this one day, I had a mission and I failed. I messed up and I thought this was it, she was going to hate me. But then, she came to the hospital with a grin I didn't know he had and said to me, 'You once again reassured my faith in you.’" Trixie finally broke down and cried into Fluttershy's shoulder, "No pony has ever had faith in me before! Not my mom, my sister, nopony!!!! And here is this mare who just saw me fail hard, say she had faith in me. Why? I'm nothing compared to her, you, or anypony!!! But, she had faith in... in... me." She sniffled,”So, why should my problems be a big one. Sunset is scared for her mother, and I just watched Luna fade before my eyes. I tried to put on a brave face, because... because," "You're afraid?" Flutterhsy whispered. "YES!!!" Trixie cried harder and harder now, her tears falling into Fluttershy's shoulder. "Afraid of failure, afraid losing her, an you and...." "Shhhh, it's alright," Fluttershy said."Want to talk to them and say it," Fluttershy sked. Trixie shook her head, "I can't. They... this is Sunset's moment, I-" Fluttershy pulled Trixie's hoof as Trixie continued, "I shouldn’t be there. I'll just take it away from her." Rarity placed a hoof onto Trixie's should "No...you won't." "And you know I'll always be with you, sis." Twilight said with a smile. She looked at Trixie and waved her over." Timidly, Trixie walked over to her circle of friends. She took a shuddering breath, "I... that is Trixie is," she said trying to get back into her performer mode, trying to hide her face again. Twilight pulled her into the hug using her magic. "What did I ever do without you?" Sunset said as she leaned into the hug. "Pray you don't ever have to find out," Applejack said, holding them close. "Live a boring life," Rarity said, looking at each one. "Not having friends I feel like myself with," Pinkie said. "Not feeling complete?" Dash smirked. "Being not alone?" Fluttershy said. "Feeling stronger," Will said. "Knowing that there is somepony who believes in you," Trixie said, looking at Twilight. "Or having anyone to hold you up." Twilight finished. They said nothing as they held each other there for a few more moments, letting their friendship warm them and keep out the nothingness of the world. The bleakness, the darkness, and the sorrow of the stories and the ponies that were incomplete felt insignificant to the love that they were sharing at that moment. Each one felt a warmth they could never describe, one that kept them going throughout their journey. Rainbow Dash let out a sigh, the warm feeling at odds with the blackness forming in her heart. Applejack nuzzled her head against the others, and Pinkie held hers against them, not wanting to let go. The heart glowed a little, as if signifying that the test was over, and that in the end, the stories and ponies that were incomplete would end happily. Somewhere across the multiverse, a new story began, and six mares, who were once nobodies to others, began a long journey of friendship. A bright doorway opened behind them. Rainbow Dash asked, "Ready to go?" "I want to stay like th for a bit longer, I like it like this." Will wmiled. Twilight smiled,"Me too..." After a few moments, the girls walked through the bright light. As they stepped into the room where Erebus once was, they could a faint sound, like screaming, "You girls hear that?" Twilight looked at all of them,"Let's check it out!" She said as she ran towards the screaming. As they ran outside, they saw the Great Forest Spirit stumble, in front of the large god, was Valtor, who had a blade pointed at his throat, "Ah, Princess, so good to see you." the black dragon bowed "Valtor! Let him go!" Twilight shouted, her horn glowing. “What is that fool doing!?” Mozenwrath growled. "No, I think not," the black dragon said, walking before the nine. "See, I was beginning to think that you had forgotten about me. That I have been ranking low on your radar. I couldn't stand that, it's just not proper," he then looked to the great spirit. "So I decided to leave a reminder, AFTER I was done seeing the next light. And..." he smiled as the light shot up. The light hit the constellation of Fizzy, hitting her cutie mark. This made the light that hit Truly to brightened a little, moving to another point. Elsewhere the third light began to shine, glowing a bit brighter. "I must thank you. Soon, you will open the third gate, and with that, the location of the fourth, which will lead to the Heart of Worlds," Valtor chuckled. Dash growled, "And we'll stop you!" "Yes, I assume you will. Especially in your new armor," he smiled. "But, I think you might enjoy this. After all Will, isn't your favorite movie Journey Through Fairyland?" "What do you mea-" Will gasped as Valtor sliced through the spirit's head. "You are foolish, dragon!" Mozenwrath growled,"That's not going to be good!" Twilight gasped,"Oh, no!" The sun seemed to be eclipsed by the transformation as the great spirit became a black decaying blob. As it rose, everything it began to touch decay and desecrate, his tentacles eroding all it touched. It began to howl and moan. “You annoyance! If that thing kills us, you’d lose your way to the Heart!” Mozenwrath yelled. "Sunset, this is a good sight, is it not? Must remind you of the home you lost, the one you can never go to again. After all, you used your magic to break the portal, and sealed yourself here, adieu." with a bow, he disappeared. Sunset took a step back in fear,"No..." "It's okay, we can stop this." Mozenwrath said,"Give me a minute and I'll tell you." "I leave you nine for a few minutes!" Discord shouted as he teleported and scooped the group up in a giant baseball mitt and carried them up in the air where several flutter ponies were flying with Erebus. "Discord!" the nine shouted. "Thanks," Flutershy smiled at her friend as she looked at the lumbering once-spirit. His black tentacles touching everything it could grab. "Twilight, we need a plan. Now!" Applejack said. Rainbow Dash looked at the Flutter Ponies and then back up at Discord, "Yeah, because our best choices for plans are you, bacon-hair, and nutty!" Twilight's eyes darted back and forth,"Darn it," "Do you see the head anywhere, Sunset!?" Mozenwrath said immediately. Sunset looked down and back to Rainbow,"Do you remember if he took the head anywhere?" "Darn it? Darn it is not good Twilight! There is very little good things associated with Darn it!" Dash said, and then looked at Sunset with a growl. "No, I don't remember!" "Oh, I think he left it back down there!" Pinkie said, pointing down from the baseball mitt. "If I don’t figure something out fast enough!" Twilight said,"At the rate it’s going, it looks like it could cover the entire country in an hour, the continent in five hours, and the world in half a day!" Sunset looked down at the head,"Somepony needs to grab it” Dash, while no-one was looking, pushed Sunset "Wh-" Sunset screamed as she fell. “You fool!” Mozenwrath shouted towards to whoever pushed them. "Sunset!" Twilight shouted as she tried to fly off the mitt. Applejack grabbed Twilight by the tail, "Twilight, No!" "I have to save her! Let me go!" Twilight shouted. Applejack held fast, "You ain't thinking right now. If you go, you are gonna get dragged in! You won't be able to save her like that!" she then looked into the eyes of Twilight, and saw the same type of eyes that she would have if Applebloom was in trouble, "We can't stop you, can we?" Twilight glared at Applejack,"The answer is no, now let me go!" Se shouted, her horn glowing. "Fine!" Applejack growled, letting go of Twilight, "But don't come crying to us if we can't save you!!" Twilight flew down to the beast, her horn glowing a pitch white as she went into the creature. “Stupid Bucking-" Applejack growled and adjusted her hat, "Wait up!" "No you aren't!" Rarity said, putting her hoof on to Applejack's shoulder. As the orange mare frowned, Rarity smiled back, "Not without us." Applejack smiled as she leapt, followed by Rarity, Pinkie Pie, Fluttershy, and Will. Rainbow Dash held out her hoof, something holding her back, and then shook her head as a light shone from her armor and a Rainbow flashed in her eyes. She leapt after them. Trixie watched in horror, and then shook her head, "Discord, do Trixie a favor, and don’t tell the world that she is about to die doing something stupid." she then leapt, "WHY DOES TRIXIE HANG OUT WITH YOU SUICIDAL PONIESS!!!!" Discord leaned back, filing his nails,"Sure, have fun!" "You're just going to let them go!?" Rosedust shouted. "Yes." Discord looked up and gave a smile. Sunset blinked, hearing the faint echo from before repeat in her head, "Hurt?" "So much hurt. Creatures hurt so much, can't forgive," hundreds of eyes looked to her. "You!" "You have caused so much, hurt. Why do you forgive, why should forgive?" "Wh-what are you talking about?" Sunset said, then she felt pain in her head. “Sunset!? Listen, what you’re-” Mozenwrath’s voice was cut off. "Hurt, Suffering" "Forgive" "I... I..." Sunset fell to her knees, a headache going through her mind,"I'm, I can't- But all that..." "Lies, Betrayal" Sunset's heart began to sink, she toppled over in pain, “Oh Celestia, please. Not this one, not this-” "Hurt, pain. Can't forgive!" "I... I'm sorry. I don't- I don't know-" Sunset curled into a fetal position. "Hate, HATE, HATE!!!!" "Why, how can anyone forgive this" "I... I.." Sunset whimpered as she curled into a fetal position. "Because she has friends!" Twilight's voice shouted. A purple hoof smashed through the muck An orange light began shine, whispering 'Honesty' (Applejack smiled, taking Sunset by the hand to her farm "Come on Sunset, Ah need ya for this." "Bt I-" "No buts) "There ya are Sunset!" Applejack said, punching through, and then straightening her hat. "How" A yellow light began to blaze, "Kindness" (I can't believe Twilight expects us to forgive-where's Fluttershy?" Fluttershy walks to Sunset, carrying a towel) "Twilight, Sunset!" Fluttershy said, pushing aside the muck. "Generousity" a white light shown. ("Oh that will never- Hold still Sunset." "Why are you having me stand for your dress." "My dress? Sunset, this is yours...") Rarity stepped through the muck, feeling it stick to her boots, "I thought we would never find you.” "WHy forgive?" A pink light began to shimmer "Laughter" ("But I-" "Nope" "But there's" "Nope" "You are going to force me to enjoy this birthday aren't you?" "Yup!") Pinkie Pie bounced in, followed by Rainbow Dash as a faint voice tried to speak ,"Loyalty" ("Leave her alone!" ) "Friends, how forgive, so much hate.” (Sunset took Twilight's shoulder,"Come on, let's go back to bed. We'll find my mom when we get to Tauros." Twilight frowned,"You're starting to sound like my big brother. Never letting me stay up to study." she muttered) “Magic!”Twilight forced her way through to grab Sunset with her magic Sunset felt tears come to her eyes as the seven glowed bright. Twilight looked up,"There's just as much love, you just need to see it! ("so, you know now about her." "Yes, and Trixie has no worries. Sparkle does that, and she trust in her rival's judgement._) "Faith," Trixie ran in, Will following. The blue mare smiled as she watched the seven beginning to glow. "Forgive? Love, Friendship?" An inner light began to glow brightly in Sunset, forming into a shadowy golden tiara with her cutie mark inside it.Sunset looked around them,"Yes, all of that, all of this, is the reason why I can be forgiven!" "Do you, forgive me?" Sunset blinked at the question,"For what?" "For the devastation, almost taking you away." "You were attacked, I understand. I forgive you." Sunset said, putting the shadowy tiara on. "Thank you" A bright light shone, and the blackness vanished. Soon, the nine found themselves standing back in the village, the world restored. The Great Forest Spirit smiled, and blew a soft kiss to the nine mares. Turning he walked back into the woods. Trixie cheered, "We won and... Discord... you told the world that Trixie died doing something stupid, didn't you?" .Discord had a funeral veil over his head, and a bouquet of flowers,"Well, I was going to!" He said as he threw the flowers away, and stomped off in frustration. Twilight let out a sigh of relief. She then frowned,"It doesn't make sense..." "It's discord, it doesn't," Rainbow Dash said, before being interrupted. "What doesn't, sugarcube?" Applejack asked. Twilight shook her head,"No, Discord's never made sense." Twilight looked at them,"Why would Valtor attack now? Couldn't he have waited to show up?" "Ah don't know sugarcube," Applejack said. Rarity looked at the passing-by spirit, "Maybe he wanted to hurt us or discourage us?" “Because he probably knows about me, and did that just to screw my plan over!” Mozenwrath said. "But all that did was make us realize that he's watching us, that we're the key to finding the heart!" Twilight gasped,"What he said, that's his flaw! He's arrogant!" She turned to the group,"Even though his plan was to lay low, he couldn't stand the idea of being forgotten! But if he can't do a simple plan like this..." She thought for a moment,"Then there is something bigger behind him..." She muttered. “But then, who could possibly have the power to control somedragon with that much power?" Rarity asked, looking at Twilight inquisitively. "I don't know, but it'd have to be a very old wizard or something..." Twilight gave a thoughtful look. "Great, just bucking great," Rainbow Dash yelled, throing her hooves up in the air. "Bad enough we are looking for a gateway to a heart of a world and facing down evil versions of us, facing off against a pony sized dragon monster, and now there is someone ever badder than that in the wings!!! Why doesn't the world send an evil necromancer at us?" "Give it time..." Mozenwrath said with a chuckle. "Don't give the universe ideas, Rainbow." Twilight's look lingered on Dash for a second. Will shook her head at Dash's comment, "You got to admit, it’s pretty arrogant. But now, he has us figuring out who the stallion behind the dragon is. probably even trying to see if he's in control or not, if he really is under control." "The thing is, was that his or her plan? Did they want Valtor to go out of his way to try and hurt us?" Twilight asked,'I guess my suspicions were correct.' she thought Before Will could say anymore, Pinkie interjected, "Hey, what's Trixie doing." Trixie, upon seeing the gathered Flutter Ponies looking at the gathered group of bearers, stepped onto a small fountain, "Fair ponyfolk! Raise your voices proudly for your savors, for the wondrous and heroic feats of the marvelous ponies behind me! The heroic and brave Princess Twilight and her knights!!!" Trixie shouted. "Knights?" Applejack asked, looking to Twilight. "Long have they traveled through the world of Harmonia to come and right the wrongs of the past, and protect the equines under their vision. Though they were on a quest to protect the Heart of Worlds from the machinations of a malevolent malicious miscreant, they did not find it beneath their notice to save you in your time of need!!!" "Should we stop her?" asked Will. The flutter ponies cheered. Twilight gulped,"Trixie..." She nudged her. Trixie looked over her shoulder, and then winked "What?" she whispered under her breath. "What are you doing!?" Twilight said through her teeth. "These Flutter Ponies have almost lost their homes, their lives, and their world. They need the chance to see who has saved them and to thank their heroes. No problem with a little hero worship," Trixie smirked. The show mare began to form an illusion of darkness around the eight other mares. "Behold! You saviors and heroes!!! Rainbow Dash, Knight of Speed!" Rainbow Dash smirked as a spotlight came upon her. "Rarity, Knight of Fabulosity," Trixie blasted the area with light, and shown Rarity. The white unicorn flipped her mane in response. "Applejack, Knight of the Land!" Trixie shouted, showing the orange mare, who blushed and grinned a bit. "Fluttershy, Knight of the Forest!" Fluttershy hid behind Pinkie when the light shone on her, "Pinkie Pie, Knight of the Smile!" Pinkie bounced up and down in the light. "They are led by PRINCESS TWILIGHT SPARKLE! Conqueror of nightmares, Foe of Chaos, Liberator of the Empire, the Fear of Mirage, the Harbinger of Light!" and then she looked at Sunset. Twilight gave a sheepish grin,"I think you're laying it on a little thick..." She whispered. "No such thing!" Rainbow Dash said, taking in the spotlight. Sunset gulped as the spotlight came on her,"Uh-oh." "Joined with her, are myself and these two wanderers," Trixie leapt in with the group of three. "We are her loyal vassals! Will, who is the bearer of a magical jewel that she must take to a distant realm to protect it from harm! Myself, I am the bard of their story, the one who will tell you all of their magnificence of their adventure. This is why our third vassal is here!" She pointed to Sunset Shimmer, "Former student of Princess Celestia! She came from a far off world to help protect her younger counterpart, to guide her as she was once guided herself by the sun. She brought the light of the sun with her to help our beloved princess. Sunset blinked at the praise,"Uh, thank you..." Twilight blushed furiously,"This is getting embarrassing...." "Praise your saviors, for we will be moving soon to find the monster who did this to the great forest spirit. Led by the twin students of the sun and her brave knights, we will put down any threat!" Trixie shouted as fireworks began to shoot around them The Flutter Ponies cheered and clapped their hooves together. Pinkie Pie brought out her party cannon and smiled. Rainbow Dash smirked, "Well,the guy is going to be waiting for us to get to the other hearts anyway." "Oh boy," Applejack said, holding her hat down. Twilight's eyes widened,"Here we go..." "PARTY TIME!!!" All at once, the Flutter Ponies village was covered in streamers, balloons, and a banner marked "thank you". The Pink mare leaped from the fountain and pulled one of the flutter ponies into a hug and began to dance. Rainbow Dash looked to Twilight, "Should we even ask?"  Twilight looked at Dash,"No, no we shouldn't." Lily squealed,"This is so amazing!" she said as she flew around Rarity walked down to the other mares and began to chat up with the party goers. Fluttershy flew to some of the tree tops and began to talk with some of the birds. Will looked on in shock and looked to Sunset, "Could look at this? It’s amazing. Rarity walked down to the other mares and began to chat up with the. Fluttershy flew to some of the treetops and began to talk with some of the birds. Will looked on in shock and looked to Sunset, "Could you look at this? It's amazing.” She looked around,"How does she, I mean, they do remember that they were being attacked by an eldritch abomination right?" Will aske “That's the power of Pinkie, she seems to make you forget your problems for a little while..." Sunset gave a sad smile. The spirit’s words still rang in her head. “Hello,” Mozenwrath said, as if something had just caught his eye. "Hey, what's with that frown?" Pinkie asked, bouncing to Sunset. "Nothing, just nothing..." Sunset said, seeing the human Pinkie for a few seconds. "Ok, but if you get depressed, there is a pony over there who is offering happy juice!" Pinkie squeaked as she hiccupped. Rarity looked to one of the Flutter Ponies, "So your wings they are-" "Yes, fragile, but you should see how they look in the sunlight." "I have no doubt about that dear" Rarity replied. Rainbow Dash found a cloud to land on and chose to watch the fun from above “Happy juice?" Sunset asked. Twilight looked over one of the other Flutter Ponies,"So, what's your culture like!? I mean, I've heard of you, but I never thought I'd get to see one of you! I didn't get a chance to ask all of this before but..." Will sniffed the cup, "I think it's booze," she said looking at Sunset. Then she smiled softly, "Don't worry, you'll see them again. "I can’t believe I did that, she could've died!" Dash shouted to herself, looking at her hoof. "So what? she's..." Sunset frowned,” I don’t know if I believe that.” "Why not?" Will asked. "I..." Sunset shook her head,"My memory's still a little fuzzy, but Valtor said something about what happened to my world." She stopped herself as she lingered on the phrase 'my world' Will sighed, and looked down, "I know about having a fuzzy memory. But for some reason, I feel like we'll both find our way back. Or at the very least, I can get you back." "Or I'll get you back." Sunset looked at Will with a smile. Will gave Sunset a hoof bump, before watching back at the party. Up in the clouds Rainbow Dash sighed, watching the party with a forlorn look. She sighed a little, a desire to join with them burning through her heart. Slowly she reached out a hoof, but pulled it back the moment she remembered that it was her who pushed Sunset. She growled and turned to lay back onto the cloud, "Stupid-" "Hey Rainbow!" Applejack called, "The party is really picking up, what are ya doing up there?" "Nothing! I just want to chill, it's been a busy day and I want to relax," Rainbow Dash said, laying on her back. Applejack sighed and walked away, "What is wrong with her?" Lily creeped up next to Dash,"Are you sure!?" Dash jumped up, "Ah! when did you get here?" "Two years after my big sister!" Lily said with a grin. Dash scoffed, "What are you doing up here? I am trying to relax." she then looked over her shoulder at the part below. "Well, you look lonely." Lily said. "I'm not lonely, what makes you think that I'm lonely. Do I look lonely to you?" Dash asked. "Well, you're all alone and without your friends. They're all having fun down there and it disappoints me that you're not with them." "Why do you care if I'm not with them. And they are doing fine without me," Dash said, turning away. "Because... I want friends to stay together." Lily said. Applejack walked to Twilight, "Hey Twilight? Think something is up with Dash?" Twilight had a scroll in her mouth and several pieces of paper in her saddlebags,"Hold on," She took the scroll out and placed it on a table, then began to write,"Yeah, she has been acting really weird lately. There was something her nobody was trying to tell me..." Dash smiled softly, "But, it's just..." she looked down at the party. and then she smiled a little bit at seeing the fun her friends were having. "Go ahead, join them." Lily said with a smile. "How did her nobody know the something was wrong with her, though..." Twilight muttered,"But I intend to look her over, just in case...” At that point, Rainbow Dash flew over head Twilight's head, flipping her mane, "Come on egg head, stop looking over those notes and get to partying! We just saved another town and I feel like drinking some flutter ponies under the table!" Twilight yelped as Dash flew by her. Her look lingered on her for a minute,"Yeah, I'll get to partying..." Trixie took another drink and walked over to Fluttershy, "Hey Fluttershy, could you come over here, mah cherie?" "Um, yes, Trixie?" Fluttershy asked. "Mon cher Fluttershy, pensez-vous ou Crépuscule Coucher de soleil seront dérange si je leur demande pour une nuit de folie ce soir?," Trixie asked. "Um... no?" Fluttershy said, not understanding what the blue mare said. "Ah, thank ya. Ya'll are the cutest little thing, non?" Trixie said, stumbling over to Twilight. "Oh, Twilight, could you come over here and bring that cute little petite Sunset with you!" Twilight turned to Trixie with a raised eyebrow,"Uh sure..." Sunset blinked,"Wait, I don't think I want this!" she said as she walked to her. "Aw, mon dear Sunny. Don't you know, you want his cute," Trixie said. "See, Lulamoon just wants to know L'un de vous bien jeunes juments souhaitez rejoindre Lulamoon pour un temps chaud sous la lune ce soir. Là, elle peut vous montrer les voies de plaisir que Pinkie innocent a même pas pensé. Sunset cocked her head,"What?" "Lulamoon! She's doesn't need to go with you for a hot time!" Twilight said. "You speak Prench!?" Sunset gasped. "Yeah, I had to for my lessons with the Princess." Twilight said with a nod. Sunset frowned,”I fell asleep through those classes...” "Oh, then you perhaps? My dear sweetie little rival?" Lulamoon smiled, "Peut-être qu'ensemble, nous pouvons appeler des mentors les uns des autres dans les langues que vous avez même pas appris. Comme Minbari, oh nous pourrions crier ensemble. Mais non?" she then kissed Twilight's cheek before skipping off, "Oh Pinkie Pie, Rainbow Dash? Où êtes-vous mon petit poney de l'amour arc en ciel?" Twilight blushed furiously,"That was awkward." "What just happened?" Sunset raised an eyebrow. "Lulamoon, and she just said some," she coughed,"embarrassing things, and called Rainbow her love rainbow." Will came rushing by, "Girls did you know if Trixie drinks too much she becomes slightly... amorous?" "I noticed..." Sunset said with a frown. "She also starts speaking Prench." Twilight said Pinkie bounced by the alicorn and unicorn, "Hey girls, do you know what Pinkie, je me demande ce que comme votre goût de la tarte? Allons-nous savoir? means? Fluttershy kind of blushed and hid behind her mane when she heard it." Rarity looke on in shock and walked away slowly, "So, Rosedust... just how do you get your wings to sparkle like that?" Applejack ran a hoof along of of the bigger trees, "Just how the heck do they make their trees so big without earth ponies?" Twilight's eyes opened wide,"Pinkie, you really don't want to know..." She shook her head. She looked at the clueless Sunset and whispered in her ear, causing the unicorn to blush furiously. Rosedust looked behind her,"Oh, they're normally like that when ponies get to my age." Lily flew up to AJ,"Oh, we use Flutter Magic!" for emphasis, she fluttered her wings. "really? They are quite mangif-" Pinkie interrupted, a glass in one hoof as she laid on top of Rarity "Sooooo, now that we saved you from the spirit and all. Are you going to visit some of the other lands now?huhuhuhuhuhuhuhuhuhuh?" "Flutter Magic?" Applejack asked. "HAHA!" Rainbow Dash laughed a she watched Trixie. "Rainbow, it isn't funny," Fluttershy said, watching as well. Wiping a tear from her eyes Dash replied, "I think she has toasted almost everything under Luna's moon, Flutters. Of course it's funny." "Et here's to Raindrops, et here's to awesome Sunset, et Sunsets! et here's to... non, es stupido!Et here's to... to... to passing out!" and then she fell onto the table, grabbing and snuggling the nearest pony. In this case, it was sunset, "Teddy." Rosedust chuckled at Pinkie,"Perhaps, it'll be difficult to get my ponies used to the outside world though." Lily nodded,"We concentrate on our wings and flap them a lot, and that gets some growth into the trees!" Sunset's eyes opened wide,"Help." She whimpered. "Aw, it'll be easy, all we need is to have at least somepony to go out and say hi...and I know whoooo!" Squealed Pinkie as she ran off. Rainbow Dash laughed, "No way bacon hair! It ain't a real celebration unless someone is drunk in another ponies arms tonight!" Rosedust blinked,"I wonder who's she's talking about..." She cocked her head,"And how is she so fast?" Sunset gave a mock glare to Rainbow Dash. Pinkie pushed Lilly to Rosedust, "One ambassador coming up." her ear then twitched as she heard something that RD said. A smile came across her lips as she ran away in a puff of dust. Rainbow Dash laughed and blew a raspberry at Sunset, "Hey, rules are rules. You know that you should-" "Um, Dashie," fluttershy said, tapping Rainbow Dash's shoulder as she noticed a pink tail inching her way closer. "Dun Dun," "I mean, seriously, Bacon, don't they have wild parties in the human world?" Dash asked. "I remember how-" "Dashie," Fluttershy mummered as the pink tail came closer. "Dun Dun, Dun dun," "Not now Flutters. How me and Gilda went to this wild party and she somehow wounded up in bed wit-" "Dashie!" Fluttershy said, backing away slowly as the tail crept closer and closer. "Dundundundundundudnudnundundundundunddundundundundund," the tail said as it neared its victim. "Not now Fluttershy! Anyway, she was in bed with a minotaur and a-" "GLOMP SHARK!" Yelled Pinkie Pie as she leapt from the table and hugged Dash tightly. Before letting out a yawn and muttering, "Dashie." "Gak! Twilight, Help me!" Rainbow Dash said, struggling against the sleeping pink pony Lily blinked,"What!? Me!?" She looked at Rosedust, who gave her a smile. "Hello, Ambassador Lily." The queen said. Twilight shook her head,"Sorry, Rainbow, you said it yourself:No party is complete without anypony sleeping in another's arms." Rainbow Dash glowered at Twilight, "Revenge, I will have my revenge!!" Twilight chuckled,"Okay, I'll keep one eye open." She forced a smile suddenly. Soon the party passed on into the night, and soon everypony feel where they slept. Sunset, having managed to get out of Trixie’s grip, walked to a clearing. Trixie woke up and totted to the small clearing, "Hey, Sunset... can we talk?" Sunset traced the ground with her hoof. The spirit’s voice still ringing in her head,”More manipulations... more outside forces making me feel weak, making me feel powerless! First my own Mother, then Celestia, then the Elements, then Valtor, and finally this!” She jumped when she heard Trixie's voice,"Shouldn't you be asleep?" She raised an eyebrow. "Yeah, but Trixi-I just wanted to get this off my chest," Trixie took a deep breath. "I'm so-sorry for assaulting you back in Tauros. Sunset blinked,"Really? It's okay, you were just a little jealous." She frowned,"Unless there's something more." "Yes," Trixie walked around Sunset. "I had always thought, I was the best kind of rival for Twilight. That it was me who could beat her. Heck, I thought I could achieve greatness by one day winning in a fair fight," she then sighed. "Then you came along, and were just so much better at it. You had a past that connected you to her, you had power equal to her, you could match her qualitie I never could. And me, I was just a magician with a giant ego who thought she was the best. I just felt... pointless. Like I didn’t matter. I just felt... like I didn't matter," Trixie sighed. Sunset got up and placed a hoof on Trixie's shoulder,"I don't know, you have one thing I don't." "What?" Trixie asked. “Sheer determination. I don't know how you got this far, even knowing that Twilight is stronger than you, yet you still kept on going” A bit of Trixie's confidence came to her smile as she looked into Sunset's eyes, "Really?" "Really, I mean, who else has the will to go into darkness to save a friend?" Trixie sighed, "We weren't friends at the time. It was just a mission that I took because Luna sent me there. I didn't really start to become friends with them until I started to help them get home." "Really? Just a mission?" Sunset said,"Are you sure that there wasn't something else?" "Ok, so maybe since it was a few months after the alicorn amulet, Trixie decided to prove something to Twilight. I wanted to show off what I could do now. Then, when I saw her, and hung around her... Yeah, I did want to help out. I wanted to use my magic for somepony," Trixie smiled. "You know what I mean?" "Yeah, I think I know what you mean." Sunset said with a smile. "You know, I think we have something in common," Trixie smiled back "Yeah, we do." Sunset said. "Twilight changed us for the better, "Trixie chuckled as she leaned onto Sunset's should and began to fall asleep. Sunset smiled as she leaned herself on Trixie's head, a soft smile on her lips as she began to fall asleep. “More machinations, more people trying to hurt you and your friends,” Mozenwrath whispered in Sunset’s ear,”Allow me to make it better...” > N is for Necromancer > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         Under the light of the moon, Rainbow Dash watched as Sunset and Trixie rested alongside one another. Carefully, she began to step forward with a rock in hoof, "What are ya doing?" said a voice behind her "Oh, Hey!" Rainbow Dash said, turning to look at Applejack. "I was just skipping rocks." "At Sunset?" Applejack asked, eyebrow arched as Dash dropped the rock. "You know Rainbow, you've been acting pretty weird since we've left home. Ah've seen you fly out of the palace for no reason, you been getting more aggressive, and now-" Rainbow Dash growed, interrupting Applejack, "I told you, I'm fine. I'm only more aggressive because we've been traveling with Bacon over there. You know she almost killed Pinkie Pie." "Ah thought you got over that. It wasn't her fault and you know it sugrcube," Applejack said. "And it's rather odd you are still mad with her but you are pretty chummy with Luna." Rainbow Dash back up against the tree, trying to avoid the bearer of honesty's gaze, "I can't tell you." "Can't or won't?" Applejack asked. "You tell them, and you will die. Then the plague will hit them,”  a voice echoed in Dash’s mind. Dash pulled her fist away, "Can't. Just can't." "Dash, we're all here for you," Applejack placed her hooves onto her friend's shoulder and smiled softly. "Heck, you can just tell me and Ah'll take it for ya." "Aj, -I-" Dash looked into her friend's eyes,and then turned her head away. "Promise me-" "Promise what?" "That if I start to go off the deep end, that if I start doing something that may hurt any of the others. Stop me," Rainbow Dash said. "I don't care what you have to do, just stop me." "Sugarcube, what is wrong?" Applejack asked,looking worried as Rainbow Dash began to walk away. "I can't say. I just need to know that...somepony's got their back," Rainbow ash said. "And don't tell Twilight. Ok?" “Remember, Mirage's mindspell? The one she used to split Twilight’s mind seven ways?” the voice echoed. "Sugar-" “Imagine one that will do its job wuicker and more efficently” the voice chuckled. "Don't Tell her ok-" Before she flew off, Applejack hugged her. "Take care of yourself. Don't go trying anything foolhardy ok, or I will hurt you," Applejack said, holding her friend. "Still trust me?" Dash asked. "With my life Sugarcube," Applejack smiled as she went to bed, taking one last sad look at Rainbow as she flew away. Rainbow then felt a surge on the back of her neck, causing her to fall to the ground. A figure walked up to her, horn glowing. The figure touched her horn to Rainbow’s neck. Twilight tapped the chess piece forward,"And that's all I know." Luna looked at her as the dream books flew by them,"Street Rat's Legacy... I'm afraid I don't know anything about that. My sister might." "Shall we go to her dream and ask her?" Twilight asked, placing her knight on a space. Luna knocked the rainbow colored knight over,"Perhaps, but I'm afraid of interrupting it. She tends to have... sad dreams." She got up, several doors flowing past her before stopping at a single white door. As the massive doors began to open, they could hear voices,” "Congratulations Miss Sparkle, you graduated with honors!" said the headmaster. "You hear that big sis?" Twilight smiled as she hugged Sunset. Celestia sat back in her chair in her dream, smiling softly to herself, "If only." She then chuckled when her daughters ran to her side, curled up and fell asleep under her with a yawn. At the sound of the approaching alicorns, the solar diarch looked up, "Luna, Twilight, what are you two doing here?" Twilight gasped at the sight,"Aw, that's sweet." She looked up at Celestia,"Celestia, I've found out a little more about Sunshine. Apparently she was looking for an item called Street Rat's Legacy, do you know anything about it?" "Street rat's legacy?" Celestia put a hoof to her chin. "I can remember it faintly from my mother. She told me how, in the final days of the Street Rat's life, he brought a gem to his country. He said it was meant to be used when the first sun was in its darkest moments. Other that, nothing." "First sun?" Twilight put a hoof to her chin. "Sister, why can't these prophecies ever be specific!?" Luna said with a frown. "Because,then everyone could solve them," Celestia said. "I wish I could know more, but as they say in Saddle Arabia, such is lost in the sands of time." "Sands of Time... are you sure that's not a real place?" Twilight asked. "I do not believe so. I think it's an ancient Saddle Arabian saying," Celestia said. Twilight grumbled to herself,"Mark that off the list..." She looked at Celestia,"Do you know anything about the Queens of Harmony? Or at least do you know any creature that can bring back the dead?" “Wait, our world has bogs of eternal stench, fire swamps, and the lands of killer flowers, but no sands of time!?” Luna asked. "Well, I do not know why that is. The ambassadors simply laughed when I asked them, "Celestia said. Looking to Twilight she said, "The queens were long gone before I was born, Twilight. But as for the necromancer. There is one I have heard about. "Really? Tell me more." Twilight said "There was a necromancer, back in Saddle Arabia, known as Mozenwrath. He ruled an area of the country known as the black sands," Celestia began and looked to Luna. "Luna, dear, mind using your magic for some effect?" Luna nodded as she used her magic to create some scenes. Her horn began to glow brighter as she started to change the world around them to match Celestia’s words. Around Twilight, she was surrounded by black sand, "Nopony knew where he came from, only that he took power from a sorcerer at a young age. He took charge of the black sands and used the dead as his slaves." Around Twilight, undead ponies began to walk around her. The scene then changed to a stallion with a glove over his right hoof. "But this was not enough for him. He made frequent attempts to grab for even stronger magic. He even had the nerve to try and take my sun away. "What!? How did he even manage to do that?" Twilight gasped. "A mystic set of statues that led to an ancient shield," Celestia said simply, then watched as her imagery chained to a little Celestia holding her stuffed sun in fear, "Luna, Could you not show that again?" Luna giggled,"Sorry, couldn't resist! But you're so cute!" "An ancient shield, wow..." Twilight said. She frowned a little,"Not what I was looking for, but thank you, Celestia." Celestia looked at Luna and smiled, as she changed the dream to- "Fawthew, the sweeper has awaken! she has tawen the sun as her fiwst victim," Luna said, standing on top of a sleeping Celestia. "You are welcome, my little Twilight," Celestia nuzzled Twilight. She then looked at Twilight, "How is Sunset?" “Tia!" Luna exclaimed,"Oh, you are so having the cake nightmare tonight..." "Sunset's... doing okay. Speaking of that." Twilight immediately hugged Celestia tightly,"Don't ever leave." Celestia stuck her tongue out at the little sister, and then felt Twilight's warm body against her. Celestia smiled softly, and returned the hug holding Twilight tightly, "I could say the same to the two of you. Give Sunset my love. "I... will." Twilight sniffled before letting go and turning back to the door. Luna then suddenly hugged her sister. Celestia hugged Luna back, and began to breathe softly, "And don't you ever leave me again. Luna." "I'll never leave your side, ever." She nuzzled her sister. Celestia's sun began to rise slowly out of the horizon, hitting Rarity in the eyes, "Ugh, I wish I brought my eye covers," she mumbled to herself as she felt something warm and soft next to her.Turning to her right, she found herself looking into the eyes of Applejack, "Wha-" "Morning Darling," Applejack said with a smile. "Sleep well?" "No you two didn't. I mean, I have never heard anypony be so loud like you two,," Rainbow Dash said as she landed next to the group with a wet mane. "WHAT?!" Rarity shot up in shock and fear Discord was laying under her with a wide grin,"You were real good, baby." "AHHH!" Rarity shrieked as she ran off into a nearby bathroom.  Will walked by Discord, "You had to escalate that didn't you?" “Worth it for the look on her face!" Discord laughed. “Don't be rude Discord," reprimanded Fluttershy as she flew in with some tea. She smiled at Twilight, "Oh morning, Twilight. Rosedust offered all of us some tea." Discord gave a sigh,"Yes, Fluttershy..." Twilight finished combing her hair,"Great!" She levitated the tea over to herself A flutter pony with a teal mane flew in, "Queen Rosedust wishes to deliver you whatever meal you desire and," she took one look at Discor, "WHAT ARE YOU STILL DOING HERE?” Discord grinned at her,"Well, I heard that there was a party, some skim milk was involved, and, then I passed out on the air." “You know what," the teal Flutterpony waist with a shake of her head. "There is an old Flutterpony saying, never ask an Dragoniquis. Anyway, what do you desire, miladies?" Rarity walked out of the pool of water that served as a bath, “Miladies? Oh you are a charmer. I would love to have some-" As Rarity began her o, P Pinkie Pie bounce in, "Hey, has anypony seen Sunset or trixie? Twilight looked around, and then spotted the two leaning on each other,"Oh, they're snuggling!" Trixie let out a snort as she woke up and looked at Sunset. She then heard Twilight and glared at her, "Trixie does not snuggle!" Sunset woke up,"Who's snogging who?" she groaned. "Yoiu were snogging Trixie," Rainbow Dash. "You two were so cute." Fluttershy nodded, "Very adorable." Sunset stepped away with a blush,"We were just sleeping together- I mean, just cuddling- I mean- there is no way out of this, is there?" “Nope, no way Bacon Hair!" Rainbow Dash laughed as she flew to the Flutterpony. "Cider plus all of the fruit you got. I am kind of hungry." "Trixie will have," Trixie began, "A cucumber salad with peanut butter on the lettuce, mixed with hot peppers, catsup, chili powder, cheese, dandelion, applesauce, and a light jelly glaze." Sunset blinked at Trixie,"What is all that? Can you even eat that?" "Oh please, that is a light snack for the Great and Powerful Trixie," Trixie said with a smirk. Will looked as Pinkie Pie was writing on her hoof, “ Should I worried it looks like Pinkie is taking notes?" Twilight shook her head,"Yes, you should be very worried..." The teal flutterpony flew off, while Will shook her head and looked to her friends, "So, where to next?" "First, Ah want to head back to Taros," Applejack said. "We're backtracking? Why?" Rainbow Dash asked. "Well, Buddy kind of wants me to bring him back his four horseshoes," Applejack said. “Why?" Twilight asked. "Yes, tell me so I have someone to kill when I take Sunset's body." Mozenwrath said. "Well, he said we wanted to make something for me. It's kind of a gift for making these satchels we got, "Applejack said. “Okay- wait," Twilight looked at Applejack,"You met a god!? Where!?" "Back in Taros," Applejack said. "In Taros, without anypony noticing..." Twilight said,"But he's a god, he should've noticeable!" "Yeah, weirdest thing. He said that he prefers to be behind a furnace and at a forge then ruling like Celestia." "That's..." Twilight blinked,"That's pretty understandable." she gave a nod "Understandable? The guy has the power to craft awesome armor and he just wants to sit behind a forge all day?" Dash grumbled. "Well, he could be humble," Twilight looked at Dash,"He probably doesn't want to live a royal life, and only to be a normal blacksmith, well, as normal as he can be." Rainbow Dash let out a chickle, "I don't know, if it was me I would be having a giant billboard announcing how awesome I am." "Hmmm," Rarity heard the comment and put down on a notepad (Billboards, Canterlot Carousel)"She does have a point Twilight, why not announce to the world where you are? "Because then everypony in the world would come just to see him, and not his work. Imagine if everypony just came to my house not to rent books, but just for photo ops. It would get pretty tiring after a while." Twilight said. "I can see, it would be horrible for me as well," Rarity nodded. As the food came in, Pinkie Pie happily jumped to her friends, "So as soon as we are done, we move out?" Twilight nodded as the mares finished eating. ------------------------------------------------------ The servant watched as Valtor flew towards her, landing on his feet and wrapping his wings across his chest, "That was foolish, my lord. Now they will expect outside help and will be on their toes." "I know," Valtor said, leaning against a wall. "Then why?" Servant asked. Valtor sighed and looked up at the sky, "For proof." "Proof, sire?" "That I am still my own man. I have vowed to never be under the thumb of anyone again. My mother, the witches, they all have betrayed me and left me to die!" he growled as he punched the wall. Valtor then sighed. "So today, I decided to prove that I am my own man." "Why do you need proof, milord?" asked Servant. "Because, ever since this whole adventure started, I have been taking your suggestions. The times we went to the different worlds to set up the trials necessary for the other guardians to grab the hearts. The trials we set up to break the hunter, all of those were based on your suggestions. The only time I have had any control, was when I had the ability to search the huntress's past and to use what I could find to break her." Valtor said, clenching his fist. "Sire surely you don't think that I am taking over your role? I only brought you back to serve you, not to command you," Servant said, shaking her head and holding up her hoof in defense. "Never crossed my mind, Servant," Valtor smiled as he held the old pony's hoof. "You have been my most trusted friend through this adventure. But I know somepony is controlling me, and doing this will show that no one controls me. I am Valtor, of the Black Flame, the Black Dragon of Domino, and I will not be controlled." Servant smiled, "That is the spirit, my lord. So, shall we wait here in Saddle Arabia or head forward?" "Let's' go, I wait to see what Twilight will figure out about who is controlling who," Valtor said. --------------------------------------------------------------------------- The nine ponies began to walk through the forest, their stomachs full and minds recharged. The sound of the forest gave their journey some much needed life and energy. The group listened to the birds sing and felt the warm energy of the forest flow by them, while Twilight kept ahead of the group and led them on. Twilight looked at a map,"Okay, if we take the train east..." "Again!?" Sunset said,"But last time was so... fast...." "Ah, you'll be fine Bacon-Hair!" Dash said, patting Sunset on the back. Applejack looked to Twilight, Hey, Twi, just how fast did those Riders of Ramone go?" "Approximately 90 mph. Trust me, I know, I blacked out at one point." She looked at Applejack,"Why?" "Well, Ah was thinking, they might have traveled days in mere seconds to get here," Applejack said. Rarity let out a gasp, "Which means we could be walking for weeks!" she then began to swoon onto Applejack's side as they walked out of the forest. Will gulped, and then looked to her heart, "Um, I think I have an idea." Twilight looked at Will,"And that would be?" Sunset shrugged,"We could teleport." "Well, I was thinking about what happened with Erebus. How my heart opened a portal to that amusement park world," Will looked down at her gem. "I was thinking... maybe I could try and open a portal to Taros." "Well, try it." Twilight said,"I mean, what's the worst that could happ- I'm going to be quiet about that." The glares from the group said it all as Will held out her gem to the air. Closing her eyes, she began to draw the heart along the air like a zipper, creating a blue light. As she did this, Servant smiled softly to herself in the distance, chuckling softly. Slowly , the portal opened wide, revealing Taros, "IT worked!" Will shouted, and wavered slightly. "Oh my, are you ok?" asked Fluttershy. "Y-yeah, just that took a lot out me for some reason," Will said, looking down at the heart, which was now dull and pink. Twilight looked at Will with a frown,"Still," She panted,"We're saving that for emergencies if you feel tired after each use. Will nodded, "Right. Thanks Twilight." slowly they all stepped through the portal and landed softly back on the other side.  Twilight looked around,"Alright, now let's find Buddy!" She said, a gleam in her eyes. "Right, so let's see," Applejack said, looking around. "Now, where did Ah leav-" "WELCOME PRINCESS TWILIGHT SPARKLE AND KNIGHTS," Buddy shouted from his forge as he bowed to the passing group. "Bearer of Honesty, it pleases me that you have brought friends with you." Applejack nodded to the bulky Minotaur, "Yep, and even brought ya the horseshoes." "Thank you, they needed to be displayed for her highness. Dear Princess, please give these to Celestia when you see her. Twilight nodded vigorously,"Thank you sir, and I just want to say that it's a great pleasure to meet someone like you!" Using her magic, she guided the horseshoes back into Applejack’s sack. "Oh, sure, show them before I acquire them..." Mozenwrath said with a laugh. "It is my pleasure to meet the one who now holds friendship in her grip. As well as the other bearers. I am even impressed that you have brought guest. " Slowly he walked to Will, Trixie, and Sunset. "Hmmm," he mused as he glowered at them. Sunset gulped,"Uh, hi?" "Interesting, I did not believe that Forgiveness would find a kindred spirit in this age, nor Faith," he said, looking at Trixie. "Two equal virtues, making a journey as one. “Forgiveness?" Sunset blinked,"What do you mean? How do you know?” “Forgiveness, and Faith. Two old friends who used to join the Queens of Harmony during the times of the alicorns. Ha, they were good fighters, but could get on my nerves. As for how I knew... you have the scent of her," Buddy walked to a staff. "Honesty, take this." Applejack watched as the staff flew to her, and quickly she grabbed the staff. It was a green staff, wrapped in vines with runes written on it, "Uh, thanks but Ah'm much more of a-" "Keep it, it is a gift. Weapons have more than one use you know," Buddy said. Twilight looked at Buddy,"Speaking of the Queens, lately I've been getting visions of them, do you know why?" "I am a smith, Magic. I may take the five pools and use them as my quench, and I may use the stones that made the font of magic as my hammer and anvil, but I do not know much about magic. Maybe the items you have gathered are linking you to the queens to see the past," Buddy smiled as he looked at Rarity, who was admiring the armor. "You are intrigued, Generosity?" "Oh, yes! I adore the craftsmanship you put into your work!" Rarity gasped in awe. "Thank you. I made the armors and weapons for the queens personally, which is why I am glad to see them used," Buddy smiled. “No, thank you for creating these." Twilight said with a bow "The worst thing for a blacksmith, is to see their equipment being unused," Buddy said, taking a seat, "It was a pleasure meeting you, now good luck on your journey!” Sunset looked down as they left, deep in thought. Will looked at Sunset as she looked down and walked up next to her, "Something on your mind?" "I... was just thinking about the forest spirit..." She frowned. "I'm betting you're tired of having your mind messed with, aren't you?" Mozenwrath said. "I think he's fine." Fluttershy sai. "He didn't look troubled when he left. U-unless you were thinking about something else." "Uh, yeah, I was, but I... don't want to talk about it..." Sunset then began to think,'That was horrible, all those things it showed me...' "Are you sure Sunset? We have plenty of time before Twilight finds our way to the train station through the maze," Rarity said, overhearing Trixie shouting. "Why would they base their cities in a maze? How do they expect any living creature to find their way through a city? Did they want to get lost," Trixie yelled, throwing her hooves into the air. "Hey, it's a part of their culture!" Twilight said as she flew in the air,"Besides, we get to see so many interesting bits, like that statue of their fifth king!" Trixie mumbled under breath, "That Trixie is pretty sure she had seen twice." "No, I... am fine." Sunset frowned. ignoring Trixie and Twilight’s conversation "Ok, but remember when you feel ready, we are all here for you," Rarity said with a sigh as she walked a little bit a head. Pinkie bounced to Sunset and put a hat on top of her head, "Happy Hat! Now, come one, we only have to more gates to go!" Sunset nodded,"Yeah, that's a plus..." "Hey, sugarcube? Are you sure you're gonna be ok with leaving your wagon behind?" Applejack asked. "Oh, don't worry," Trixie smiled. "That is only Trixie's temporary base, Luna has given Trixie many more like it." "There!" Twilight said, jotting down on her makeshift map,"We should be near the train station. A large blue Minotaur with a long curly mustache walked to the princess,"Alright," he whispered in a voice lower than Fluttershy, "Where are you ponies heading?" "Saddle Arabia, sir," Twilight said, straining her ears a little. The minotaur then let them onto the train Twilight gulped,"This won't be fun..." She held on to the seat. Sunset whimpered as she did the same. “Here we go!" Dash said excitedly, while Fluttershy held onto her friend tightly. "Applejack, if we don't make it, you have always been-" "I know Rare, I know," Applejack said as she held her friend tightly. Will gulped, "I never even got to see my friends again." As the minotaur slowly stretched his arm back, Trixie arched an eyebrow, "What is your problem? this is just a train." Twilight turned to Trixie with a scared look and shook her head. "What is with that shaaaaaaaHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!!!!! Sweet Merciful Luna, Cadence, Buddy, Twilight, Celestia, and anyone else I missed, what the total and utter AHHHHHHHHHHHH!!!!" Trixie screamed as the train broke the sound barrier upon being hit by the Minotaur. Dash pumped the air as train sped along, "YEAHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!!!" "Why must they pick such a horrid way of travel?" Rarity asked as she tried to hold onto the seat. "Please tell me when it's... over?" Fluttershy said as the train slowed down to a halt. Twilight's eyes were closed,"I... hope it is..." She opened one eye as the train stopped. There was a sound of hoofbeats against ground from the outside. Taking a quick look, Will raised an eyebrow, "What are they-" Her answer came as the Saddle Arabians locked the engine with giant boards. Then other horses began to link the boards with their comrades. Taking deep breaths the horses began to run ahead, speeding down the tracks at a similar pace to a normal train. Twilight gave a sigh of relief,"Thank Celestia." She got up,"Now that things have calmed down, I'm going to get some coffee!" She walked into a different car. Sunset was passed out. "Oh my!" Fluttershy squeaked, flying to Sunset and flapping her wings, "Are you ok? Twilight, bring some water with you." Rarity held a hoof to her chest as she panted, while AJ rolled her eyes at a grumbling Rainbow Dash. Trixie was helped up by Will, "Remind Trixie to NEVER take another train." "Ok," Will chuckled. Sunset's eyes fluttered open,"Tell me it's over..." "Yeah, it’s over," Dash sighed as she walked away. "I'm just sorry though." Sunset looked at Rainbow,"For what?" "That the train wrecked Sunset. We're all dead," Dash walked away slowly, "Now we must go to our final resting spot. Fare well." "Rainbow!" AJ admonished. Rainbow would feel a small shock inside of her head. Sunset smirked as her horn glowed. "Nice shot," Aj nudged Sunset. "Yep we're done and these nice saddle arabians are pulling us along!" Pinkie said. A minotaur at the front sighed as he read, "Yeah, it’s a nice train ride to Saddle Arabia, except for the weekly train robbery." "Weekly," Rarity said. "Train," Trixie added. "Robbery?" said Fluttershy. "Yeah, wouldn't worry too much,' the minotaur said. "It only happens on Fridays." Sunset's eyes opened wide,"And today is...?" "Friday," the minotaur said, going back to his paper, not noticing the wide eyes of the eight ponies. In the dining car, several cloaked equines began to mill around. Sunset looked behind her,"Twilight, please hurry up!" her horn began to glow. Twilight hummed to herself as she walked to the counter, not noticing the cloaked figures mulling around,"One cup of coffee and a bottle of water, please?" A short round figure in a cloak shouted, "Hold on, dear ponies! For you are about to be robbed by the greatest thief in the history of Saddle Arabia." "Ninth ma’am, you just got promoted after the candy robbery last month," said a tall cloaked figure, rolling her eyes under the hood. "NINTH! Which, as we all know, is still better than ten! Ninth best thief in the history of Saddle Arabia! The marauder of the many sands, the taker of the cherries, the ultimate kumquat, and the descendant of the greatest thief in the seven deserts Abyiss Malaise! Yes, fear for you are" the thief did not notice that the car runner still worked on making Twilight her coffee. As she tried to jump onto the table, she made feeble attempts at jumping, "Have, help." "Yes mam," droned the tall shadow as she picked up the fat pony and put her on the table. Dramatically, the round pony threw off her cloak in sequence with the other robbers, "Dank Corridors!" "Here you go princess, and goodbye," squeaked the runner as he hid, handing Twilight her coffee. “Thank you-" Twilight said, then watched in horror as the cloak hit her cup and caused it to fall to the ground. She looked down with a neutral expression. Her eyes slowly turned to Dank and glowered. She snorted, her eyes began to glow for a bit,"Excuse me, Miss Corridors, would you mind waiting, just for a bit?" she asked. "Do YOU mind? I am trying to handle a robbery here," Dank said, looking at Twilight insulted. "Now, why don't you go and cower in the corner while the master thief accomplishes her goal." "Uh, ma’am?" Have raised a hoof. "Don't uh me! I have a robbery to accomplish.” "No," Twilight began to seethe before calming herself, barely,"You see, I didn't get my daily dose of coffee. The Flutter Ponies don't have coffee, unfortunately, so I needed that cup. I don't know what WE'LL DO if I don't have my coffee." Her voice began to get a bit louder as her hair singed. "Well, little missy," Dank said, plucking Twilight's nose, "I don't care. So how about you take your caffeine addiction elsewhere!" "Brilliant idea ma’am, antagonize Equestria's newest princess," Have rolled her eyes. "Princess, I don't see any princess. All I see is a purple unicorn with wings and..." her eye widened in horror Twilight's eye twitched as her nose was plucked,"You know, normally, I don't like throwing my title around," her eyes glanced at the scared ponies,"but in this case..." Her eyes went white and her mane and tail crackled as her magic grabbed every thief possible. Sunset blinked as a bandit came through the door, only to scream horribly as he was dragged back. "WE ARE WILLING TO MAKE AN EXCEPTION!"She pulled Dank to her face,"THOU HAVE SCARED CIVILIANS, STOLE MANY THINGS, AND BROKE OUR COFFEE! THY PUNISHMENT SHALL BE SWIFT!" She growled,"TELL US, WHAT GODS DOST THOU PRAY TO!?" "Um, all of them?" Dank said before looking into her white eyes. "Look I can say that I am a brave mare, so let me be the first to say-MURDER MY MEN BUT SPARE ME!!! I haven’t pray to any gods in a while but I am pretty positive that I wet them by now." "Yes, that will appease the Element of Magic," Have said Twilight chuckled a very loud chuckle,"THERE'S NO GETTING OUT OF THIS, KNAVE! NOW, PRAY!" Twilight carefully opened the windows, and chucked the bandits out. "Mudder." muttered Dank before she was thrown out with her men. The keeper smiled as he handed Twilight a new cup, "Wow, I have never seen anyone throw out a robber that fast before." "That's what happens when I don't get my caffeine." she smiled at the keeper,"Thank you, and I'll pay for any damages these guys caused." Sunset raised an eyebrow as she watched several specks flying towards the distance,"What in Celestia's name?" “Oh, maybe somepony is practicing their baseball game!" Pinkie said, looking out the window. "Or maybe we are looking at bugs," Trixie said. Applejack looked to Twilight, "Hey Twilight, any idea what those specks could be?" Twilight took a sip of her coffee as she sat down,"I don't know, birds probably." she shrugged. Soon the grasslands of Taros gave way to the sands of Saddle Arabia. As the train slowly traveled along the rails, the sand passed by the metal giant like a sea passing by a boat. The mares inside would lean against the window, staring at the roving dunes and the passing by small animals. Occasionally, they would pass by the statue of a young Saddle Arabian horse looking out, "Hey, what is that?" Pinkie asked. A mare looked at Pinkie, "Those are sand markers. The son of Street Rat had those installed millennia ago to help guide lost caravans. Of course with the invention of trains, those are mainly relics. But they helped to established the Saddle Arabian trade system. Twilight gasped in awe,"So wonderful!" "Of course, I remember Rough Diamond. I never got to talk to him, being dead and all, but he was always the more economic-focused and more like a sultan than his sister." Mozenwrath said. "Maybe if we're lucky we’ll see the monument to Street Rat's daughter," the mare said. "She was something special. It was she that was said to help banish Mirage from this land forever." Twilight smiled a bit sadly,"She wasn't totally successful, unfortunately." She muttered under her breath. "Look mommy, there it is!" said a little arabian pegasus foal as she pointed out a statue of a mare riding on a carpet to the sky. Mozenwrath chuckled,"Oh, yes, her. Jade was a daddy's girl if I ever saw one. She kept up fighting monsters long after her dad died. Speaking of the rug, whatever happened to that thing?" Trixie patted Twilight's shoulder and hugged her. As the train passed the statue, Applejack looked to the mare, "What is up with that rug she's riding?" "That was her father's. It's said that he would fly to so many places on it, sadly it's been lost to the sands of time," the mare said, taking her foal down the train. Twilight frowned,"Aw, I wanted to see it. I guess it went the way of the genies as well." She sighed. "Please don't mention him!" Mozenwrath growled,"That guy got on my nerves!" The train continued to roll along the tracks, passing by some small towns and a giant canyon as it sped towards its destination. Through most of the day and night it passed by the desert in a slow path until in the afternoon it passed through the canyon to it's final destination. At the end of the tracks, the train neared the capital city, "Now approaching Agrabah!" The conductor yelled as the train went into the station. Over the millennia, the city had changed. No more was it a large city with small stone houses, but a bustling city with ponies everywhere mingling and talking. Throughout the large expanse, ponies could be heard talking and hawking their wares. There were ponies in the streets as far as the eye could see. "Agrabah, it's been too long..." Mozenwrath said with a hint of disgust. Twilight looked at the bustling city,"Wow! I've always wanted to see this place!" She looked at the others,"What do you want to do first!? "Ah have no idea," Applejack said in awe. "I'd like to check the library, and see if they have anything on the key!" Twilight said as she ran off. As Twilight ran off, she took Rainbow Dash in her magic,"You're coming with me, Rainbow!" "Wait, why?" Rainbow shouted as she was dragged away. As Rarity stepped off the platform, she began to squee, "Oh think about it: The silks, the spices, the gems! Who knows what we will find out here. Come along girls!" "Look, Rarity, Ah think we bought enough back in-" "Apple seeds, rare seeds!" shouted a saddle arabian. "Then again..." "Come on Flutters!" Pinkie squealed as she took Fluttershy by the hoof. Will hovered and shouted to Twilight, "Twilight, do you have a place you want to meet?" "Yeah, we'll meet near the front of the palace!" Twilight said with a grin. She winked at Rainbow,"Come on, we need to spend more time together!" "Trixie will continue her investigations," Trixie said as she walked. “Fine, but they better have some awesome books there!" Rainbow Dash shouted. Twilight grinned,"Of course they will! Imagine," She said as the library came into view,"all those spells, artifacts, and history!" Sunset looked towards a museum,"I'd like to check out that museum." Will chuckled and flew next to Sunset, "Mind if I come with?" Sunset nodded,"Sure." She frowned a little. “Hours of boredom, coughing n dust, oh yeah...a blast," Dash rolled her eyes as they stepped into the library. The librarian, a light green arabian horse with a black mane looked and smiled, "OH! Equestrians! I am so excited to see you both," she said, jumping to the two Equestrians. "I mean, you are like the second and third ones I saw this morning." “Second and third?" Twilight asked, using a hoof to hold Rainbow close. "Oh yes, there was this cute little yellow mare with bacon hair passed by here a hour ago. She went in and checked out some really nice books," the green arabian smiled. "Think Sunny has a twin?" Rainbow Dash asked Twilight's eyes widened,"Do you know what she checked out? Do you know if she went anywhere!?" "Well, I don't know where she went, but I do know what she looked up," she smiled and bounded out of the main room and back with a short stack of books. "’Ancient gems’, 'heroes of the past', 'the power of Djinn's’, and my favorite 'Street Rat and Legacy." Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes, "Great, more reading and more waiting around." Twilight grinned,"I know!" She grabbed Rainbow's tail,"Come on, let's go to that table over there!" Her horn glowed a bright red and she winced a little. “Fine!" Rainbow Dash growled a little , but as she picked up the books, she saw Twilight wince. "Twilight, something wrong?" "No, nothing's wrong," Twilight said with a shake of her head,"I just didn't get much sleep." As Dash picked up the books, her eyes glowed a bit purple, giving her a strange urge to read them thoroughly. "Ok," Dash said with a smile, putting down the power of Djinns and began to read through it. Her eyes locking into the book with fierce determination.Rainbow Dash continued to look through the book not knowing why her mind was focused on reading each page. Twilight looked up at Dash while she read Ancient Jewels,"Enjoying yourself?" "Heck yes," Dash said enthusiastically. "Great!" Twilight said. She looked up and took a book titled,'Shadow Spells,' and placed it on the table,"I knew you'd have fun!" "I know, it’s a shock!" Dash exclaimed. "Uh-huh," Twilight hugged Dash,"It's a little weird though." She walked back to her spot, dropping a mathematical equation along the way. Dash squeaked at the hug, "Twilight, are you ok? What do you mean weird?" she looked at the equation and her mind began to decipher it. Twilight looked at Dash and shook her head,"Nothing, erm, I think we'd better check these books out and find a place to stay for a while." "Ice cream time!" squeaked the librarian as she ran past the table with two bowls of ice cream. Then ran back to the desk. Twilight blinked. She grabbed the bowl,"How did she...?" "Who cares, ice cream!" Dash said with a smile. "But, how and when," She sighed,"Oh well." Twilight began to eat the ice cream The green librarian smiled as she handed some drinks before reading a comic labeled 'Space Queen vs. Cosmos' "Are you sure you are all right?" Will asked, looking at the frowning Sunset. Sunset said nothing as she looked towards the museum and looked at the statues in front. "You're tired, aren't you? Tired of everything going against you, things manipulating you and forcing things out of your hooves. The Elements, Valtor, The Spirit, all forced you to see and do things you didn't want. I could help with that. Give me your body, and I'll make it all better." Mozenwrath said. "... I will be." Sunset snarled. "Wow," Will said, looking at the statues in awe. "I wonder what they are?" "Well, my dear friend," said a raspy voice. Behind them stood a short arabian with a turban, "These are some of the statues of the previous sultans of the past, leading up to the current." Sunset turned to the voice,"Wow," She looked at the statues, "And there's even the crazy old man." Mozenwrath said. Sunset walked into the museum, and looked at the artifacts,"Look at all this, so many memories. Oh, is that Mechanikles' spider machine?" Mozenwrath said "Tell, my dear," said the peddler to Sunset, "would you like to see the Street Rat exhibit?" Sunset nodded,"Yes, of course!" "Right, I want to see what my mortal foe has in this exhibit of yours." Mozenwrath said A light Blue arabian smiled at the two ponies, "Ah, and Welcome to the Street Rat exhibit. Oh, I bet you can't wait to see what awesome things are in here. Whoa, Bacon and a jewel bearer, sweet!" he said leading the two mares in side. "Again with the bacon!" Sunset yelled in her mind. "Not another blue thing. I've had enough of those..." Mozenwrath shuddered. "First we begin the journey at the gaining of his best tool the lamp, it was a fun advenute- "Oh,no! He's going through his entire story! Excuse me, I'm going to sleep in your subconscious for a while!" Mozenwrath said. Will listened to the story with great enthusiasm, looking from painting to statue. Sunset marveled as she listened to the story. "And this," the blue stallion said, "is the picture known as the dark forces. Here you can see all of Street Rat's powerful foes: Abiss Malaise, Mechanikles, Mirage, and here in the middle, is Mozenrath. "Wow," Sunset said,"But Mirage, she makes me feel uneasy." "Me too. Hey, they got my good side again!" Mozenwrath chuckled When the two mare looked up, they had found the stallion gone, and then just as suddenly, he reappeared again "-and that is why you should run from genie hunters," the blue stallion said, now wearing a 'I heart Equestria t-shirt' “How did you change the shirt when you left for the bathroom," Will asked. "Oh, needed a change," smiled the stallion. "Now, walk this way to some of the elemental beings he fought." with that, he walked under a hat and began to shuffle off. Two hats fell onto Sunset and Will Sunset blinked as she felt the hat,"Does this guy act a little weird to you?" She looked at Will. "Oh, please don't tell me..." Mozenwrath shuddered. "No, not at all," giggled Will as they walked into the elemental room. "Now, some of these are actually artefacts. Like this," the stallion pointed to a wooden necklace, "Is a replica given to the museum to represent the amulet of the rainbow griffon Thundara." "Wow, Thundara, I've heard of her." Sunset said in amazement. "You have?" Will asked. "Yeah, she was said to be able to control the weather with just a flick of her wrist." Sunset said. "And this is the glass that was said to melt the ice giant, back when he covered all of Agrabah in snow," said the blue arabian as he walked on. "Ah, yes, I remember laughing as I saw the citizens in shock." Mozenwrath chuckled. "Of course all of these pieces represent some of the highlights of the fights with Street Rat's best foes, except Moze... we didn't think about him," winked the blue stallion. Sunset blinked,"What?" "What do you mean you don't think about me!?" Mozenwrath yelled,"I'm way more important than all of these hacks!" The stallion chuckled, "Just kidding, the 'great' Mozenwrath was one of the worst foes of Street Rat. Second to Mirage, who had forced him through many trials. Mozenwrath on the other hoof, matched him in many aspects... except charm." “What!? I'm a thousand times more charming than that Street Rat!" Mozenwrath growled As the stallion led them further down the path, Will whispered, "I think I'm starting to see what you mean. Look at his shirt, when we passed by earlier it said 'I luv Equestrians', then 'Sonata is my waifu', and now 'Mozenwrath is a dipstick, and dies his mane." Sunset blinked,"Wait, does he know...?" She thought. Mozenwrath growled,"I do not dye my mane!" "Are you a dipstick then?" Sunset thought. "No, I- ARGH! I'm going to rip you to shreds, you time-warping idiot!" "As a matter of fact, it was a fight with Mozenwrath, that was one of the hero's last quests," the stallion smiled, his shirt now reading 'me and my buddy'. “Okay, seriously, how are you changing shirts so quickly!" Sunset asked,"But, also, what was his last quest like?" The stallion got up close, and whispered, "MAGIC!" he said throwing his hooves to the side. Smiling he walked down to a circular room, "Well, it apparently was very hush hush. He didn't even let his wife and kids know about it. But what I heard, was that he had heard rumors about Mozenwrath finding an ancient artifact that would've led him to one of the most magical realms in the multiverse, Kandrakar. Street Rat never did trust his daughter to fight Mozenwrath, something about he was to smart for her. So one night, he left on his own with the only two friends that could still fight. Sunset raised an eyebrow,"My goodness..." She frowned,"The Genie and the carpet. What happened next?" The blue stallion smiled softly as he led them to a case, "The hero followed the trail of Mozenwrath over a long time and past a lot of old friends and foes. It was like Mozey wanted Street Rat to have one last farewell before he killed him. Soon Street Rat trailed him to an old cave." “That old, old cave." Mozenwrath said,"Our final battle, and he got me by surprise...” "Mozey was a cocky little twerp, he thought he had everything in hand, but Street Rat won through skill and intelligence and being his usual heroic self," he said, sticking a tongue out at nothing. "Quit mocking me, you blue simpleton!" Mozenwrath said. "If he knows, why isn't he doing anything?" Sunset thought. The stallion smiled, and winked as if to say 'wouldn't you like to know', "This led to the biggest mystery of the Street Rat's life. Street Rat's legacy," he pulled open the case to show a glass ball. "This isn't the crystal of course, no one knows what it looks like. But this is what one person who saw it think it looks like." "What is it supposed to do, and whatever happened to the glove?" Will asked. "The glove has vanished," The stallion said. “What!?" Sunset gasped. "Yep. Street Rat knew he couldn't destroy it, so he left it for his Genie to take care of. Sadly, Genie couldn't destroy it either, so it;s still in that cave," he stallion said. "And the cave's gone isn't it." Sunset said. "Well the genie did his best to hide it. He wanted to make sure no one found it," the stallions said. "But what if somepony needed to find it to save the world or something?" Sunset asked. "Of course, because he will let you find it for that reason." Mozenwrath rolled his eyes. "Well, I heard the map is located in the palace, you wouldn't go there, would you?" "Hmm, well, we do know a princess that could get us there..." Sunset muttered. The stallion then winked, "Maybe she could also help with a little problem of yours." Sunset frowned at him,”Just who are you anyway?” The stallion smiled as he seemed to disappear, "A friend like you never had before." Will opened her mouth, but then heard another stallion rush in, "Sorry, was a little late." the red stallion said. "I am ready to guide... oh, I suppose you didn't need it." Trixie walked down the street, hearing all of the vendors and hawkers selling their wares, "Note to self, perform here later when I have the tim-" she stopped herself when she saw a red and yellow tail duck down an alley. eyebrow arched, she ran down it, only to come to a dead end. Trixie ran out from the alleyway, growling. She never did like it when someone else tricked her, and her nostrils flared n rage. Looking to her left, her purple eyes narrowed in determination as she saw the red tail run down the street. Trixie raced down the street, passing by the various arabians that were walking by. After a few minutes of running, she caught her down one alley way, and leapt to pounce at her quarry. Only to be blinded by a flash, "Ok, that mare is good. Whoever she is, Trixie is going to catch her," the unicorn said as she took a few steps and then backed up when she saw that she was on a tall rooftop. "What the? How did Trixie? When? OH, I am going to kill her!" Trixie said, turning around to walk the opposite direction. Trixie let out a groan as she began to walk, trying to gain her bearings. So focused on her attempt to get off the rooftop, she did not notice her slow descent, until she was back on the ground. As she stepped back onto the ground, she looked over her shoulder for what lifted her down to the ground, only to see a purple carpet with yellow tassels lying on the ground. Trixie shook her head at the odd occurrence and began to walk through the city. Pinkie ran by Trixie, Fluttershy in tow, "Where is he?" "Where is who?" asked Trixie. "The guy who brushed Fluttershy's mane! There was some weird blurry thing that brushed her mane while we were looking at the fuzzy animal exhibit," Pinkie said, looking back and forth. Trixie continued to trot with Pinkie and Fluttershy as they looked through the various stalls and vendors, "Ok, play this by Trixie again?" "Well, I was playing around with the monkeys while Fluttershy was talking to the tigers, " Pinkie began as she looked under the stalls. "When I turned around, looking at some piglets when 'whoosh!' I tuned and a purple blur buzzed around Fluttershy and left her mane a mess!" "It kind of tickled and it wasn't a really big deal," Fluttershy whispered. "Nonetheless, no pony pranks Flutters under my eyes!" Pinkie said, looking around. "Odd, Trixie stood on something purple not too long ago, a carpet," Trixie said. "Ahhh," a blue arabian stallion with a saxaphone said, blowing into it to make some music. "You are talking about the little prankster. He always appears around this time of year." "Prankster?" asked Trixie. "Yep," the blue stallion said, blowing a smoke ring. "Some say, its an imp. Others say it's a spirit mad at Street rat, while others say it's a friendly little spirit." "OH, I remember him the last time I came here," a Yak said, smiling. "My ancestors told me that if I ever wanted to have some fun, head to Agrabah. It's an Odiferous tradition. One time, I was here and I heard my daughter giggling and saw her playing with a purple thing with little yellow tassels. It was cute." Fluttershy smiled, "So, it's actually friendly?" "Then why did it mess with her mane?" asked Pinkie. "Because it's a little prankster," said the blue stallion, before pulling out a pair of drums from nowhere. "Just listen to the arabians and you will hear stories of being saved or being cheered up around this time of year." "Why this time?" Trixie asked. "Because, it's one of the five days important to him," the blue stallion said, looking down at the ground. "One of the five, what do you-" Tricie began to ask, but stood back when she saw him gone. "Ok, mysterious arabians, rugs, and a pony who looks like Sunset running around the town. What is up with this city?" Trixie asked. "Ooh, maybe it-" Pinkie began. Trixie rolled her eyes, "No, it's not some weird ancient draconequus that Valtor awok just to mess with us." As Pinkie deflated, Fluttershy piped in, "Maybe, it’s Sunset's mother? Or not, forget I said anything." "That is what Trixie is thinking as well, come on. There isn't a moment to..." Trixie paused as she felt her mane. Eyes widening, she gasped, "Where did my hat go?" As if in answer, the pointed hat fell onto Trixie's head. Then a purple blur flew in circles around her before flying off. Growling, Trixie ran after it, followed by Pinkie and Flutters Rarity walked up from the street of one of the vendors, a smile on her face and a song in her heart. I parachuted down the Trot Majal I ran along Celestia's wall I made Nightmare Moon fall But who was with me through it all She looked over her shoulder behind her, "Come on Applejack." Rarity arched her eyebrow, "Well, come on" "Nopony." Applejack grumbled. "Oh don't be like that, dear," Rarity said as she walked to a stall, "You love the hard work." "Yeah, but," she grunted as Rarity helped to adjust the mountain or bags and cases that were on the farmer's back. "I didn't think you would have me carry all your shopping! Ah just was going to carry your new clothes and the seeds Ah bought. But you bought dang near the whole stores." "Not all of it, just enough to help with some new designs I came up with," Rarity said, looking at one of the silk sheets. "And you ain't using your magic why?" Applejack asked. Rarity scoffed, "Applejack, I am appalled! You are insinuating that I want to use my telekinesis for such a simple task? We are on a mission here! What if, during the quest, we encounter another barbaric monster or a creature and I run out of mana when we need it the most. Why, I could lead to the death of all our friends because I ran out of magic at a crucial moment." "Didn't we just buy mana potions?" Applejack asked. "That stuff tastes like bile, I would never touch it!" Rarity exclaimed. "And how are ya going to get it home?" Applejack asked with an arched eyebrow. "Oh, what should I do," Rarity swooned. "If only I had a pegasus friend capable of traveling at mach 7 and could actually carry heavy objects. What shall I do?" “Think Rainbow Dash would actually agree?" Applejack asked. "I have my ways," Rarity grinned. She looked at one of the silk cloths, and then let out a gasp as she watched it crumble, "What? But, it shouldn't...i s this counterfeit?" she said, not noticing the purple blur that destroyed the cloth. "Well, I-" Rarity interrupted her with a hoof, "Tut! I have never been so insulted!" "Stupid purple thing," grumbled the mare as the two walked away. As they walked, they quickly ran into Trixie and the others, "Trixie, what is going on?" "Tell Trixie, have you seen a purple blur lately?" Trixie asked. "No, why?" "Because apparently its been playing tricks, and Trixie wants to pay it back for," she let out a gasp as she was spun around and her cape was put on her head. "That!" she yelled, feeling herself again hatless. "Looks like somepony got your hat," Applejack said, chuckling. "There it goes!" Pinkie shouted, pointing to Trixie's hat flying away. "After it!" Twilight blinked as she saw her friends run past the window,"What are they doing?" She grinned and turned to Dash,"Come on, it's probably something dangerous!" The green mare smiled, "Bye, have fun storming the bad guy fortress!" she then bought out a hoof puppet, "Think they got a chance?" "It'll take a miracle," the hoof puppet said. The mare then began to walk away, adjusting her nametag that read 'Hi my name is Eden.' Rainbow Dash flew alongside the girls, "Ok, so why are we running?" "Something took Trixie's hat!" Trixie said as she ran. Applejack panted, "Ah can't believe we are getting worked up over her hat!" "Up there!" Pinkie Pie said as she bounced on some of the tarps after the flying hat. The purple blur flew back and spun Pinkie around before taking off. Rairty gasped, "My word that thing is fast." "Am I the only one who is wondering why the two magic users aren’t using MAGIC?" Rainbow Dash asked. "Excuse me, Dashie, but it's a little hard to get a hold of something going that fast!" Twilight's horn glowed as she attempted to grab the thing. “Let me try!" Dash said, flying off towards the flying blur. Only to get spun around like a top as the object flew off. Trixie looked ahead and made some steps. "Princesses first!" Trixie said. "Sure thing, Trix!"Twilight nodded as she charged her horn to try and grab the thing. The carpet manage to fly just ahead, and into a small hut. As the bearers walked in, they found an old ramshackle home, big enough for one person. The window offered a perfect view of the palace in the distance. All around was various nicknacks including, "My hat!" Trixie cheered, putting it back n with a flourish. "What is this place, besides filthy," Rarity said, kicking aside a broken vase. Looking up she saw a purple carpet with yellow assals that caught her eye. " The place must’ve been here for ages," Applejack said, walking around. "Think this place was ever lived in?" "I don't know, but whoever lived her last had a remarkable taste in furniture," Rarity said, placing her hoof onto the carpet, which twitched at her touch. She took a step back in shock, and tapped again and watched in shock as it twitched. "I-I-I think that the carpet is alive." Fluttershy walked close to the carpet and touched it, as he hoof near it the purple rug move a little. She squeaked and hid behind Rainbow Dash, "Twilight that carpet-" Twilight walked up to it,"Is it a magic carpet!?" She gave a grin. Carpet let out a jump, and flew from the wall to flitter around Twilight before landing back on the ground and bowing to the princess. Pinkie bounced forward, "Wait, are you the purple blur?" The carpet nodded enthusiastically, as if to say 'yes. I like playing around this time of year." "I like him," Pinkie said, smiling. "Wow! I wonder who owned you?" Twilight asked. She looked around,"Sounds like you've been all alone this time." Carpet nodded slowly, and moved as if to sigh. It kicked a little rock around in a solemn way. Fluttershy walked to it, "Did you lose your owner? Who was he?" "Oh, you poor thing!" Twilight said, then she stopped,"Your owner... he wouldn't be Street Rat, would he?" The carpet nodded. Trixie looked shocked, "But, how? Street Rat was millennia ago and-" she paused as it flew around her. "Will you cut that out?" "I think it likes you," Fluttershy said. Twilight chuckled," Well, it's magic, so something kept it in good condition. Hey little guy, do you anything about a key to the Heart of Worlds?" The carpet nodded, and was about to help, when a voice rang out, "What are you seven doing here?" asked a yellow mare with red and yellow hair with greying streaks. Twilight turned and gasped,"Um, we followed this carpet here-" She blinked,"Sunset?" Sunset looked around the crowd,"Uh, excuse me, have you see a purple alicorn run by here?" "Yes, we saw her run that way," one stallion said, pointing to a nearby loft. The mare opened her eyes wide, "My daughter, you know of her? You met her-" she then noticed the wings. "Oh Sweet Celestia, Princess! I am so sorry." "Wait, daughter?" Twilight gasped,"Sunshine!" She smiled. "Sunshine!?" A voice came from behind Sunset's mother. Sunset ran at her, and punched her across the room,"Where've you been!?" Slowly Sunshine got up, "S-sunset? My daughter, oh Celestia." tears began to flow down her face as she knelt down on the ground, "I deserved that, and I know I did. I am sorry, but please understand it was to protect you." "Protect me!?" Sunset yelled,"I practically went insane, trying to learn magic, living in fear for my own mother figure, and then feeling betrayed by said mother figure, all so you could protect me!? From what!?" she stomped her hooves. She whispered one name, "Mozenwrath." Sunset stopped seething for a minute,"What? Mozenwrath?" "I agree, what?" Mozenwrath blinked. "What does he have to do with anything?" Twilight asked. “I read of a curse on our family, one that leads to darkness," she then showed off her flank, her cutie mark of a mostly red sun covering a yellow sphere. " Our family has always been one of balance, light and dark, good and evil. Great power that can be used for a great good and a great evil. When Sunset was born, I performed a divination to see what her destiny was, and what I saw... scared me." "Scared you?" Trixie asked. "Correction, it horrified me!" she said, looking out the window. "I saw her becoming a demon, and worse. I saw the cure on our family coming to light. There is something in our mana pool that makes us a doorway for a spirit like Mozenwrath to come inside.To invade our bodies and use it. I was scared that he would use Sunset as his vessal." Sunset blinked,"And... that's why you came here..." She looked down. "Have you found anything else?" Twilight shot a quick glance at Sunset. "Only that the way to help remove this curse and Mozenwrath from our world is to find Street Rat's legacy. This was the last place I could find any clues," Sunshine say looking down, and then to Sunset. "Sunset, I am so sorry, I needed to know you were safe. So I gave you to the one pony I trusted above all others." Sunset frowned,"... What I really needed was you." She said, walking away,"I believe the clue is in the palace. Let's talk to the sultan." Twilight shook her head. She looked at Sunshine,"Give her time." She said, before following. Sunshine nodded, sighing as she followed the princess. As Trixie followed the other bearers, carpet began to follow her, "What do you think you're doing? Trixie does not-" "I think he likes you, don't you?" Will said, rubbing Carpet's back. Trixie rolled her eyes at this. Rainbow Dash flew over the heads of the alicorn and unicorn, "I agree, it would be quite beneficial." Twilight grinned,"Oh, come on, Trix, don't you think having a magic carpet would be totally radical?" She covered her mouth,"Did I really just say that? I must be losing my mind..." She frowned a little. Applejack arched an eyebrow, "Uh, sugarcube? Are you ok?" Twilight raised an eyebrow at Dash,"Uh, we're fine, just fine." she smiled a little,'Everything is just fine.' She said as Sunset led them to the castle. “Halt!" said a palace guard, looking down at the ten ponies, "What brings you here-Princess!" he then began to bow to Twilight Sparkle. "We're here to see the sultan to discuss something important." Twilight said. "The guard nodded, "Yes, of course, walk this way." he then led them into the large throne room. Ahead of them, a tiny little bird like creature with a turban step into the room. "Ahem," squeaked the little creature. Applejack arched an eyebrow at this, "What type of bird is that?" "I don't know, I have never seen one before," Fluttershy said. Trixie had a confused look on her face, "A imp?" "A what?" “An imp." Twilight said,"A little bird creature that hangs around Saddle Arabia." She looked at it,"What are you doing here?" A memory flashed in Rainbow's head, "Pwincess, what's an imp?" A little cyan and rainbow maned unicorn filly asked Celestia "I work here, I announce the ponies coming in and help organize construction efforts," the imp, Totafaire, said. "Presenting, her royal majesty Princess Twilight Sparkle and company, Lady Dash, Lady Applejack, Lady Rarity, Lady Fluttershy, Lady Pinkie Pie, Lady Sunset Shimmer, and three guests." "Trixie is regulated to guest?" She grumbled. Rainbow Dash arched an eyebrow at the memory, "What was that?" Twilight shrugged,”Guess you’re just not as important as us.” Trixie was taken aback at that comment and raised her hoof to object, Dash put a hoof onto her shoulder, "It’s ok, she wa just kidding." Twilight looked at the sultan,”We’re here for the Heart of Worlds, do you know anything about it, and this mystical cave?” "The Heart of Worlds?" said the green arabian, she shuddered a little. " It is a legendary place, and the key that you are searching for is not to be messed with. Why are you looking for it” "Well, we kinda need it to save the world." Twilight said,"Ever heard of Valtor?" “Valtor, the black dragon?" asked the sultan. "I have heard of him, but I thought he was only a legend. Is he looking for the heart of worlds?" Twilight nodded,"Yes, which means we need that map you have." The sultan sighed, "It's in the treasury, but I should warn you... the journey won't be pleasant. I have no idea what lies back there or what you will face." “So," Twilight gave a smirk,"Basically you're telling us to be careful of random dangers? Awesome!" She trotted over to the treasury. Sunset shook her head,"The dangers can't be worse than we normally face." “Must you be so forthright?" Rainbow Dash asked Twilight. "We are going to need a plan when we get there." Sunset looked at Rainbow with a wide eyed stare,"Did... you just say that?" "Oh, come on!" Twilight grinned,"We don't need that much of a plan!" She opened the doors of the treasury. Applejack walked to Twilight as they stood in the gold covered treasury, "You ok? That was kind of out of the normal for you." "Oh my," Rarity said, looking at the various gems that littered the room. "Will you look at all of these wonderful gems!" "How are we going to find the map in all of this?" Asked Fluttershy. Will flew to the top of the room, "Give me a few minutes." Twilight looked at Applejack,"What do you mean? I'm not acting weird!" She immediately turned around. Sunset looked around, her face scrunched up in thought, "Apparently it was destiny that I ended up with you. And here I thought I picked you because you were less stable then Twilight." Mozenwrath said. "Well, you just liked like Rainbow for a second. You wanted to rush headlong into a scene and Rainbow," Applejack said as Rainbow Dash began to babble on about a scroll she found. "Well, look." "Hmmm, if I was a map playing hide and seek, where would I hide?" Pinkie asked. "Huh," Twilight chuckled. She turned to Applejack,"Well, if it keeps happening? Just... try to ignore it, please?" her face went serious for a moment,"Especially for Rainbow Dash." She smirked as she used her magic,"Now come on, we have a map to find!" Applejack nodded and winked at Twilight, turning to look for the map. Sunshine looked at Sunset and sighed, turning to look at the piles of coins. Her eyes widened as she saw a scroll enveloped by a blue aura, "I think I found it!" Sunset turned and went to the scroll,"What's this blue aura?" She asked as she attempted pick it up with her magic. The orb exploded in a sparkle of light and levitated to Sunset. As it floated in front of her, a line of text appeared, one that wa only visible to Mozenrath and Sunset, 'If you hurt whoever you are possessing, I will find you. Remember, you have never won-SR' "Are you sure that's the map?" Pinkie asked looking over Sunset's shoulder. "It's blank." As Sunset looked on, lines and locations began to appear on the map, invisible to the others. “Please, Street Rat, how can you possibly find me? For once, I will win." Mozenwrath said. "It seems... that only I can read the map." Sunset said. Sunshine stepped back and looked away with a frown, while Rainbow Dash smiled, "Intriguing! It's like it’s working on a mental spell-frame keyed in on a spell. Maybe it works on a dna charm or a positive energy flow." "Well, thank goodness I went shopping earlier," Rarity smiled. "Now we can be prepared for the journey." "Awesome!" Twilight said,"But why does it work with you? What, I'm not awesome enough for it?" She frowned. Sunset raised an eyebrow at the response from Twilight. She looked at Sunshine,"Do you know something?" She frowned. "I think so, tell me... have you been hearing voices or felt a presence within you as of late?" Sunshine asked. "Uh," Sunset gulped,"I don't think I can answer that question." "And why not?" Trixie asked. "Something you're not telling us?" Applejack asked. Rainbow Dash flew next to Sunset, "Girls, it's probably just the reverberations from Valtor's spell. I wouldn't worry about it. It’s like my mom always said, 'Plan for the future, but trust in your friends for now.'" she then smiled at Sunset as she flew off. Sunset blinked,"That... was pretty profound." "Unless she just can't tell us." Twilight said with a frown. She winced as her horn glowed red for a bit,"I'm following Rainbow Dash." She walked out “Firefly never said anything like that," Fluttershy whispered as they walked out of the palace. Rainbow Dash took to the air, smiling, " Hey Twilight, think we should stock up a little before going out. That desert's going to be killer." Twilight looked up,"Oh, come on, I'm sure Rarity already did that," SHe looked at the white unicorn,"Tell me you did, I really want to get there!" “Well, I bought some covering for the heat, and some beautiful looking water caskets for us all, and Applejack bought some food for us," Rarity said, looking back at Applejack. "Yeah, that I carried," the farmer said with a roll of her eyes. "So, we are good to go!" Pinkie cheered. As Trixie walked, she felt a nudging from her left. Looking back at Carpet, she rolled her head, "Trixie supposed you want to come along with us. Well, look you little thing, Trixi will not-Whoa!" she yelped as she was lifted by Carpet. Aw, it wants to fly us!" Sunset said with a smile,"I'd like to ride, provided it isn't too fast." She blinked as Twilight flew up with an enthusiastic woop. Carpet nodded and took the six ponies Onto its back and began to fly. Pinkie Pie immediately began to cheer, "WHOOOO! This is great. Rarity dangled her hooves over the edge of carpet, "I agree, a lot nicer than the riders that we met a few days ago." Sunset nodded as she took out the map, and began to give directions. Twilight looked around as she flew,"Wow, nothing but sand for miles!" The map read, 'beware of the mechanical claw.' Pinkie Pie looked at the map as Sunset read it out, "What do you think that me-Whooooa!" she squealed when three mechanical claws appeared from the sand. When Rainbow looks upon the monstrosities, her eyes glowed purple, showing the best angles of attack. Twilight brought out Equinox, her eyes glowing magenta as her muscles tensed. Rainbow Dash smiled as she began to put on the wingblades for her armor and began to fly, striking the monstrous claws. Applejack soared nearby, striking against the center of the claws, causing the beast to shake violently. Twilight flew up,"I hope that's a good thing..." She frowned as the beast shook. Sunset looked down and fired a magic bolt into it. :Well, that's one obstacle, anything else?" Sunset panted as she looked at her map. Past the wolf and the roc' was the next part of the map. As they flew along the desert gorun, they had to close their eyes as two fierce tornadoes began to blow fiercely. "The wolf and the-" Sunset gasped as the tornadoes blew. Twilight looked the tornadoes and flew up, her eyes glowing magenta again as she attempted to fly around them in the opposite direction. Rainbow Dash followed, but was shocked when she was cut by the white tornado. Tilting up, she began to fly over head, hearing a strange sound, "Twi, wait!" Twilight stopped,"What!?" “These tornadoes, they aren't natural-" Dash began, but heard below. "Stop it, stop this right now," Fluttershy shouted as much as she could. "What?" Asked Rainbow as she hovered next to Fluttershy. "Them, they need to stop fighting before they kill one another," Fluttershy said. "They?" Trixie yelled to be heard. "Listen," Fluttershy said. Twilight blinked as she and Sunset attempted to listen. At first, it was the large howl of the winds as the two tornadoes continues to spin at one another, but over time, a new noise was heard. One sound was a windy howl, like a wolf's, while the other was a bird cry, "A hawk?" Dash asked. "No, it's different somehow. It’s like a screech and less of a caw," Fluttershy said. "And then there is a wolf." Mozenwrath smiled at this, as he whispered one name in Sunset's head, 'Sirocco, its name is Sirrocco." "Sirocco?" Sunset looked to one of the tornado,"Sirocco!" The white tornado stopped for a moment, turning into a wolf. It turned and glared its red eyes at Sunset and ran to her. Panting, it gave her a quick lick and smiled, (Hello, my faithful pet, it’s been a while) Mozenwrath smiled. (Whisper its order to head home, I'll have need of my pet for later) the golden tornado died down, and landing in front of the bearers was a giant hawk like creature with a serpent tongue, "Ok, Twilight, what the buck is that thing?" "A roc," Trixie said, looking on with shock, "Luna mentioned seeing them before." "A what?" Dash asked. "I know rocks, and that is not a rock," Pinkie added. Sunset gasped,"Uh, head home, you'll be needed later." she told the wolf "A weather bird." Twilight said,"They're really massive, I'm surprised Rainbow doesn't know what it was considering she's a weather mare and all." Rainbow Dash flew up to it, and began to pet it, "Hey, I fell asleep during that part of history class. It’s not like all of this history will be important to me later." "What about the reserve exams?" Asked Fluttershy. "Eh, I'll get to it," Dash shrugged. Twilight rolled her eyes as she flew up to it,"So why were these two fighting?" "Yeah, why, Mozenwrath," Sunset thought. Fluttershy flew up to the bird, "The Wolf wanted to fight it. It seemed to have wanted to do it in order to hold somepony back from coming further." I think that means us." Twilight said, then grinned,"Cool." "I think I'm not liking this one bit." Sunset muttered. After giving the roc a clean bill of health, Fluttershy took her place alongside carpet as it took off. Sunshine sighed as she looked ahead, "No coincidences." "What was that?" Will asked. "I said, no coincidences, a rule in science," Sunshine said, pushing her greying mane back. "Sirocco, that machine, and whatever is next... It's almost like Mozenwrath was running a gauntlet to see who was worthy of working with him when he finished street rat." Twilight smirked,"Well, if he were alive, he'd be in for a rude awakening, because why would we work for him?” "No,I mean the monster would work for him after they had killed the street rat," she said. "He was trying to wear him down before the kill and then take whoever was left as his own soldiers." "So, we're his personal recruiting team?" Dash asked. “Oh, that's nice, I'm so glad we could be helpful to him." Sunset muttered. "You're welcome!" Mozenwrath chuckled. Will growled, "I can't believe he's using us like this." "So, what's," Pinkie began, but suddenly her voice became monotone, "Next?" "Pinkie?" Applejack began, "Is something wrong, dear?" she said, her voice now older. Rainbow Dash flew back, "Applejack? You just got-owd! Hey! What?" she noticed her younger body The note on the page read, "Time will meet you again." Sunset blinked,"Time will meet you again, like, what!?" she said, suddenly a teenager. Sunshine, now a young adult, looked up, "Wait, I think I read about this." "WAHHHHHHHH!" cried baby Trixie as she crawled over to Sunset, who now became a teen. "What did you hear, sweetie, "asked an older Fluttershy, her flying having to be supported by Rainbow Dash. Sunset put a hoof on Trixie,"Like, you have!? Like, how do we totally reverse this?" Sunshine frowned,”There should be a gem that messes with time, somewhere.” "Where do we find this gem, though," An elderly Twilight said, pushing up her glasses. "Like, what it look like?" Sunset frowned as she felt her braces. Little Rarity began to concentrate, "I think I almost," she grunted as she felt Fluttershy's closeness, enhancing her powers. Her horn glowed brighter and she looked to the ground, "Thew!" "Good," Old Twilight said, before coughing,"Oh, no..." She said. She used her magic, causing her to wince. "Like, what's the deal?" Teen Sunset asked. "My magic..." She crumpled down to Carpet,"I think it's working against my old body: Pretty much, My magic's too strong for my body now." She winced as she breathed heavily. Teen Sunset frowned,"Well, don't have a cow, I'll, like, totally handle this!" She turned and used her magic to disrupt the gem. The gem glowed brightly before shattering,returning the timeline and the ponies to normal. Rainbow Dash flew to Twilight, "Hey, are you ok?" Twilight gasped,"Yeah, just fine, I just have to remind myself to buy magic dampening pills when I'm 70." She said. Sunset felt her teeth,"I'm normal again!" She jumped for joy Sunshine smiled, “You were so adorable when you were younger." "Ah had no idea you wore braces, sugarcube," Applejack said. Sunset frowned at Sunshine's comment, and then turned to Applejack with a blush,"Well, it's not something I'd like to think about..." "Oh come on, give," Dash said, flying to Sunset. "I mean- ("Momesjty, do I really need to wear these?" asked the rainbow maned unicorn. "Yes, my faithful student," Celestia said, as smoke rose from her flank. "I think when we train in battle spells, this will be for the best. We do not want to hurt the passerbys.") "I used to wear glasses to help with my aim," Dash said. "What do you mean by aim, Rainbow Dash?" Rarity asked. "Well, when I hit targets of course." Sunset blinked,"Hit them with what?" Twilight immediately changed the subject,"So what's next on the map?" The next point on the map, 'Rider of the storm." Dash looked up as the clouds began to darken, "UH oh. Twilight, I think this is bad." "Why is the sky so-" a loud boom followed by laugh made Fluttershy get close to Sunset. "Why, hello there," a female voice boomed. Twilight looked around at the clouds,"Who's there!?" A giant snake-like bird fell from the dark sky, his body black and charred. From the hole that he created, an earth pony with a dark purple coat slowly lowered herself on the cloud, "Well, Valtor was right. You were making good time. And as for my name," the mare laughed, throwing her wild purple mane back. "The name is Stormy, Valtor sends his regards." Twilight growled,"Well, tell Valtor that he can take his regards and shove them!" she fired a bolt towards Stormy. Stormy dodged, bobbing out of the way of the bolt, "Ohh, testy." "Wait, you met Valtor? Where are my friends? What happened to my mind," yelled Will as she threw a bolt of lighting at Stormy. The witch smiled, "Oh you don't know? Well they are right now-" she winced at the pain as a bolt went through her mind. (No, my soldier, you shouldn't spoil the surprise) "Who said they exits. You are just a little mare with wings who is in too big over her head!” Sunset growled,"Don't start!" She yelled, sending a magic ray from her horn at her. Twilight teleported behind Stormy and kicked her in the head. Stormy let out a gasp as she fell from the cloud, spinning around to create a blizzard to hit Twilight with. Letting out and yell, she felt the beam from Sunset hitting her in the back. With a roar she threw a lightning bolt at the carpet, only to watch it blocked by Fluttershy's wings blade. Twilight gasped as she used a barrier to block the blizzard. Sunset charged up her horn to send a few magic bolts at Stormy Focusing on the lighting, Fluttershy redirected to Rainbow, who took into body and flew at high speed to repeatedly hit Stormy. Getting onto a new cloud, Stormy tried to unleash a thunder head, but a hail of diamonds distracted her from firing. Twilight teleported under her cloud and kicked up into her stomach. Stormy was sent flying into the cloud cover, and Will quickly followed. As she broke through, she found nothing there. ----------------------------------- Stormy shook her head as she found herself in a void, "What? Where am I?" "That is what we would like to know," said a female voice. "I was stuck in prison wondering how I was going to break us out when I woke up here." "Icy, Darcy!" cheered Stormy as she ran to her sisters sides. "You're ok!" "Yeah, we are," sighed Darcy. "But I have no idea how or why-" "I have something to do with that," whispered a calm soothing voice. "I have need of the three of you. Tell me, how would you like to get revenge?" "I say," Icy smiled. "Where do I sign up?" --------------------------- Will flew back down, "She's gone." Twilight panted,"Well, that was surprisingly easy." "All of these have been too easy," Applejack said, looking up at Twilight from the carpet. "Twilight, I don't like it. Something ain’t right." "We, Mozenwrath didn't want Street Rat dead by the time he got here. He probably set these trials to be easy on purpose," Sunshine said. "I concur, Twilight ," Rainbow Dash said, looking at the alicorn. "It has been too easy. I fear for the next task." Sunset gulped,"I'm pretty sure Mozy probably expected Street Rat to handle himself..." She looked at the map.‘Before you and I meet, dream a little dream of me.' she read. "Now what in tarnation does that mean?" Applejack asked as Trixie put a hoof to her chin. "Maybe he is going to try and use a sleep spell?" Fluttershy asked. "Dream, a gauntlet of Street Rat's foes..." Trixie began to think to herself. Pinkie Pie bounced up to look ahead, "Oh, maybe the Street Rat faced off against a sleep monster." "I have studied much of Street Rat's history, and I know that to be untrue," Sunshine said. "Dream?" Rainbow Dash said, then her eyes went wide in time with Trixie's. "TWILI-" Twilight's eyes widened,"N- ----------------------------------------------------------------------------- "Sunset? Sunset? Wake up my little one," Celestia called, nudging the sleeping alicorn. A little filly giggled, "Sunny is a sleepy head." Sunset shook her head,"Celestia?" She looked at the filly,"Where am I?" "You're home, silly," giggled the purple unicorn as she snugged to Sunset's leg. "Home with me forever." "Now, Twilight. You know that is unfair. Sunset has responsibilities back home. Much like you have school," Celestia reprimanded her youngest daughter. "Yes, Mom," Twilight said. Then, she looked up with a smiled, "Momejesty, after I finish studying, can I go play with the other crusaders?" "Yes dear," Celestia then looked at Sunset, "You are in Canterlot, my dearest. You came because you wanted to study up on a spell for Applejack. You must have fallen asleep." "But..." Sunset looked around, then she noticed her wings,"But, we were in Saddle Arabia! Sunshine, everyone, this..." She shook her head as she looked at a mirror and saw Mozenwrath staring at her. "You are overworked my dearest," Celestia said, draping a wing over Sunset's body. "Come with me. You must tell me about your friends." Sunset shook her head,"But." "This isn't real, Sunset," Mozenwrath said, "This isn't real, this is a dream isn't it?" She said, gulping,"But it feels real..." "Whatever do you mean sunset? This is as real as you want it to be," Celestia said plainly. "You have friends, you have a life, and you are surrounded by love. No one knows about your crimes, you are loved." "Wait, how do you know about my crimes?" Sunset asked. "You know," Celestia winked at Sunset. Leaning in, she whispered "That time you stole from the cookie jar." Giggling she walked ahead. "Come, your Aunt Luna is waiting. "Aunt Luna?" Sunset said. She got up. "You fool! Don't follow her!" Mozenwrath shouted "Shut up, I'm going to enjoy myself." Sunset growled. ----------------------------------------------------- "Applejack! Come home, you are working too much," Gala called from the house. "Alright Maw!" Applejack answered back, running to the house, looking at all of the apples that she had bucked. "Paw, ain't Big mac back yet?" "Nope, he is still with that little school marm," said the stallion as he walked with his daughter. "She is going to be Missus Apple soon enough. Wait and see." "Ewww, Paw," grumbled Applebloom, a blurry cutie mark on her flank. "That's my teacher you're talking about." "Ok, then let's talk about that little filly you are hanging out with," snarked Rambo. Running into the house in response, Applebloom called out, "MAW!" Applejack chuckled as she leaned against the door. ------------------------------------------------------------------ https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=X5QUOCQgoV4 This is just a thriller Thriller night! OW! Sweetie Belle shouted, striking a pose as the lights went down. Standing just off to the side, Rarity began to stomp her hooves, "Brava! I say Brava!" "Rarity!" Squeaked Sweetie Belle as she ran to her big sister and hugged her tightly. "I though-" "Nonsense," Rarity said, running her hoof through her sister's mane, "I would not miss my little sister's command performance for the princesses for all of the world. Especially when she is wearing my dress." "Our dress," said a blue unicorn with an orange mane. Next to her, an earth pony with a blue mane smiled as she looked to Rarity. "Did we do good?" asked Coco. "Of course. I expect nothing less from the Manehatten branch of my empire. You make the world shine, Coco," Rarity smiled. ---------------------------------------------- There were days when ponies did battle, when ponies were angry, and were upset with one another. But that was not today, today was a day of fun and laughs. Pinkie Pie couldn't help but smile as everypony began to laugh, sing, and dance with one another. Skipping, she waved hello to a centaur with a red face and a light pink unicorn with a blue mane. Looking around, she saw Valtor with a big grin and a saucer of cupcakes. --------------------------------------------------------------------- Fluttershy sighed as she laid back in her cottage. Her animals were cared for, Discord was playing with her friends, and the world seemed to be a calm place once more. --------------------------------------------------------------------- "And the winner," shouted the announcer. "Rainbow Dash!" "Was there any doubt?" Rainbow Dash smirked, turning to look at her little sister. "Huh Scoots." "Nope, big sis!" Cheered her little sister as she hugged her leg. ----------------------------------------------------------------------- Will stood on a balcony, listening to the party. It was the second one that her parents had that month, and she was a little tired, "Something wrong?" "Huh? Oh, nothing Matt," Will said, leaning onto the shoulder of a tall winged stallion with long black mane. "I just didn't think mom and dad would have another party so soon." "Well, it’s not everyday that they find out their only daughter is expecting the same time that they are," Matt said, nuzzling his wife. "Mmmmm, yeah," Will sighed. She then looked up, "How are the others?" "Fine, they miss you. They love you, like I do," Matt said. --------------------------------------------------------------- "I love you, Mommy," sighed Sunset as she snuggled into Sunshine's legs. ------------------------------------------------------------------------ Trixie sighed as she waved goodbye to her seven friends, glad that the gave her a ride home. As she opened the door to her wagon, she was taken back by a shout of, "Congratulations!" Trixie shook her head as she saw the two blue unicorns in front of her, "Mother? Checker? You... you came!" Hazel Lulamoon nodded as she nuzzled her youngest daughter, "fg course I did. I wouldn't miss my little girl's most special night." "You were wonderful little sister," Checker monarch smiled as she nuzzled her little sister. "You made me proud." "Jealous?" smirked Trixie. Checker shook her head, "Never." ----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------- Twilight awoke inside the dream realm, a symbol glowing on her chest,"Not again..." She looked around,"Alright, time to find one of their doors..." Twilight's horn glowed, eight strings flew from it. The closest string was a dark blue string leading to a door with a wand cutie mark. As Twilight neared, she could hear an echo, "Are you sure? This isn't like before, they are happy.” "..." Twilight growled,"Are they? Why should I let them have fake happiness!?" she walked closer to Trixie's door. “Be my guest," the voice echoed. ----------------------------- The door opened slowly, revealing the wagon and Trixie partying with her mother and sister. Trixie turned her head to look at Twilight, "Sparkle?" her eyes then widened, before shaking her head, "No, no no no. Please...n ot this. Don't tell me that his is just a dream." Twilight sighed as she walked up to Trixie,"I... am sorry." She placed a hoof on Trixie's shoulder. Trixie's eyes displayed a multitude of emotions at once, but she quickly put her hat over her eyes, and said "Let's go. Trixie needs to...she needs to, she then leaned into Twilight's shoulder, "She's not even here and she knows how to hurt me!" Twilight gave Trixie a hug, and then led her out the door Looking back at the doors, Trixie turned ot her rival, "Ok, so how do you want to divide this up. I get Will and Sunshine and you get your friends?" Twilight nodded,"And we stop at Sunset." She said, heading off towards Applejack's dream. Trixie nodded, opening Sunshine's door, "You, don't need to tell me... this is a dream. I didn't think it would be this simple to wipe away years." Sunshine said with a sigh as she walked out of her door. Trixie ran over to Will's door. -------------------------------------------------- Applejack began to eat her next meal when she heard the door, "Oh, howdy Twilight! What brings you here?" “Applejack..." Twilight gulped as she saw her friend's parents,"This..." She choked a bit,"This isn't real." Applejack chuckled, "Wha-what do you mean, Twilight? Of course this is real! Mom and Dad are Alive, Applebloom has her cutie mark, and.. Twilight immediately put a hoof on Applejack's shoulder,"Applejack, think! You've been through this kind of thing, it... it isn't real. Think, notice Apple Bloom's 'Cutie Mark.' It's blurry, why can't you see it clearly?" Well, that's simple. It's because...because," Applejack paused, and then furrowed her brow. "Let's go Twilight. Ah need to work out some aggression." Twilight nodded as she led Applejack out, and headed towards Fluttershy's door. Fluttershy let out a soft yawn a she turned to the two approaching mares, "Oh, hello Applejack and Twilight. Isn't today a wonderful day?" “Fluttershy," Twilight gave a heavy sigh,"This... isn't real." "What? No, it has to be real, look," Fluttershy said, pointing outside. "Everything is so calm and peaceful. Nothing bad is really happening, and no monsters are out. It has to be." Applejack shook her head, "Sorry, sugarcube." “Fluttershy,"Twilight walked up to her,"This is all a fabrication, just a illusion made to keep you happy." "But," Fluttershy stopped and then looked behind her. Letting out a sigh, she turned to Applejack and Twilight. "It wouldn't be that easy, would it?" "You know the world can be a bad place sugar, would you really want nothing bad," Applejack asked. "No. Ok Twilight, let's go," Fluttershy said. Twilight sniffled,"I'm sorry." She said as she led them out, and towards Rarity's door. Fluttershy said nothing, opening the door for Twilight. When they entered, they could hear the ballet music of a grand gala, where all of the others were dancing. Rarity twirled by them, leaving the foreleg of a stallion ," Oh girls! You wouldn't believe the evening I had. Sweetie Belle and friends-" "Rarity," Applejack said. "-and then there was Spike with that Mina dragon," "Rarity," Applejack said again. "And then there was Shining Armor and Cadence's son who just asked me-" Twilight frowned, her eyes glowing magenta for a second as she slapped Rarity,"Get a hold of yourself, mare!" "Oof!" Rarity exclaimed. "Twilight, why on earth did you do that for?" "Because you were losing yourself Rare," Applejack said, lowering her hat over her eyes. "You're in a dream." "Applejack, dear, what do you mean? I have everything I could want, the dreams of my friends have been made real, and..." she began to look behind her. "Odd, but I don't see Sunset here. She should be here, as well." "Rarity, if this was a world where you helped everypony, why isn't she here," asked Fluttershy. A depressed sigh escaped her lips, "Because I haven't spent nearly enough time with her to know everything about her wants." Twilight shook her head,"And you won't get to know her, if you stay here." Your right," Rarity said, her look of determination coming back to her. "Let's go." Trixie opened the door to Will's dream, and then stepped back in horror, "What on Earth?' Will slowly turned her head to look at Trixie, "Trixie, you're here. Isn't this wonderful? I found my friends and family!" Trixie shook her head, looking at all of the blank faces, "Will... they're blank." "No they're not," Will shook. "I know what my friends look like. I know my own parent's faces, I can dream of who they are!" "Will, Trixie is-" "I know this is just a dream!" Will shouted. "I just wanted to...to...” Trixie hugged her friend, "I know, I know. Let's go." Twilight opened Pinkie's dream door As the door opened, Pinkie Pie tackle glomped her best friend, "Twilight! That dream was so awesome, I need to share it! I mean, there was so many ideas in there that I am going to pop!” "Pinkie, didn’t you want that world?" Fluttershy asked. Pinkie shook her head, "Well, I did... at first. I mean, who wouldn't want a world where we are all laughing, smiling, and giggling and having fun. Why wouldn't I love it when the world is one big party and nobody is mean and angry. But-" "But what?" Applejack asked. "When I thought about it, no I wouldn't. Because, then you aren't yourself," Pinkie giggled. "I want genuine smiles, I want ponies to laugh because they are happy." Twilight smiled,"Thank you, Pinkie," She said as her hoof touched Rainbow Dash's The door opened to the sound of a roaring crowd, Rainbow Dash flew down to her friends, "Hey girls! Did ya catch the awesome show?" "Uh, no Rainbow, as a matter of fact," Twilight frowned at the crowd,"We've got to take you out of this dream..." "Wait, what? Applejack, tell me she's," Rainbow Dash looked to Applejack, who shook her head. "OH, BUCKING MIRAGE!" "Ah know sugarcube, Ah know," Applejack said, nodding. "So, who's left?" “Sunset." Twilight said, she opened the door, and walked towards Sunset's door. As she went through, a barrier would stop the others from coming in. Twilight looked behind her in shock, "Hello, Twilight." Sunset said, looking at a door to the throne room of Canterlot. Twilight turned and blinked at Sunset's alicorn form,"Sunset, what is this..." "A life I always wanted, a life I should've had, a life I needed, if only ponies had paid attention to what I wanted!" Sunset said, turning towards Twilight,"I felt ignored sometimes, felt so alone, I felt like I needed more power to get Celestia, or find my mother," She teared up,"I wanted a sister, and I wanted a family." She looked away,"I screwed that up, didn't I?" Twilight walked over to Sunset,"You can start again, Sunset, but you don't need fake happiness." "... I know." Sunset sniffled,"But I'll get it again..." She muttered. "What was that?" "Nothing..." She said as they left. The girls all hugged Sunset as she came out, and the world began to dimmed, "Ah Twilight, I am a little shocked to see you here." a familiar feline voice spoke. Twilight swung her sword in the direction of the voice,"Mirage!" She yelled. "Oh, don't bother looking for me, dear," Mirage chuckled. "Ah want to find you, and beat you so hard that nopony ever has to see your bucking face again in anyverse," Applejack growled. "Such language," Mirage chuckled. "As I said, I am not here. I am busy destroying the lives of another set of bearers in another universe. This is just an echo of me that I left for you to find. Well, Street Rat, but you coming in was a nice benefit. I have to say, I am glad to see that you got out of my dreams." "An echo, huh!? And how about you let us out of this world, Mirage!" Twilight growled, her horn glowing a bright red as her coat went a little darker. This went unnoticed by the bearers as they searched for the feline, "Don't worry, I will. Oh, When you get to the chamber, it's' going to be fun." she chuckled. After a flash of light, the ponies would find themselves in front of a large set of doors. Behind them, a set of undead ponies began to shamble away. Twilight blinked,"How?" She looked behind them at the undead ponies shambling away,"They must've done that while we were asleep." She frowned as she turned to the double doors. Sunset walked to them,"Well, what are we waiting for..." She used her hooves to open them. The doors slowly opened, presenting a large sandy room. Burn marks, shattered vases, and torn rags littered the area. All around them, signs of a final battle were evident, "Can't say much for the decor." "The genie must have put a sealing spell here," Sunshine said. Rainbow Dash flew around the circular room, "So, where is the glove?" "Look!" Pinkie said, pointing to a throne sitting at the back of the room, where a blue glove rested. Sunset's eyes opened wide, she stared as she saw the glove was still attached to a unicorn skeleton, with a dagger in it's chest. Twilight walked up to it, and made a face in disgust,"Ew, I'd hate to do this to a corpse." "That's okay, I'm not using it." Mozenwrath said in Sunset's head. Twilight pulled the glove off and her eyes went white. Twilight blinked,"This isn't Friendship's body!" She thought as she felt her hoof encased in a glove. She was indeed tall, but she noticed that the body she was in was more masculine,"Who-" The body she was in looked up to see a stallion in a purple vest and a fez with a greying mane and a beard. Her body coughed, Street Rat's pirceing black eyes, looked at Moenwrath, "You hve a back up plan, you always do." Of course... I do." Mozenwrath said with another cough,"I will not die, today. I will survive, I always do. While you will die old and feeble, I will stay alive." Twilight felt his horn glow for a split second. "I might one day,but" Street Rat chuckled. "You can bet, I will find a way to stop you, I always will." he then turned away from his old foe, walking to the door. With a sigh, he muttered, "Jas is right, I am getting too old for this." Mozenwrath's eyes dashed over to an eel creature,"Xerxes, sleep. I will return, in a new body. I may have to wait centuries, but I will return..." His eyes closed as Twilight felt herself fly away from the body. Several years flew by before her eyes, until stopping at a yellow unicorn,"There, that's the one." Sunset watched,"Alright, do it if you must." She thought. Mozenwrath smiled, slowly, Sunset walked over to the center, and screamed as her horn glowed green, and her once yellow streaks turned black. 'Sunset' laughed with a deeper voice,"Finally!" Rainbow dash landed next to Fluttershy, "What's going on with Sunset?" 'Sunset' walked up to Twilight and smiled,"Perfect, she isn't even aware of me." She said as she grabbed the glove and put it on, feeling energy course through her,"It fits just like it used to!" Applejack ran to Sunset, "Hey, what y'all think yer doing!" Mozenwrath shot a beam of magic at Applejack,"I'm taking back what's mine!" She shouted, her eyes glowing,"Now, can I have the horseshoes, please?" "APPLEJACK!" Rainbow Dash yelled as she flew at Sunset. "Why should Ah give them to you? Who are you? You ain't Sunset!" Applejack asked "Oh, I don't have to introduce myself, do I?" She looked at Sunshine. She put up a barrier around Rainbow Dash,"Honestly, I was in her mind for a week, I know how headstrong and stupid you can be, Rainbow Dash." "No, No...GET OUT OF MY DAUGHTER YOU MONSTER!" Shouted Sunshine. "Mozenwrath?" shuddered Fluttershy. "Hey!" Dash yelled as she began to kick at the barrier. Mozenwrath turned and teleported the bubble with Dash inside away,"One down," She turned to Sunshine,"Sorry, but your daughter did this willingly." She looked at Applejack and used her magic to trap her hooves. Applejack struggled, and Rarity raced behind him with Vorpal drawn, but hesitated as she looked at Sunset, "No..." "Hold on," Fluttershy said as she flew to Applejack to help her out. Pinkie Pie pulled out her cannon, "Liar! Why would she do that?" Mozenwrath pulled up her hoof and fired several bolts at Rarity from it,"She just got tired of being manipulated. After all, the Elements forced her to change, the Spirit showed her horrible things, Celestia wasn't attentive enough," She smirked as she lifted the horseshoes from Applejack's saddle bags,"And dear old Mommy didn't care for her." She put the shoes on. Sunshine shuddered, "No, it wasn't... I failed." as Sunshine whimpered, Applejack struggled to move. Rarity tried to block the bolts as Pinkie fired her party cannon, "But, the Elements were trying to help her!" Fluttershy argued. “Help her!? They forced her to see what she has wrought, they forced her to be powerless, they forced her to change her mind." Mozenwrath said. He put up a shield to block the confetti as he used his horn to teleport Applejack away,"Ironic, isn't it? You left your daughter to protect her, and all you did was make her more vulnerable." "And what did you do to Rainbow Dash!" Screamed Pinkie Once free, Applejack ran to Mozenwrath, with all of the attention to pinch her, "Just get out of mah friend's body!" "Twilight, wake up, we need you!" Fluttershy said to Twilight, shaking her. "I sent her to a place where she won't use her abilities to hinder me. The same place I will send you all." Her horn glowed as she teleported Applejack just before she punched her. She turned to Pinkie,"I'll enjoy this, you kind of annoyed me." She fired a bolt at Pinkie "Hey! I don’t anno-" Pinkie began, but was sent away. Fluttershy trembled, but stood her ground a she flew at Mozenwrath. "Give my friends back!" A faint shimmer could be seen near Twilight, "How the buck do you get out of this stupid vision thing?" Mozenwrath closed her eyes,"Kind Fluttershy, I shan't look at your eyes, for I fear the Stare." She fired a beam at the pegasus. She looked over at the shimmer,"Don't bother, Magician, that spell's near impossible to break." She turned to Rarity and fired a beam at her. “Flutter-" Rarity screamed as she was beamed away. "(BUCK!)" Trixie whispered. "So, what are you going to do to the great and powerful Trixie? Send her away as well, leaving you to kill Twilight and Sunshine?” Mozenwrath smirked as she walked towards the showpony,"Yes, I will send you away, as for the other things, that depends on Sunshine's actions," She fired a beam at Trixie "What do you mean-" Trixie began, but her voice was silenced by the beam. "What do you mean, by my actions?" asked Sunshine. Mozenwrath turned to Sunshine,"Well, are you going to fight me? Try to stop me? I know you want to save your poor daughter," She smiled. "I... can't." Sunshine said , bowing down. "I failed in protecting her, I failed in being a mother, and I am not strong enough to beat you." "Oh, poor thing." Mozenwrath chuckled, her horn glowing,"Alright, then cower, and watch as I take your li-" A purple beam smashed into her. Twilight got up, her mane flowing and her eyes completely white,"Let. Her. Go!" She said, her horn charging for another blast. "Oh, no. I was hoping you'd be out for longer." Mozenwrath frowned,"Oh well. I don't want to fight you, not here, so bye!" She teleported away. Twilight growled, then she shuddered as she looked at Sunshine,"What did he do to my friends?" A tear fell from her pure white eyes. Will flew right behind Mozenwrath, causing her hooves to crackle, but Sunshine shook her head. Nodding, the blue mare flew up into the rafters and hid. Will quietly whispered o herself, "I have never saw Twilight like this." Twilight growled,"Sunshine, help Will find them!" She glared at her,"I'll talk to you, later!" She walked out of the cave, and screamed, magic flowing off of her, causing magic to ripple across the sands. Mozenwrath walked towards Agrabah, using her horn to summon mumluks, and then stopped and turned to see a bright light in the distance. Luna gasped,"Sister, you feel that!?" She looked at a light in the distance. Celestia nodded, "Oh, my faithful student...nwhat has happened to you." In the Everfree Forest, a cloaked figure chuckled,"Oh, that power... this'll be interesting.." He put a red hand to his chin. "Ugghm" Cadence winced, holding her her stomach as she backed a few steps. "Cadey!" Shining yelled as he went to Cadence's side, leaving behind his plans for a scavenger hunt. "What's wrong? Is it the baby?" Cadence wearily shook her head, "No, I just felt a power surge of magic. Like somepony just tampered with a harmonic source and is causing a magical feedback." "No," Shining's eyes went wide in horror as he looked tot eh bright like, "Twily." Somewhere, in Manehatten, Valtor sits in a cafe and drinks a bit of soda. Turning his head to look towards the light, he arched an eyebrow, "Servant, what is that light?" "Oh, nothing my lord, just a player moving her particular piece forward," Chuckling lowly, the servant whispered (What are you going to do, bearer?) > O is for Overpowered > -------------------------------------------------------------------------- Slowly the doors to the chamber opened and Will walked out, a despondent Sunshine following close behind. Once they were out, Sunshine fell to her knees and began to cry, "I failed, I couldn't save her. Everything I did was all for nothing..." she then watched as Will began to walk ahead. "Where are you going?" Narrowing her eyes, Will stated calmly, "To save my friends, and then kick Mozenwrath's tail." "Didn't you hear what I just said? I failed her, we all failed in saving her! Now Mozenwrath has her body and soul and Twilight has gone out of control! We have failed," Sunshine yelled to Will, tears rolling down her cheeks. "Oh will you get over yourself!?" Will shouted, walking up to her and putting a hoof to Sunshine's haunches. "Do you know what it really means to fail and lose anything? Do you know what happened to me? I have been thrown into a world I am not even sure is my own, have my mind ripped to shreds, Don't even know if the friends that I love the most are real or just figments of my own imagination, been told that I am just a delivery girl for this thing," to empathise she held up the heart of Kandrakar, " face monsters, heartless, nobodies, and my own fears. So don't you think that you have failed anything! Now if you excuse me, I have something to do." "Didn't you say you have no idea if your memories are real? Why are you putting so much effort into saving us?" asked Sunshine. "Because there are 12 girls out there who need me," Will said softly "Twelve?" Sunshine asked. "Twilight Sparkle, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, Applejack, Rarity, Fluttershy, Trixie Sunset Shimmer, and" Will sighed, seeing four mares in her mind as they held their hooves out to her. "Irma, Taranee, Cornelia, and Hay Lin." “You don't even know if they are real," Sunshine growled. "The warmth, the love, and the happiest I feel when I think about them is real. So what if they’re figments of my imagination and this is just me trying to cope, I still feel something when I think about the and that is what I am fighting for! Now, follow or get out of my " Will said walking away. Sunshine nodded and began to follow Will. Suddenly a purple object flew by them, "Carpet!" "He must have waited for us," Sunshine said. Will looked at Carpet, "Do you know where Trixie is?" At this Carpet nodded and laid down for Sunshine to get on. Once on Carpet, the two ponies sped through the air, where they could hear a voice yelling, "Stupid, bucking son of a cow! Trixie cannot believe that she was sent all the way here, that no good-" "Trixie," shoute Will as she saw Trixie walk back and forth through the sand. "Will, Sunshine, Over here!," Trixie shouted, her hooves waving. Sunshine cracked her head to the side, "Why are you so upset, miss Trixie? You are near a mile marker.” Trixie went up to Sunshine's face, "That is just it!! Trixie didn't get sent to some hell hole, she didn't get sent to some monster battle. She just got sent out of the way! Like like-" "You are weaker than him?" asked Sunshine. "I mean\n you are-" "Finish that sentence and Trixie will bury you," Trixie growled. Will let out a chuckle, "It’s no offense Trixie, but he has probably met magic users like you before and probably sees you as weak. Don't worry," she smirked, "We're about to prove how wrong he is!" Trixie smirked at this as she got up on the carpet, "Why are you so confident in my skills?" "And now, I will kill Teller slowly. But don't worry, he is used to this," the big magician said, putting his partner under a chain saw. "Whooo!" cheered Will, looking back at her boyfriend. "What's up?" "I am just wondering how you can stils be excited at illusions. I mean, you cast lightning from your fingertips," Matt asked. Will smiled softly, "Well, yeah I can do that. But my magic? that's easy. To trick people like they can.. .is something else. That's real magic. "Well, they must be magicians," Irma said. "I tried to use my suggestion powers on Teller to convince him to talk, and he resisted." "I have a love for magicians," Will smiled. "Trixie, think you have a spell that can find the others?" Trixie nodded and began to concentrate, igniting her horn with a light violet aura. Will jumped back when she saw a string wrapped around her hoof, matching her coat color. Then she was 7 more strings connected to Trixie's horn, "What on earth?" "It's a spell that Twilight taught Trixie. It allows her to spend a little magic to locate the others in case of emergency," Trixie said, looking at the white string, "Rarity is that way!" Quickly, the carpet flew through the air, soaring at speeds that some would think impossible for something that lacked wings. After several moments, the trio came to a large cave, "Hello, is anypony there?" Rarity's voice echoed from deep within the cavern. "Rarity?" Trixie yelled. "Hang on, we're coming!" shouted Will as she flew in, only to be blocked by her own face. Taking a step back, Will exclaimed, "What on earth?" "It's a cavern of... mirrors," said Sunshine as she placed her her hoof on one. Then she looked to another and gasped when she saw herself looking very skinny. Trixie walked by a few, admiring her visage and her looks. There was one that showed her in a full alicorn regalia, and another that showed her with matted fur. Trixie smiled at the one that showed her with a coat similar to Luna's. Sunshine began to pace around the foyer of the maze, a smile of hope coming to her face. Will on the other hoof, continued to fly through the mirrors. After a few minutes of flying, she landed on the ground and took a deep breath. Turning her head to look at a mirrored path, she shouted, "Rarity, how good at catching spells are you?" "Not very, but," she looked at Vorpal, and levitated some gems, "I should be able to block it. Why?" she then shrieked when she saw a lighting bolt coming at her. "Which direction did it come from?" Will shouted. "To the left," Rarity said, panting, only to smile a little bit later. After dodging three lightning bolt, she found herself running right into Will, "Will! That was brilliant! But, how on earth did you figure out the angles to hit?" Will chuckled, "Well, truth be told. I just guessed. But I knew my lighting spell would reflect off of glass. So I used that to find you." "Brilliant!" Rarity exclaimed as Sunshine an Trixie came running in. "I have to thank you for finding me. As much as I do like looking gorgeous, even this was too much for me." "Good, now may we can go and find a mirror," Sunshine said, stepping forward. "Take your pick," Trixie snarked. "No, I mean a particular kind of mirror. See, I just remembered about how to find Street Rats legacy, or at least what I heard. Apparently the key is to use the mirror that shows the truth behind appearances," Sunshine sadi. Trixie growled, "Now what on earth does that mean?" "Maybe a mirror that shows your innerself?" asked Will as she walked by a mirror that showed her as a human, wearing a green shirt and fairy wings. Shaking her head at the sight, Will continue to walk away, looking at each mirror. Rarity walked towards the mirror that Will had looked at, and placed a hoof on the image that stared back at her. The image that stared back at her was her as a pure white alicorn, with long flowing purple mane. Taking a step back, Rarity smiled and began to pull on it, removing the mirror. With a curt smile, Rarity walked to the others," Found it." Trixie looked at the mirror, and was shocked to see it wa the one that showed her as an alicorn, "H-How are you so sure?" "Wimple, it's the truth behind appearances. Me and the others have our destinies tied to the tree, do we not?" Rarity smiled. "So, that means you would show up as alicorn," Sunshine said, watching as Will flew out. Fluttershy is up ahead!" Trixie said, looking at the string connecting to Fluttershy. As they flew closer, the world around them became darker and darker, until they could only see the light of the string that connected them. They could hear trembling and shivering from up ahead. Narrowing her eyes, Rarity used her magic to illuminate the dark area, to reveal a curled up Fluttershy. A soft smile came to her as she looked up at her friend, "Oh, thank goodness. I was so worried that I would never find my way out." she said with a smile as she flew to the carpet. As the ponies flew through the air, Trixie looked at Fluttershy "Fluttershy, there is something in your feathers." "What?" the timid pegasus asked as she landed on the carpet. Upon stretching out her wing, a small shiny object fell out. Rarity scooted over to her friend and saw a small crystal laying on the back of carpet, "My word, what is this?" "It looks like a crystal," Trixie said, looking at the gem in Rarity's magic. "More like a piece of one," Rarity said, spinning the gem around in a circle. "Look at it, the way it’s cut, the way it’s shaped. It is obvious that this was separated from another larger piece. Fluttershy looked at it, "But, who would cut a gem like this." "I, don't know," Rarity said shaking her mane. "Hey, anypony out there?" Applejack's voice echoed. Rarity looked over the side of carpet at a giant hole in the ground, "Applejack, what are you doing down there?" "Trying to, uggh." she grunted, feeling the slime covering her orange hoove. "Get the buck out of this stupid hole!!" "Maybe I can fly down there," Will said. Applejack shook her head, "Bad idea. Whatever this slime is, it’s oozing from the walls. It's like this thing was made for earth ponies to get trapped in!" "I'm not strong enough to lift her out,"Trixie said, looking down at the hole. Rarity, looked at her bags and sighed. After a few moments, Applejack saw a long rope sliding down to her, " What, Oh Rares..." she moaned as she touched the silken rope that was near her. "You didn't have to tear your silk dress." Rarity could only ask, "My dear, have you met me?" "Yeah," Applejack said, straightening her hat. "And Am grateful everyday to know ya. Now pull me wup!" With a heave the mare began to pull Applejack up, stopping only for a moment when Applejack wouldn’t budge. After a few struggling moments, the mares got Applejack out of the whole. Will looked at Applejack, "Why did you pause.?" "Because, " Applejack said, pulling out a crystal from her heat, "Ah found this.” "What, another crystal" Trixie asked. Rarity immediately went to it, "Excuse me." levitating the gem she had earlier with the one from Fluttershy, she began to match the sides up evenly, "Oh my... it fits!" Sunshine looked at the mirror that showed the truth and held it up, "Wait... those pieces" looking at the mirror, she saw that the two gems would combine with a third to make a whole, "Oh my... "This is," Trixie began. "Street Rat's legacy! We found it!" Sunshine said. "Not yet,we need that last piece," Rarity commented. "And I bet it's with either Dash or Pinkie!" Will said. As the carpet continued its flight, Trixie noticed that Rainbow Dash's thread beginning to dim, "No, no, this is bad. Carpet, fly to Rainbow now!" "What's going on?" Fluttershy asked, her face tingd with worry. "It's Dash's thread, its glowing dimmer, and that means-" "She's in trouble, faster Carpet!" Applejack yelled to their companion as the rug flw , but stopped. In front of them were giant howling winds. Deep within the winds , they could hear Rainbow Dash's faint howls of pain. "Rainbow!" Shouted Applejack, "Hang on Sugarcube! We're a comin’!" "But how?" asked Sunshine. "None of us are capable of navigating through those winds." Will stared ahead, and then back to Rarity and Applejack,” I'll go." "What?" Rarity exclaimed. "Uh, darling. not to insult your flying abilities or anything, but Rainbow Dash has problems flying through this, how are you going to do it?" Applejack asked. Will looked at the two mares, "Simple, you two are going to do it." "What?" Rarity asked. "Rarity, you are good at precision, Applejack is strong," Will said, picking up a lasso. "Tie this around me and Rarity, guide me." "Not to spoil the plan, but Will... think about it. If they aren't careful, if you're not careful, you could be bashed against those winds and into who knows what kind of rocks," Trixie said, to which Will nodded. "Yes, but I wouldn't do anything less, " Will smiled. Nodding, the two ponies set about their task. Applejack tied the lasso tightly around Will stomach, while Rarity bathed Will in the glow of her horn. With a quick nod, Will began to take into thee howling winds, groaning in pain as she felt rocks and other debri began to hit her sides and cut deeply into her body. After several minutes, she spotted Rainbow laying in the middle of a large collection of debris. Worried look in her eyes, Will flew down to Rainbow dash and picked her up onto her back and flew back to the group. Once back, Will laid Rainbow's battered and bloodied body onto the carpet. Applejack looked down, "No, please don't tell me she's-" With a cough, Rainbow moaned, "I'm not, just hurting badly. He teleported me into a wall and that caused me to crash." Applejack smiled and Fluttershy gave Rainbow dash a tearful high, "I am just glad you're ok. If just a little hurt." "Only one left, wonder where he sent Pinkie Pie?"asked Trixie. The carpet soon made its way to a small grassy knoll, where the plants and trees grew high. Once they landed, Will began to take flight, looking for Pinkie Pie. Fluttering softly, the young mare kept her eyes peeled for the pink pony. As she flew further in, she could her Applejack and Rarity talking, "What do ya mean that you can't connect them?" "Its as I said, I cannot put them together and keep them there. It’s odd, they fit and yet... they won’t stay," Rarity said continuing to use her magic. Will let out a sigh and turned to continue her flight, her mind focusing on both Twilight and her pink friend. Her flying stopped when she saw streamers, balloons, and confetti laying about. As she flew closer, she could smell cake and batter. Then, she began to hear an unusual sound. "zzzzzzzzzzzzzzzzzz" "Is, somepony snoring?" Will said, and then thought, "and is actually saying 'Z' while doing it?" She paused for a moment when she thought about it, and then her eyes shot up as it hit her, "PINKIE PIE! Girls, I found her." Looking up at the airborne Will, the two ponies ran after her into a central grove. In the middle of it all, was Pinkie asleep on a bed of pink flowers. Applejack took the first step forward, but was stopped by a large green hand, "Hold, the mare is asleep." "Our apologies good sir, but we need to-OH HEAVENS!" Rarity said, backing up in shock and awe at the towering creature before her. The creature bowed, the roots and vines that encompassed his body making a hand for him to take her hoof, "My apologies, Miss Rarity. I do not mean to scare." he said, his yellow eyes cloaked behind bushy eyebrows. His beard touched the ground as he lowered his head. "IT is quite all right, sir-" Rarity paused as the tree creature kissed her hoof. "Arbutus, milady," the plant pant said, offering Rarity a bouquet. " My apologies if it seems that your friend is in trouble. Quite the opposite, I merely gave the excited one a chance to sleep." "Why?" Applejack asked. Arbutus smiled, "Because she was so tired after giving me a chance to smile. See, today was the day I died." "What?!" came the collective gasp from the three mares. "Let me explain," he said, walking to a small table. "Ages past, I was filled with hatred and loathing for ponykind. I blamed them for allowing the monsters to come to this world and only stopping them when they did something wrong. I wanted them to go and hunt those monsters, I wanted blood. But, Majesty would not listen, and so, I hid myself away for years... until..." "Until when?" Rarity asked. "The Sultan of Saddle Arabia took a rose from me. In return, I took his rose," Arbutus sighed, lowering his head. "His daughter?" Applejack asked. With a slow nod, Arbutus continued, "But, the princess taught me that I could've helped, that I shouldn't close my heart to others. However, Steet Rat killed me before I could prove myself." "Oh, my," Rarity gasped. Applejack shook her head, "But how-" "An earth pony should know, we plants are very hard to kill. We get cut down, we get burned, but we regenerate. However, It still pains me to remember this day, and I will cry when it comes to it," Arbutus said. Pinkie Pie then appeared on his shoulder, "Well, I can never leave a guy with a frown on his face. So, I decided to do what I do best, throw him a party!!!!" "Pinkie!" the three mares said, walking over to their friend as she landed on the ground and hugged her tightly. "Hmmm, that should've made you fall asleep longer," Arbutus said. "Yeah, but my heart started to flutter and my coat buzzed, and that means my friends are near. I couldn't sleep knowing that," Pinkie giggled, and that was when she saw the three gems in Rarity's grasp. "Hey, those look familiar!" "They do?" Rarity asked. In answer, Pinkie nodded and led the the three to a small stand, "See? They fit those whole things." Rarity looked back at the gems and then back at the stand. Taking a moment to look closer, she let out a gasp, "Of course. Earth, Water, Wind! The three gates that we found," Rarity said, walking to the stand and putting each into a slot. The stand glowed a bright light, showing a picture of Fizzy, Truly, and Gusty taking a piece of a gem from a pair of hooves and then putting them together. After the light vanished, the stand revealed a long cylindrical gem. Will took a step forward and took the gem into her hooves, "So, this is Street Rat's legacy?" "A soul gem?" Rarity questioned. "A what?" Applejack asked. "Trixie and Twilight can explain it better than I can. But, it's a gem that some craftsponies will use to put into armor or weapons to bind certain souls into the object forever," Rarity said. She looked up to Arbutus, "We are dreadfully sorry, but we must take this." "Go, your friend needs you," Arbutus said, looking back towards Agrabah. "I fear she may be slipping into a nightmare that none will escape." This caused the girl's' eyes to widen in horror and them to run out of the forest towards Carpet. Dash looked up, her bandages still wrapped thanks to Fluttershy, "Whoa, what's going on." "Long story short, Twilight might be going nightmare on us all and we need to save her!" Applejack said, leaping to carpet. Trixie looked down at Carpet, "Go you little rug!" she shouted, looking back at the quartet, she asked, "Is that a soul gem?" "A what?" Rainbow Dash asked. "A soul gem, it's meant to bind a soul to an item. It also serves as an easy way to make a soul jar, something in zebra lore," Trixie said, looking it over. "So that's the plan!" Will said, "Street Rat is planning on trapping Mozenwrath in an object forever. He can't escape a soul gem right?" "Yes, but how are we going to get it to work?" asked Sunshine. "Figure that out later!" Applejack said, putting her hat down over her eyes. "We have a couple of friends to save!!!" Mozenwrath burst open the door to the throne room,"Hello Sultan, would you mind hurrying up with giving me your kingdom? A very angry alicorn is on my tail and I'm afraid the pegasi mumluks I sent to slow her down, aren't going to slow her down." "M-Mozenwrath!" tremble the sultan, recognizing the hat and glove. Her mother told her stories, ones meant to make her a great sultan, and they always scared her, "Y-you can't be real." Mozenwrath chuckled,"Oh, my dear, All myths have a hint of truth to them. Excuse me," She put up a barrier as a purple energy shield broke through a window and then charged to Mozenwrath. Mozenwrath chuckled, only for her barrier to break and get a purple hoof in his face, sending him flying through the wall. Twilight's mane flowed as she turned to the Sultan,"Evacuate, now." She said, her horn crackling. In the city, a mumluk in a purple vest headed towards an old hut... Mozenwrath levitated up into the air with her horseshoes,"This, is actually pretty funny." She smirked, firing a beam at Twilight, causing the alicorn to back up a bit,"All this time I had to fight a normal, lowly street rat, but now? Now I can battle a mage on my level!" She fired several magic bolts at the princess. Twilight appeared behind her, and kicked her down,"No, you're wrong." She growled, sending a wave of energy down on her,"I'm leagues above you!" Twilight landed as Mozenwrath got up,"Do you know something?" Twilight's horn glowed as she fired a beam of magic, that the necromancer blocked with a shield,"For years I've been afraid, been worried that everypony I meet will fall apart if I don't use my magic right." She pulled apart wooden planks and sent them at blinding speeds towards Mozenwrath who put up a shield around herself,"I have powers that are beyond most ponies, I can learn all spells, and I'm very good at casting. Few ponies rarely see my power, for good reason. You aren't afraid, however. You took the sun, created hundreds of mumluks, and terrified even gods. You can take my magic now, you can fight me. Now, I can cut loose on you!" She fired a large bolt of magic at him. Mozenwrath smiled at this. She fired a bolt as well, hitting it at the same time. Twilight leaped at Mozenwrath and punched him through another building. Mozenwrath got up and summoned up thunder clouds to strike at the alicorn. She charged his horn, firing several shots at her. Mozenwrath smiled,"That's right..." He muttered,"Get fed up with me." She teleported in front of Twilight and hit her in the face. Twilight growled, using Equinox to slash at her, which she blocked with an energy scimitar. They struck at each other with the swords, matching blow for blow until Twilight fired a lightning bolt at him. Mozenwrath got up, panting as he recovered from the lightning strike. Sh fired several sun rays, hitting Twilight straight on. Twilight walked forward, her coat growing a little dark as she sent rays of purple energy at him. Twilight lifted Mozenwrath up in her magic, and proceeded to slam her to the ground repeatedly,"I. Am. Sick and tired. Of people. Like. You!" She pulled her close,"You monsters keep taking my friends away, keep hurting innocent people, and I keep finding myself unable to stop you. Well, that ends here, I'm going to tear your soul apart!" She raised her hooves and proceeded to punch him. 'That's right, beat the tar out of me...' Mozenwrath chuckled. As Twilight pinched again and again, she founder herself being pulled back by a pair of orange hooves. A blue and yellow set of hooves held her right fore leg while a pair of white hooves held her other, and a pink set held her tight. "TWILIGHT STOP! You're gonna kill her!" Applejack said, holding as tight as she can. Behind them in the distance, Sunshine st on the carpet, looking over her notes, "Ok, now how to make this work." "Let me go, I'm going to tear him apart!" Twilight screamed, tears falling from her eyes,"I don't want him to take anypony else away from me!" Mozenwrath coughed as she got up, her horn glowing. "Yeah, and what are you going to do about Sunset? Your friend?" Applejack asked, stepping front of Twilight. "That maybe Mozenwrath's soul, but what about her body, her soul. You gonna kill her too?" "Well, what do you got?" Trixie asked. "There are two ways to activate a soul gem. You either put the gem to an item and let it bond, or you use a little of your own blood to activate it and bind the soul to you," she then looked up. "There is just one problem. It requires the death of the opponent.” "But we can't kill Sunset's body, how can we be so sure she can use it, that is if the soul gem actually picks Mozenwrath. We might catch both by mistake," Trixie said. Twilight shook her head,"But... I..." She shuddered, her coat going back to it's normal color,"I'm sorry." "Yeah, you should be." Mozenwrath chuckled as he charged his horn, only for him to be tackled by a mumluk wearing a fez and a purple vest,"What the- What are..." His eyes widened as he looked into the mumluk's face,"You... Each mare said nothing, choosing instead to hug her tightly. There were some tears in their eye as they held their friend close. The sounds of struggle from behind alerted them to the fight, "What on earth?" Rarity asked. "Is that-" Rainbow Dash began. "Street Rat?" Pinkie asked, watching the mumluk nodding. Trixie growled, "Ok, plan now!" Sunshine looked to the gem, to the mamluk, and then to the six. She sighed as she put the gem to her heart, "After I am done with this, place the gem onto Sunset. Then you will have to convince my daughter to fight back. If not, the gem might take her too." "What are you plan... no!" Will said, running to Sunshine's side, but was too late. She gasped as she watched Sunshine stab the soul gem into her chest. Sunshine gasped as she looked at the gem in her chest, "T-that hurt, less than I thought." she finished as she fell to the ground. "Sunshine!" Trixie shouted. "Don't! Go save my daughter, now!" moaned Sunshine. "You will then have to put the gem onto my body." Will shook her head, but watched in shock as Trixie grabbed the gem and ran towards Sunset. Will quickly followed as she could hear Sunshine moan, 'sorry'. Twilight gasped when Sunshine stabbed herself,"No!" She yelled,"Darn it, she should've let me think!" She turned and followed Trixie,"So, how are we going to do this?" "She just said, 'put this onto Sunset'," Trixie said, putting the gem onto the body of Sunset. As the first face touched her, a blinding purple light shot up, collapsing into a dome around the struggling mare. From inside, they could hear echos of Sunset’s  soft breathing. Trixie looked at her horn, seeing the threat connecting Sunset's soul, "Sunset! Can you hear us?" "Twilight, call her!" Will called out. "Sunset!" Twilight shouted,"Can you hear us?" Sunset laughed as she flew through the sky. Looking down, she could see her palace of gold and silver, and all the little ponies milling about. She landed on a cloud, thinking about all the fun times she and her friends had- "Sunset!" "Twilight? Trixie?" She said, looking around,"Leave me alone." She said with a growl. Trixie raised an eyebrow at this, "Leave you alone?" "Why would we do that silly? We want you to come out and back. Come on, show that meanie Mozey who's boss," Pinkie Pie said. "I'm not coming to a world that continues to show me how wrong I was. I refuse to keep failing, I refuse to keep losing control.." Sunset growled. Applejack stepped forward, "Look Ah know that you were shown how much of a monster you were by the elements. Twilight gave us that theory, but it was also showing you that you had a chance to change. It was giving you a chance to change for the better!" "And you think what you are doing is better? You're giving control to a jerk like Mozenwrath!" Dash yelled. "Mozenwrath promised to take me away from that. From the horrors of the real world..." Sunset said "But, you can't stay cooped in the darkness forever. You need to face the horrors, and move forward from your mistakes," Fluttershy said. "Dear, is this really what you want?" Rarity asked. "This gem will steal you away from us all if you let it." "But I've done so much..." Sunset whimpered. "But, you've also accomplished so much more, please... Sunset," will pleaded. "What have I done?" Sunset asked. Trixie stepped forward, "A lot. Allow Trixie to show you-" she then began to illuminate the girls and the world, creating illusions as she talked. " Though you were born to a lowly status, you were taken above to the ranks of power by Celestia herself. Though sometimes ignored, Trixie has no doubt you were loved." she then made images of Celestia and Sunset hug each other. "You fell, hard, turned into a manipulative monster and caused fear across the school. You even sought to sow seeds of confusion and terror in Equestria, but the elements forced you to see the wrong of your life. Then you did something amazing, something magical, something no pony could do. "And that would be?" Sunset asked. “You lived," Trixie smiled and then highlighted the si bearers. Above them, images of their human forms were shown. "And you made friends with them. The elements gave you a choice, and you chose to become friends with them. Then, you came back here by force. Did you chose to not help Twilight with her mass spell? No! Did you choose not to research the heart, no! But most important, you chose to become close to these seven. All of them." Rainbow Dash watched as a spotlight shined on her, a part of the hate plague threatened to bubble up, but then it vanished for a moment as a flash of purple came to her eyes, "You know... it was kind of cool to come with us like you did." "The gal managed to keep Mozenwrath at bay, that is certainly something," Applejack said. Pinkie Pie smiled, "I kind of wish the other us were here. They probably have a lot of memories of her accomplishments too." “You kept helping us, even when you didn’t need to,” Fluttershy smiled. Rarity gave a warm smile, “You gave your heart to us and kept it open, we couldn’t ask for more.” Sunset looked down for a minute, before looking up again and flying,"Mozenwrath, get the buck out of my body!" She screamed. Mozenwrath's spirit was forcefully pushed out. He looked at his hooves, before feeling the pull of the soul gem. He slammed his hooves on the ground, attempting to stay, before a spirit of a princess Saddle Arabian bucked him in the face, causing him to fly towards the gem. He laughed,"Fools, I still win, even if you defeat me," He glared at Jasmine and Street Rat," You hear me, I'll never die, never give up, and I'll never surrender! I'll find a way out, I always do!" He screamed as the soul gem pulled him in. Will grunted as she grabbed the gem. Then she looked at Sunshine and ran to her. Taking the still charging soul gem , she rammed it into Sunshine's body, "Have fun being trapped in an unmoving, unthinking, corpse!" the soul gem glowed brightly, shining with a blind light as it was absorbed into Sunshine's body. "That was the plan!" Trixie said, "Once a soul is binded to an object, it is impossible to break free." Mozenwrath smiled as he entered the gem,"Nothing's impossible..." Sunset got up, and smiled at the group, before feeling her bones break, cuts appearing on her body, and her mouth bleeding. She began to scream wildly from the pain. "Sunset!" The girls screamed as they went to to her. Fluttershy began to look over her body, "Broken ribs, massive lacerations, jaw broken, fractures, it's like the only reason she took on so much damage was because Mozenwrath kept her fighting." "It's ok," Applejack said, putting a hoof to Twilight's shoulder. "You can fix this, right?" Rainbow Dash asked Fluttershy. Fluttershy let out a whimper, "There is only so much I can do." A white horn touched Sunset's forehead, "Sleep for now, my little Sunset." Sunset stopped screaming as her body went limp. Twilight just stared at Sunset, her eyes wide. "I'll take care of her for now," Celestia said, lifting the mare onto her back. She held back a tear as she ran a hoof alongside her face. "This spell will heal her while she sleeps, but if she wakes up from it... that is up to her." She then walked to Twilight, and hugged her, "My faithful student, it will be all right." Twilight stared into the distance, her eyes showing no trace of emotion or any of the words affecting her. Applejack walked to Twilight, "Twilight? Come now, this isn't funny. Speak to me." "Yeah, it's not that bad," Dahs said. "Sunset wsi going to be ok, she's going to live. Twilight?” Twilight's eyes dilated to pinpricks as she continued to stare "Please darling," Rarity said, coming up to her. "Don't run away from this. Don't do this to your friends, your family." "Come on Twilight," Pinkie said, holding her friend's cheeks. "You were aiming at Mozey, not Sunset!" "Too..." Twilight whispered. "Too?" Will asked. Twilight collapsed,"Too strong..." she shook "Too strong? Do you mean...you?" Trixie asked. Twilight simply shook, and breathed heavily. Celestia looked to Luna, and nodded for her to take Sunshine's body somewhere well hidden. Then she knelt beside her student, "Twilight, you are indeed very powerful. That is why I trained you, but I know that power like yours needed to be tempered." Twilight shook her head,"I lost control..." "Which is another reason why," she looked at the seven around her. "I had you befriend them. They can help you." Dash leaned in, "So you lost control one time, Twi. It ain't no, big deal, really. It happens to the best of us. You just need to pick yourself up again." "But, I've always been in control, I've never lost it before, what if it happens again?" Twilight shuddered. Applejack then playfully punched Twilight's shoulder, "Then I guess we'll just have to punch ya again." "Well, I could always use superspeed to tie her down," Rainbow Dash chuckled. "I would prefer if we just talked her down. Or maybe just find ways to help her," Fluttershy said. Twilight smiled a little,"but I don't know if you'll be able to stop me like that next time." " I don't know, give me a little time, and trial and error," Rainbow Dash joked. "Besides, try all you want, and you'll never be faster than me." "Rainbow," Applejack nudged her friend. "It's true," Rainbow Dash chuckled. "Ooooh, Or we can pretend to lose control again too and make her see how silly she's being," Pinkie giggled. Will then smiled, "Basically, what they're saying, is that... they will find a way. No matter how they do it, they will find a way." Twilight looked at them and smiled,"... Thanks girls." Celestia places a comforting hoof on Twilight's shoulder, and then hugged her close, "You'll never have to worry about losing control. Because you have them," she smiled (something I never had). The others immediately joined in, and Twilight could've sworn that she saw Sunset hugging too. Twilight sniffled as she leaned in to the hug. Using her magic, Celestia gave Twilight the glove and the horseshoes, "You'll be needing this for the gate. I will take Sunset home." Trixie sighed, and looked to Luna, "Mistress, Trixie is sorry, but she failed. She found Sunshine, but..." she trailed off, a tear rolling down her cheek. Luna gave a solemn nod,"I don't think there was anything you could've done, my student." She looked at Sunshine,"I will make sure she gets a proper burial." Twilight took the glove,"Thank you, Princess." She gave a sigh,"I wish I could've caught it in time." "I think she was planning on it," Trixie said, looking down as the princesses flew away. "I don't think she wanted to make it." Applejack sighed, and then looked to Twilight, "So, shall we get to that gate." "Valtor is still out there, and we need to save Will," Rarity said. Twilight looked up, her eyes glaring,"Yes, we need to get to the gate, for Sunset!" The bearers nodded and walked after Twilight. Will landed next to Trixie, "So, what are you going to do?" "Isn't it obvious," Trixie said, flipping her mane. "I am going with them. Without Sunset, they are one down and thus weaker. They need the Great and Powerful Trixie in order to sa-" "Hey, Trix! Ya coming or what?" Rainbow Dash shouted at the edge of the city. "W-wait up!" Trixie said, the Carpet flying right behind her. The eight ponies stood together at the edge of the town, keeping their eyes forward. Reaching up to adjust her hat, Applejack looked back to her friends and smiled. Feeling a light musical beat in her chest, she sang Now here we are once again. "Come y'all, let's get moving," Applejack said, running ahead of the group. Smirking, Rainbow dash flew just ahead of the walking group, adding her voice to the song A journey we face, a fight we're sure to win "Valtor doesn't stand a chance!" she chuckled. Listening to the beat, Pinkie added We'll get to the gate and save the day. "Then we'll party," Pinkie giggled as she skipped ahead. Rarity walked over some sand dunes, making sure to not trip. She arched an eyebrow at how easily Applejack walked. I know we'll make it through, Somehow we always do Twilight flew above Rarity, helping her onto Carpet. Then she looked down at each of her friends, new and old. We've got each other and that's enough. I don't know what I'd do without you girls Even though this might be tough. Fluttershy flew next to Will, and placed a hoof onto her shoulder. Now Will, have no fear You know we are right here Rainbow Dash  then winked to Will as she flew to Carpet's side No dragon will get the best of us, just let ‘im try Looking from one to another, the six joined together as one to sing We've face much worse in the past Facing down dangers where you look We've always come through in the past Applejack almost falls down a hole, only to be helped up by Rainbow Dash Always loyal Fluttershy dusted AJ off and smiled back at her. Always Kind and honest At night, the group rested. Rarity then heard Pinkie shivering, and then leaned to give her a coat. Always Generous Pinkie smiled at Rarity Always Happy to be Twilight breathed softly at the sight Together The next morning, the group continued their journey. Trixie turned to Will, and smiled. We've faced god and demons before "And they've won, every time," From Discord to mad unicorns "And the occasional alicorn," Rarity added. And through it all, I've had no fear. "Because I was with my friends, I knew I was alright," Fluttershy added. And when we've made our way Then we'll save the day. Will smiled, and added her voice to the song We've faced worse in the past Rummaging for answers in the journey We've always come through in the past Rainbow Dash smiled as she flew in a circle Always loyal Applejack opened her eyes wide as she ran ahead Always Kind and honest Rarity nodded as she looked ahead Always Generous and faithful Pinkie Pie giggled as they neared the canyon Always happy Twilight breathed softly as she lifted the glove Always loyal Always Kind and Honest Always faithful and generous Always forgiving and happy To be together Somewhere, as Sunset slept on Celestia's back, she whispered "Together." A giant tiger's head rose from the sand, "What brings the bearers to the Cave of Wonders?" "We've come to enter the Gate." Twilight said. The tiger's head nodded solemnly, opening his mouth to reveal a portal. The bearers took a deep breath and began to walk through it. > P is for protection > --------------------------------------------------------------------------         the light of  the gate gave way to an overwhelming darkness, and an overwhelming feeling of cold that permeated the area. As the bearers all stood together in the darkness, Pinkie looked up, “Hey, who turned out the sun?”         “Uh, Twilight, how did we come here at night?” Applejack asked.         Twilight shook her head, “I know, this is weird. The last two times we went into another dimension we were at the same time that we left our world. The time discrepancy-”         “Girls...did you hear that?” Rainbow Dash asked s her ear twitched at the sound of rustling bushes.         A shout of "Trixie!" resounded from the bushes as a rainbow maned, cyan pegasus tackled the cyan unicorn.         "Wait, wha-" Trixie exclaimed as she was tackled by the blue blur. Growling, Rainbow shouted,"Hey! get off my friend!" flying over, she tackled the pegasus with a flying kick. The pegasus gasped as she was kicked. She got up and turned before gasping,"Uh-oh..." A purple unicorn walked out of the bushes,"Rainbow Dash, what are..." She looked at the group,"Oh no." "I am trying to protect Trixie from... me?" Rainbow Dash said, stepping back. "Twilight? What are you doing here?" Applejack asked, looking at her friend’s counterpart. “Have you noticed, Will? No wings,” Rarity whispered as she looked at the other Twilight. Trixie got up, dusting off her hat, "More importantly, why was Trixie attacked?" The other Dash looked at the Trixie before her, “Long story, trust me.” Unicorn Twilight looked around,"Girls!" She looked at Applejack, and then hugged her,"I missed you." And then the other Rainbow Dash immediately hugged her as well. Applejack opened her eyes in shock at the sudden hug, "Um, please to meet ya, again? Was, the other me gone long?" "Um, sorry, but we, um that is we aren't-" Fluttershy began, only for Rarity to take over. "What she means is, we aren't your versions of your friends and we are right now a little confused." "I know, it's a little complicated," Will said. Unicorn Twilight nodded,"I'm aware of that, it's just..." She looked away,"Although I'm sure our Applejack is okay, this world's Applejack is... gone." Princess Twilight blinked,"Run that by me again?" Unicorn Twilight looked at her alicorn self,"Okay, you see, this Rainbow Dash and I are also not of this universe, we got here through a teleportation accident. We've been stuck here trying to help this world get back on it's feet, because in this world, Twilight, we didn't get the Elements to work the first time, and we were unable to stop Nightmare Moon." "Wait, wait, wait," Rainbow said. "Run that part of the elements not working here again?" "Is it because Ah died?" Applejack asked. The Other Rainbow Dash growled,"No, you died shortly before we defeated Nightmare Moon ourselves. It was actually this world's version of me, because she agreed to Nightmare Moon's offer!" This was met with a loud and collective, "What???" "I know right?" Rainbow Dash growled,"Supposedly, she didn't care about you guys!" "That's stupid," Princess Twilight said,"If she didn't care, why did she go anyway?" She looked at her unicorn self,"Wait, you said you defeated Nightmare Moon?" Unicorn Twilight nodded,"We had to use this version of Rainbow for Honesty, and we purified her." Twilight then looked to the group, “So how did you get here?” Will stepped forward, "We were on a quest to find something called the heart of worlds. To get to it we have been opening gates that will open the path to heart. We used a key to open a portal to this world." “Now, why is she traveling with you/’ Dash asked, pointing a hoof at Trixie, and then one to Will, “And who the buck are you.” “My name is Will Vandom. I am the one who is able to lead the others to the hearts, and they are trying to help me with my memories,” will said. Trixie gave a flashy bow, “And Trixie is traveling with these seven because she is their friend and they needed her after the lost of sompony close to her.’ “I don’t see when I would ever be desperate enough to need your help,” Dash remarks, much to Rainbow’s anger. Princess Twilight stepped forward, the darkness hiding her wings, “Maybe we should talk more as we head to you base.” Dash let out as a gap a she got a good look at Princess Twilight, “Whoa, whoa whoa!!!! What’s with the wings?” “I’m an alicorn in your world?” gasped Twilight as she ran a hoof along Princess Twi’s feathers. “But, how...Just how did we-” “Long story, but I can tell you about while we walk,” Princess Twilight said with a smile.  As they walked, Pinkie began to pull out small little note card and writing down. Rarity looked over and whispered, "What are you doing?" "You'll see," Pinkie said. “-and you wouldn’t believe the books I had to read,” Princess Twilight said. Looking back up at the moon, she asked of her unicorn counterpart, “So where's Celestia?" the Princess asked. Unicorn Twilight fell silent. "Twilight? What happened...no," Rarity gasped. Applejack shook her head, "No, she can't be."  “But, how can she be dead?" Will take, a look of horror on her face. Unicorn Twilight sighed,"I guess Nightmare Moon just couldn't... hold herself in." Princess Twilight frowned,"Then why is the sun not out? Celestia isn't that connected to it." "I... don't know. That's what we're trying to fix, and the main reason we're not home." the unicorn said. "So where are the othe-ooof!" Before Applejack could say anything else, a pink blur passed her by. When she look down, she saw a name tag 'AJ 1" Twilight has a tag that red, "Prinny Twi” Prinny Twi blinked at the name tag, and then chuckled,"Thanks Pinkie." Pinkie Pie rushed back to her side, the name tag reading 'Pink13 P13' "You're welcome Prinny. Dash, who wore the tag that read 'Rainbow 1" shook her head, "So where are the others?" Uni-Twi turned to Rainbow,"They're at Canterlot, doing some rebuilding. Come, I'll lead you there." The journey to Canterlot did not take long for the group of dimensional travelers, for the grove that they appeared in was not too far from the city. As they traveled along the darken path, much of their conversation was filled with the two universes comparing notes and stories. Laughs were had amongst the group, while Applejack whispered to Will, “Hey, you sure we ain't messing with their timeline by telling them what is happening.: “No,” Will shook her head. “They already know about another world, they already have enough differences to deal with.” Prinny looked at her unicorn self,"So, where's Shining and Cadence?" "I'm not sure. They haven't shown up in the month since we've been here." Uni-twi looked away, a little bit of a tear in her eyes, “I hope they're ok.” Trixie followed along, grumbling to herself, "First thing they do is tackle Trixie. She swears..." Rainbow Dash landed by her alternate self, "So, why did you go after Trixie?" Uni-Twi looked at Trixie,"Well, she was one of Nightmare Moon's generals. At one point, she took Luna's powers and we had to stop her by trapping her in the moon." She glared at Rainbow 2,"Something that somepony should've thought about!" Rainbow 2 chuckled nervously, putting a hoof to the back of her head"Sorry about that." Trixie stood back in shock, shaking her head. Quickly putting on her game face, she followed the group. Her hooves trembled in fear as she tried to shake the horror from her mind and tried to listen to her friend’s voices. She felt a hoof on her back, and looked up into Pinkie’s blue eyes, “It's ok.” "Ok, so," Dash said, flying backwards, "Basically, life is hell and we wound up in one of the worst possible scenarios we coul. Life just gets better and better." “Hey, it was better than when we first got here, somewhat." Rainbow 2 said with a frown. "Yes, Pinkie's not crazy anymore." Uni-Twi said. Dash looked over at Pinkie, who looked like she was still trying to figure out nicknames, "Crazy in what way?" "Think Pinkamena, but worse." Rainbow 2 said. Prinny looked at her unicorn self, ignoring the conversation between the two Rainbows,"But there's still no sun." She looked up, and frowned,"Hold on." Her horn glowed. "What are trying to do Twi?" Applejack asked as they stopped within the front of the gates to the castle. "I'm using my magic to see in the dark..." She gasped,"There is a sun, but it's covered in... some sort of shadow..." She looked at Uni-Twi,"Does the name Sombra ring any bells?" "No?" Uni-Twi said. "How about Discord?" "Sorry," the unicorn thought,"I did see a statue of a thing called that." "Oh, dear." Prinny said with a frown. This caused Rainbow Dash to shudder. Applejack arched an eyebrow at this, "Wait, y'all never fought Discord?" "No, did you fight him?" Uni-Twi asked "Why would a sun be covered in shadow?" asked Will. Prinny looked at her younger self and nodded. She looked at Will,"I don't know, but I do have an idea." She looked around,"As soon as we get to Canterlot, we'll find out." "Stop!" A big stallion came up from the unicorn's light,"State your business." Dash landed in front of the others, while Trixie hid behind the back, trying to hide. Applejack stepped forward, "Hold on, we don't mean to cause any trouble. The stallion stepped back a bit at Applejack, his face turning pale"Y-y-you're dead!" Uni-Twi stepped,"Relax, she's just Applejack's cousin, Pearjack. Don't worry about them, they're just here to help with the rebuilding." The stallion gave a sigh of relief, before turning," Alright, but only for you." He opened the door to various bits of fires with ponies milling about. "Pearjack?" Applejack whispered to herself. "I think it is a cute name," Rarity said. Prinny blushed as she looked over her shoulder at Applejack, “It was easier than saying we are alternate versions of our counterparts here but not the same ones that came from their world.” “Yeah, because we are from an alternate world but not the same alternate world that they,” Pinkie held her head as she screamed, “Arg! Alternate dimensional travel is hard.”         Prinny let out a giggle at her friend’s antics and then looked to the path that led to the gardens, “"I'm going to the Canterlot Gardens for a bit." She said, using her horn to light her way. Uni-Twi turned to the others,"Alright, we're going to meet some of your other selves, this is going to be a shock to them, so be gentle." The girls nodded, Trixie tried to shy away from the group. Putting her hat over her eyes, the blue unicorn followed PRinny to the gardens, trying her best to hide her face from the rest of the town and the guards that might see her. Uni-Twi led the group into a small hut just a distance from the caste. Inside she  walked into a room with a round table,"Everypony, we have guests!" As the rest of the group waited outside for Twilight to introduce the group, Applejack whispered,"Ok, now remember, they aint used to all of us yet, so be calm when we walk in there," Almost as if on cue, Rarity used thread to tie Pinkie's legs together, "And that means no jumping in and exclaiming ‘Surprise!’, Pinkie." "Awwwww," Pinkie frowned, putting her party cannon away. "Let’s not forget that there are going to be three Rainbows there, One villain, and their Applejack is dead," Will said. Rainbow Dash frowned and rolled her eyes, "So basically... awkward city." "Yeah, so let's be careful everypony," Applejack said, walking into the doorway as Twilight finished talking. "Uh, Howdy?" Inside, a pink pony would be sleeping on the table, another Rarity had turned and gasped in shock, and another Fluttershy made a squeak sound. "Twilight, tha-tha-" Rarity walked up to Applejack,"How?" Pinkie, now free, sat in the back and began to write on her note cards, and then looked around in surprise at the lack of Trixie. Arching her eyebrow, she walked away, but was stopped by Rarity's hoof. Silently, her Rarity shook her head and gave out a little sigh. Pinkie Pie backed away and nodded slowly, a little bit of a frown creasing her features. Applejack sighed, and then looked away, "Ah'm sorry rare, but...Ah'm another Applejack. That's how." "Um, hi," Fluttershy said to the group. Will waved, "Hi." "I... " Rarity 2 backed off, the slow realization hitting her hard. "I realize that..." She looked away,"Why are you here? And who is that?" she indicated Will. "This is Will, she has been helping us to travel between dimensions and we are here to help you dear," Rarity said, looking at herself. She noticed that her other self looked ragged and very tired, "My word." Pinkie smiled, bouncing to each mare and putting a name tag. going to her other self, she put down, 'sleepy me' and went back to the group. By the time she was done, everypony had their own name tag. She had a big grin as she put her marker away, “There we are,” the party mare said. “Now me and my friends are Applejack-1, Dash, Rarity-1, Fluttershy-1, Will-1, and P1nk3 P13. While you’re messy Rare, Sleepy me, Ultra shy, Rainbow, and Uni-Twi.” As Pinkie giggled at her naming convention, Rainbow strode to argue about her new name.  Dash stepped forward and sighed,  stopping her counterpart"That' not the only reason. We're here looking fo rsomething called a heart to stop some sort of evil dragon back in our world." Rarity 2 sighed,"I'm afraid I don't know about any heart. I'm not sure how you can help us, we're not having an easy time ourselves, especially without Cadence..." She looked away,"What do you mean,'Evil dragon?" She asked "Long story, but to sum up," Will began. "Evil Dragon, wants ancient heart to assume dominance over the multiverse, gave me a mind rape, we traveled, and saved ponies." Pinkie waved her hooves, “We also met other versions of ourselves, fought some interesting villains, got armor, sang songs, redeemed bad guys, went through tests, met gods, sav-” “Ah think they got it Pinks,” Applejack said, putting a hoof into Pinkie’s mouth. The sleepy Pinkie giggled and kicked her leg. "What happened to Cadence?" Fluttershy asked. "We're not sure." Rarity looked at the table,"The last time she was seen was in Manehattan." "What about Shining?" Applejack asked, looking at Rarity. "We assume that he's with Cadence." Rarity said. As Applejack looked over the notes and plans for reconstruction and food efforts on the wall, the mare chuckled, "How are the reconstruction efforts going anyway? Ah bet Appelbloom is trying her hardest to get into everything ain't she?" Rare gulped,"Oh, there's..." She looked away, a sob coming from her,"I'm sorry, I couldn't save them..." "...What?" Applejack asked, all the color drained from her face. "Please, tell you are... this is a joke yes?" Rarity asked, trembling. Rarity 2 stayed silent. as Rarity looked into the sad eyes of her counterpart, her eyes began to fill with water. trembling, she backed into Applejack and was immediately embraced by her earth pony friend. Rainbow Dash joined them, holding her friends tightly and trying to hide Applejack’s face. "No..." the orange mare looked down and way, trying to hide her tears, which did not stop rarity from crying. Dash held her friends close, her own tears rolling down her cheek. Fluttershy looked to the sleeping Pinkie and put a blanket over her. Looking over her shoulder, she finally noticed a pony in a black wonderbolts garb flying in, "Rainbow Dash?" The pony looked away,"Just the Captain." Uni-Twi looked at her,"I thought you were wandering?" The Captain walked up,"There's a reason for that: Luna is missing." Fluttershy gasped, "Missing?" “What?!” yelled Rainbow, flying out, but was stopped by Applejack grabbing her tail. "While she and I were in Fillydelphia, a strange shadow attacked us, and the next thing I knew, she was missing." The Captain said. "What did the shadow look like?" Pinkie asked. "It had some sort of dark green smoke. I don't know, it was kind of a blur." The Captain said. "Oh, was it a speedy blur or one of those indistinct blurs that you can't really say what it is?" Pinkie asked. "The latter." The Captain said in an annoyed tone. The Captain frowned as she saw Dash,"Great, more alternate selves..." "Um Pinkie, I think she would rather talk to the others," Fluttershy said. Looking back to the Captain, she nudged her head to follow. "I know, isn't this great?" Pinkie said, smiling as she lead the captain further into the room. the new arrivals helped to pull Dash, Applejack, and Rarity out of their sadness and pay attention to her. Steadying herself, Dash looked to the captain, "Nice outfit." "Thanks, nice armor." The Captain said. "And who are you," Applejack asked, regaining her composure. She then shot Rarity a look that asked if she was alright and silently her friend nodded. "I'm the Captain, and that's... all you need to hear for now." She gave a sad look at Uni-Twi. “Fine, be mysterious," Dash rolled her eyes, not seeing the Captain's look towards Uni-Twi. "Anyway, I'm not sure if you heard, but Luna's been taken by a shadow creature with green flame." The Captain said. "What?" asked the group. This caused Rainbow to throw her hooves up as she roared, "great, a rescue mission too!!! Why not have us stop a war while we’re at it, or " “Well, you don't have to do it if you don't want to!" The Captain said, interrupting Dash’s rant. "We want to, trust us," Applejack said. Rainbow Dash hoof bumped the air, "Yeah, its what we do best after all." Rarity rolled her eyes, "They might be a little excited, but they are right. We will be doing all we can to fix all of this.' The Captain scoffed,"I'm not sure what you all can do. After all, what do you have that they don’t?" A smirk came to Dash’s lips, “Watch us.” Rarity smiled, "Well, once we have our friend here. We can do some investigations." "Your friend?" The Captain asked. "Another version of me." Uni-Twi said. "Oh, great, more nerds." The Captain rolled her eyes. "Hey, that nerd happens to be my friend," growls Dash. "And mine too, but let's try to work with," The Other Rainbow glared at the Captain,"... her." "And what's wrong with her" Applejack asked. "She's this world's Rainbow..." Ultra-shy whispered, her head down Rainbow Dash growled and stared at the tritor, "WHAT? Shes the little coward that turned this world into this, I'll kill jerk. Let me go Aj!" Rainbow was stopped by Applejack biting down on her tail. "Hold on there, Sugarcube. We can talk about that later, right now we need to find Luna," Applejack said. “But, she-” Applejack shook her head, “Rainbow, you know we don’t have time to waste with vendettas and fights. Not when other ponies need us.” "Plus, she's kind of the Element of Honesty," Uni-Twi said. "I had my reasons." The Captain said simply. Prinny-Twi walked up to a statue of a draconequus,"Well, you still haven't escaped. Guess things are too boring, aren't they." She frowned, her horn glowing,"I could... but no, you're my final option." She placed a hoof on the statue, only to hear Discord's voice "Hello, Twily!" "Discord!? What are-" Prinny-Twi gasped. "Relax, I'm not your Discord. I just said that to get a rise out of you. Now, I know why you are here, and I can tell you, for a price." Discord said. "If you think I'm freeing you, you have another thing coming. Plus, what do you have for me?" Prinny Twi asked. "Information on the Heart of Despair here. I don't want freedom, yet, what I want, is for Luna to ascend to the throne." "Why do you want Luna back on the throne?" Twilight asked. "Because Celestia is dead." Discord said simply. Twilight blinked, and then gasped,"You want somepony to play with, because it'd be too easy without a princess to annoy!" "I hate victory, Twilight, and I need a challenge." Discord said, an illusion appeared in Twilight’s mind of him on his knees begging. "Alright, I'll bring Luna back. Now tell me about the Heart." Prinny said. "The heart is in a place long since lost Where ponies of heart once sought If you need it to appear You must use your ear." Discord said, then laughed,"Ta-ta!" "..." Twilight frowned as she took her hoof off,"Why did I expect a straight answer?" She then heard crying near another statue. Prinny walked over to the source of the crying, only to find a yellow unicorn kneeling over a statue of Celestia,"Sunset?" She whispered. "Why? Why did you have to go, just when I had my plan ready!?" Sunset yelled to the memorial. She raised her hooves and began to pound on the statue. Prinny Twi frowned,"Trixie," She looked behind her at nothing,"I think she needs our help." With a sigh, Trixie decloaked, "How did you know?" “I figured you wouldn't want to stay with them." Prinny said," Going with me was be the best course of action for you." Trixie chuckled, "And here Trixie thought you just used magic to fine me." Prinny's face scrunched up,"Ok, I may have done that..." "So, how do we help her?" Trixie asked. Twilight walked up to her,"Sunset?" "Leave me alone." Sunset sniffled, her head held low. "We are here to help you and you want us to leave you alone? Was Trixie ever this bad?" Trixie asked. Twilight simply nodded,"Also remember that this Sunset didn't have the same experiences." She whispered. She looked at the unicorn before her,"Sunset..." "How do you know my name anyway!?" Sunset shouted. "We're... friends, Sunset." Twilight said, putting a wing over her. "This is Princess Twilight, and I am the Great and powerful Trixie," she said with a bow. "We know your name because you must be the powerful Sunset, bravest of the brave and boldest of the bold." Trixie said, quoting one of her favorite characters. "But, I'm not that well known, I mean, Celestia didn't tell a whole lot of ponies of my feats..." Sunset frowned. “Trust Trixie, you are well known to her," she smiled softly. “You... have been there for her.’ Twilight looked at Trixie as she lost her showboat persona for a second and put a hoof onto her friend. "Heh, thanks." Sunset frowned, her eyes mixed with rage and sorrow, "Who killed my mother?" "Nightmare